|
| |
America Was A Christian Nation
by Willie Martin
Preface
The original Hebrew Israelite nation, formed at Mount Siani, was the first Monotheistic
Republican governmental system. The second was the United States of America with its
"Theocratic Constitutional Republic." The Hebrew system of government began with
one man as the personal and direct administrator of the Divine God himself making all
decisions concerning civil law and religious practices. "And when Moses' father in
law saw all that he did to the people, he said, What is this thing that thou doest to the
people? why sittest thou thyself alone, and all the people stand by thee from morning unto
even? And Moses said unto his father in law, Because the people come unto me to enquire of
God: When they have a matter they come unto me; and I judge between one and another, and I
do make them know the statutes of God, and his laws."
This power was later delegated to the heads of the families, heads of the various tribes,
and a parliament of 70 elders with all unresolvable problems decided upon by Moses himself
as the direct administrator of God. "How can I [Moses] myself alone bear your
cumbrance, and your burden, and your strife? Take you wise men, and understanding, and
known among your tribes [elect Senators and Representatives], and I will make them rulers
over you... So I [Moses] took the chief of your tribes, wise men, and known, and made them
heads over you, captains over thousands, and captains over hundreds, and captains over
fifties, and captains over tens, and officers among your tribes. And I charged your judges
at that time, saying, Hear the causes between your brethren, and judge righteously between
every man and his brother, and the stranger that is with him. Ye shall not respect persons
to judgment; but ye shall hear the small as well as the great; ye shall not be afraid of
the face of man; for the judgment is God's; and the cause that is too hard for you, bring
it unto me, and I will hear it. And I commanded you at that time all the things which ye
should do."
The Christian concept derived directly from the Hebrew Holy Writ was the next ingredient
added to the monotheistic governing process and this is where the Theocratic
Constitutional Republic form of limited government of the people, by the people, and for
the people originated from, Creating the United States of America.
Introduction
Israelite System of Government Typical of Christianity. The entire Israelite system is a
typical one. It is chronologically divided into seven periods, beginning with the fathers,
the Judges, the Kings and back to a Republic to eventually culminate with our King of
Kings and Lord of Lords taking His rightful place as the King of Israel, over regathered
Israel.
The United States of America. As a system of types, it possesses a double application.
First: it represents the whole history of the world from Noah's times to the establishment
of the final Kingdom, the United States of America.
Second: it represents the full history of Christianity from the first advent to the
second, inclusive.
The first period is that of the fathers, embracing Isaac as a type of Christ; the second
is that of the patriarchs, in which Judah was a type of Christ; the third is that of the
descent into Egypt, and union of the Israelite family with the throne, in which Joseph was
a type of Christ; the fourth is the bondage of Israel, in which the infant Moses was a
type of the infant Jesus; the fifth is the exodus and organization of a church and state
in the wilderness, in which the lawgiver Moses was a type of the lawgiver Christ; the
sixth is the conquest and settlement of Canaan, in which Joshua was a type of Christ; and
the seventh is the period of royalty, in which David was a type of Christ.
1). To this picture, the seven periods of the world's history sublimely correspond, or
will correspond when the cycle of its woes and triumphs is complete.
The three fathers, Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, coincide with Shem, Ham, and Japhet; the
twelve patriarchs correspond with the twelve sons of Shem and Japhet, who were the heirs
of the world; the descent into Egypt, and the regal association of the Israelites, conform
to the first great apostasy in the present earth, and the union of church and state in
Babel under Nimrod, or the descent into spiritual Egypt and Sodom; the Israelite bondage
coincides with the universal bondage of the world under paganism, and its evils of
political and usury bondage.
The exodus and giving of the law, and organization of the Levitical church under Moses,
coincide with Jesus Christ, the call of the lost tribes of Israel to the liberty of the
gospel, the gospel laws, and the organization of the church of True Israel, or
Christianity. The conquest and republic in Canaan typified the conquest of absolutism, and
the millennial republic in Europe and America, and its ascendency over the world.
The completion of the conquest under the three kings, together with the royalty itself,
coincide with the predicted conquest of the entire world, and the full establishment of
the kingdom of God in the regenerated heavens and earth. This is not to say that there
will not be unbelievers in the future world with Christ as King, because the scriptures
clearly relate that there will be. "And the nations of them which are saved shall
walk in the light of it: and the kings of the earth do bring their glory and honour into
it. And the gates of it [New Jerusalem] shall not be shut at all by day: for there shall
be no night there. And they shall bring the glory and honour of the nations into it. And
there shall in no wise enter into it anything that defileth, neither whatsoever worketh
abomination, or maketh a lie: but they which are written in the Lamb's book of life."
; "Blessed are they that do his commandments, that they may have right to the tree of
life, and may enter in through the gates into the city. For without are dogs, and
sorcerers, and whoremongers, and murderers, and idolaters, and whosoever loveth and maketh
a lie."
2). The three fathers typified the Holy Trinity, taught so plainly by the gospel; and the
twelve patriarchs typified the twelve apostles.
The descent into Egypt and union with the Egyptian throne, coincide with the descent of
spiritual Israel into spiritual Egypt, of the union of the church of Christ's Israel with
the throne of the Roman empire. The Israelite bondage consequent upon the descent into
Egypt coincides with the civil and spiritual bondage suffered by spiritual Israel, after
the union of church and state.
The exodus from typical Egypt, the crossing of the Red Sea, the overthrow of Pharaoh's
host, the general thanksgiving, the organization of a republican confederacy of thirteen
tribes, composed of three millions of people; the adoption of a written constitution by
the tribes; the separation of the church and state departments, their freedom from control
of one by the other; their laws of servitude and naturalization, and their full
organization and deliverance under a noble leader, in a wilderness, have all a complete
correspondence in the United States of America.
The conquest of Canaan, the overthrow of its monarchies in two great battles under Joshua,
and the firm establishment of republicanism on both sides of Jordan, represent the
conquest of Absolutism in Europe in two great battles, and the establishment of the
millennial republic on both sides of the Atlantic, in the land promised to Abraham. The
choice of a royalty by the Israelites, and the full conquest of the land of promise,
"from the river of Egypt to the Euphrates," coincide with that period predicted
by Daniel, in which the saints shall take the kingdom, and give the kingdom and dominion
to one like unto the Son of Man, who shall come to "the people of the saints" in
the clouds of heaven. These expositions will doubtless be new to every one, for few have
attempted to explain the Israelite types as a system, and but few of the parts of the
system have ever been interpreted and applied.
The field before us, like others we have ventured to explore, is a trail with few
footsteps, and our views should therefore be neither received nor rejected without reason;
and study, they may be new, yet antiquity of opinions does not prove their truth, nor is
novelty always proof of error. Our expositions here harmonize with our expositions of the
prophets and doctrines of the Bible, which would be impossible unless they were correct in
all points, for error can not be harmoniously systematized. We are now honor bound to show
some fair reasons for these views, and we hope shall be as satisfactory to reasonable
minds as the nature of the case will admit.
In order to prove our points, we must possess some rule for testing a type, or of
distinguishing it from an accidental resemblance. A type is an example, pattern, or
general similitude to a person, event, or thing which is to come. The term type is
sometimes synonymous with that of symbol. It then is an abstract or compendium, a sign or
representation of something moral by the figures or properties of natural things. Among
theological writers we find no complete rule laid down by which to identify types. some
things have been written upon them, but nothing satisfactory to a thorough inquirer.
Having, therefore, no rule given us by others by which to be guided, we offer the
following as truthful and sufficient:
1). Those things, persons, or events in the ages prior to Christianity which were
expressly arranged by immediate divine interference, either by remarkable providences or
by miracle, may be regarded as types or symbols.
2). It is, and has been universally conceded in all the ages of Christianity, that the
whole Israelite dispensation, together with the preceding dispensations to Noah and Adam,
were typical dispensations, rather than realizing ones.
3). Those events, persons, and things in the dispensations prior to Christianity, and
which have had their exact counterparts in the Christian dispensation, must be regarded as
types. No accidental resemblances can ever be considered as types, for our principles
require that the events or persons or things in the Christian age to be regarded as
antitypes, must have resemblance not only in character but in the order of sequence. The
typical dispensation being a system stretching over ages, its several types follow
each other in regular order, and in the realizing age, the counter-parts of the
several types must follow each other in the same regular order.
4). Whatever the scriptures affirm to be a type, must be esteemed such.
The three fathers were expressly arranged as a trinity by the miraculous power of Almighty
God. Abraham was divinely called to enter Canaan; Isaac was born by miraculous
interposition; and Jacob/Israel was born in answer to the prayer of Isaac . Isaac, as the
second person of this trinity of fathers, was offered as the only begotten son of his
father on Mt. Moriah, and thus clearly typified the offering of the only begotten Son of
God by his father. As Abraham received Isaac as from the dead, and thus occurred a type of
the resurrection of Christ and of the dead in general, so God received Jesus from the
dead, and He became the first fruits of them that slept.
The limiting of the fathers to the number three, shows that it was an intentional
limitation, and being in a typical dispensation, plainly confirms the number as typical.
Of course we are to look in the plan of redemption for the counterpart trinity of heads of
a race. This counterpart or antitype is found only in the trinity of the three heads of
the human race and in the divine trinity. The coincidence being perfect in each case, the
type is realized in each.
The humiliation of Ham, of Isaac, and of Christ is a triennial coincidence and wonderfully
correct. The twelve patriarchs being a number clearly ordered by God, was unquestionably
typical, and as every one subscribes to this truth, we need not argue the question. We
therefore look into the plan of redemption to find its antitype, which must coincide in
the number of persons and in exact order of sequence after the three heads of a race.
The sons of Shem, Ham and Japhet were the natural inheritors of the promises to the three
fathers, but as the sons of Ham were given to Japhet and Shem, as servants, the heirship
of the world fell to the twelve sons of Shem and Japhet [Which explains the remarkable
success the Jew have had in their total control of the Communist Nations of the world].
The heirs of the three typical fathers in the above twelve heirs of the world find a
striking coincidence.
The twelve apostles chosen as the especial heirs of the kingdom of the Divine Trinity also
plainly coincide with the twelve patriarchs. Christ said to the twelve apostles, that when
his kingdom was fully established they should eat and drink at His table in His kingdom,
and sit on twelve thrones judging the twelve tribes of Israel. The term judging here used,
has the sense of ruling or administering government; and the term Israel, means all the
seed of Abraham "redeemed" by Christ, or all of the redeemed of the world.
The descent into Egypt of the seventy souls of the patriarchs and families, finds its
coincidence in order and character of events, in the submission of the true people of God
to the sway of Nimrod, and of the union of church and state under Constantine and
Justinian.
The union, of Jacob/Israel's family with Pharaoh's in the throne of Egypt was divinely
arranged, and it was really the union of the Hebrew Church with the Egyptian State: in
this union the church was inferior to the Pharaoh in the throne. The particulars of the
coincidence between this union of church and state are not so clearly marked under the
monarchy of Nimrod in history, but the fact of the subjection of God's people to him in
the throne is as clear; and had we a full history of the matter, we might find the
coincidence minutely perfect.
The Empire of Rome, John says, is "spiritually called Sodom and Egypt,"
and the descent of the Christians into union with Rome is therefore a clear counterpart or
antitype of the union of the Hebrew Church with Egyptian royalty. For the likeness is
perfect as to events, and the chronological order of the events is relatively the same.
The bondage of the Israelites in Egypt finds also a double coincidence in time and
character in the world's great history and in the history of Christianity.
From the days of the subjection to Nimrod, the people of the world have been in general
bondage to regal or totalitarian governments and to Satan's spiritual power; and while one
race of men have been bondmen, all have been servants of sin and Satan, as subjects of
political and spiritual despotisms. The task-masters of the Israelite heirs of the
promise, find their correspondence in kings, and princes of the earth.
In the union of church and state, true religion was soon to decrease, and all the true
seed of Abraham were grievously persecuted or destroyed. The destruction of the Israelite
infants was comparative kindness to the extensive butchery brought upon them by the Jews
of recent times.
The deliverance from bondage, the constitutional law, and the journey or probation under
the law in the wilderness, find a double and sublime counterpart:
1). In the appearance of Christ as a second Moses, the new constitutional law He
promulgated, and the long wilderness-like probation of His people in past ages.
2). In the passage of the sea by Christ's people, to the land of enlargement promised by
God to Abraham, the establishment of the Christian constitution of the United States, and
the testing of the ability of the people to uphold it and be happy under it.
One should not fail to note that the coincidence of the history of Israel with the world's
general history, is seen principally in the larger features of the Israelite system, and
that in the narrower diameter of the Christian era the coincidence between Israelite and
Christian history is seen in an ever greater number of points.
That Moses and Christ coincide, the scriptures affirm; and that the plan of the redemption
of Israel taught by Christ, began an exodus from spiritual and political bondage, which
will end in the release of the world, as Israel was released from Egypt, every one admits.
The probation in the wilderness was needed to accustom the people to new laws based upon
republican principles, and the republican principles of Christianity needed to be tried by
Israel a long season, in order to be appreciated, and ultimately adhered to with tenacity.
Hence we read: "...the woman fled into the wilderness from the face of the dragon for
a time times and half a time."
The ceremonial law, given in connection with the moral and political law or constitution,
is affirmed by scripture to have been typically illustrative of the Christian system. The
book of Hebrews gives the philosophy of the ceremonial law, and teaches that the whole
Israelite economy was "a shadow of good things go come," "a figure for the
time then present." As the bondage was followed by the scheme of Israel's redemption,
so the universal bondage of the world was followed by the scheme of the world's ultimate
redemption.
When Israel sighed by reason of oppression, and was willing to change its condition, and
call to mind the promises, then a deliverer came; and when our Israel people of the United
States sigh for relief, and is willing to hear of a change, then the world will sigh for
relief, and will be willing to hear of a change, then a calm will fill the earth, and
angels will herald the "desire of all nations," and the star of the east will
once again hang over Bethlehem.
Secondly; the exodus from Egyptian bondage, the organization of a republican confederacy,
and the probation under it till the conquest of Canaan, were typical of the exodus of the
Christians from Europe, spiritual Egypt, to America, their organization of the republican
confederacy of the United States, and their probation under a Republic up to the time of
the conquest of absolutism.
The coincidences between these two great periods are more numerous than between any other
typical and anti-typical period whatever, excepting that of the same typical period and
the epoch of Christianity. We may premise here, that it should be specially recollected
that like things always typify their like: thus, a person used as a type typifies a
person; an event typifies an event; a thing typifies a thing:
A country typifies a country; a period typifies a period; a church typifies a church; a
state typifies a state; a bondage typifies a bondage; a deliverance typifies a
deliverance; a probation typifies a probation; a war typifies a war; a priest typifies a
priest, and a king typifies a king. One should now notice, more at large, the points of
correspondence between the Israelite period of deliverance and the Christian period.
1). The children of "the free woman," or Israelites were freed by the exodus
from the servitude of Egypt; and so the children of the free woman or Christians were, by
the great exodus to America, freed from the bondage of "spiritual Egypt and
Sodom," Europe. Let it ever be fixed in the mind, that almost all Christians are the
seed of Abraham; they are the White Anglo- Saxon, Germanic, Scandinavian, Celtic peoples
of the Christian Nations of the world, or the free woman, and full heirs of the
promises.
2). The Israelites were pursued by the oppressor, and he was vanquished; and so the
Christians were pursued by the oppressor, and he was vanquished.
3). The Israelites crossed a sea to get away from bondage, and so did the Christians in
coming to America.
4). The Israelites sought the land promised to their paternal head, and so the Christians,
in their exodus to America, come to the land promised to Abraham, their paternal head.
5). At the destruction of the Egyptian tyrant's forces, Israel decreed a general
thanksgiving to God, and so when the modern Pharaoh was defeated, a general thanksgiving
was decreed by the American Congress. Songs and shouts; and all the demonstrations of
exultation, joined with Miriam to celebrate God's name, and so songs and shouts, bonfires,
illuminations, ringing of bells, tears of rapture, devout worship, and lofty thanksgiving
celebrated the same God's praise through all our land. The Israelite exodus was a short
period, but the American one extends from 1607 to 1996 and perhaps beyond.
6). According to Dr. Adam Clarke, and others, the number of the Israelites that escaped
from bondage was estimated to be about three million; and the number of people in the
revolutionary colonies, in 1776, was about three million.
7). The sea was frozen when the Israelites reached the safe side, and the Pilgrim Fathers
found a frozen sea, and a snow covered shore, when they landed in America. This may or may
not have been an accidental, and not a providential correspondence.
8). The Israelites were organized as a confederacy of thirteen tribes, and so there were
thirteen colonies providentially organized into a Christian confederacy. Israel's tribes
were called twelve, but out of Joseph there sprung two tribes who received an inheritance,
thus making thirteen. It is also remarkable, that William Penn was proprietor of two
colonies, Pennsylvania and Delaware. As Joseph was imprisoned, and yet had a double and
birthright portion on account of his virtue, so William Penn suffered imprisonment for his
virtue, and yet had a double portion.
9). The Israelite exodus was into a wilderness which was to be inherited as a part of the
promised land; and so the exodus of the Christians was to a wilderness, which was a noble
portion of Abraham's promised inheritance.
10). The Israelite confederacy was organized into a "more perfect union" after
the exodus, by adopting a written constitution: and so the confederate colonies, after the
war of independence, "in order to for a more perfect union," adopted a
written representative Republican federation constitution. The Israelite constitution was
submitted to the tribes for acceptance and ratification ; and so was the American
constitution. It is not a little remarkable, that the Israel and American constitutions
are the only two written ones ever known to have been adopted at the birth of any nation,
prior to 1776!
11). The Israelite nationality grew of the Hebrew church, or the seed of Abraham; and so
the American nationality grew out of the Christian church, and the seed of Abraham. All of
the Americans were not Christians at the framing of the constitution, and so were not all
of the Israelites pious; as their culpable unbelief shows. Yet the unbelieving Israelites
enjoyed the same political benefits as did the faithful, and so it was with the Americans.
About one hundred and forty-four thousand Christians were in America at the time of the
Revolution, yet the prevalence of Christian maxims and principles was universal, and the
virtuous political principles avowed by the Christians were adopted by all classes.
12). Church and state were disunited by the Israelite constitution and placed in the
relation of associates. The church was debarred, as a church, from exercising direct
control in civil affairs, and so it was in the American constitution.
Many have either ignorantly or willfully mistaken the relations which the Israelite church
and state held to each other. Some mistakes may have occurred on account of the fact,
that, as some laws were alike political and spiritual, it was supposed consequently that
all laws were so. The Sabbath, the Sabbatic and jubilee years, and the rite of
circumcision, were regulations of both a spiritual and secular nature. But with us the
Sabbath illustrates the case of these laws, for we regard it as both a sacred and a
secular institution: as a secular institution, its observance is compelled as a day of
repose to wearied nature, and to prevent oppressors from grinding the poor to death by
ceaseless toil; and also to give vigor to the general operations of society by the
universal refreshment it bestows.
The civil arm has, with us, no right to compel its observance as a spiritual institution,
and should have none. Precisely so was it in the Israelite law. The civil power was not
the head of the Israelite church, as the monarchs of Rome, Russia, and England have been
of the Roman, Greek and English churches. Neither the Judges nor kings of Israel could
appoint a high priest of the church; nor could the priesthood compel the paying of tithes,
or the offering of sacrifices, nor require the secular arm to do it. In spiritual matters
the Israelite was responsible only to God and to the ecclesias-tical law of God, and was
in no way responsible to civil authority for his spiritual conduct.
The United States Constitution puts religion in just exactly the same relation to civil
authority that God ordered, in the days of Moses. However, evil men in government, are
today trying to control the churches through man made laws and statutes. The disunion of
church and states is the great prophetic epoch of liberty and progress according to both
Daniel and John. It is the beginning of the end of despotism, and when it fully prevails
the "time of the end" will close, and despotism will forever cease on earth. The
two separate departments of religion and politics in the Israel confederacy exactly
coincide with these two departments in our country. At least it did in the beginning.
13). The political offices of the Hebrews were elective, and not hereditary, and so it is
in our government.
14). Their government was not originally an aristocratic republic; the people decided in
general assembly all questions of war, treaties, and peace, and Moses always appealed to
the whole, and not to the few aristocrats, to accept or reject his propositions.
Josephus says it was an aristocratic republic, but it is plain that he must speak of the
executive department of the government and not of the legislative. We might in a similar
manner call our government an aristocratic republic. The term aristocratic meant,
anciently, the best; it now signifies, in an odious sense, the worst!
15). The people of Israel chose God as their only king, and renounced allegiance to all
other monarchs by acclamation, and so did the people of the United States.
16). The Israelite constitution recognized the institution of bondage, and so does/did the
American constitution.
17). The Israelite constitution forbade foreigners ever becoming supreme magistrates, and
so does the American.
18). The Israelite constitution provided for the naturalization of foreigners, and so does
the American, but not so strictly.
These coincidences between the exodus of Israel and that of the Christians, are of the
most extraordinary nature if we take them singly, but when taken together they are nothing
less than miraculous.
The sixth period of Israelite history, which includes the conquest of Canaan and
establishment of the republic, coincides with the sixth period of the world, and the sixth
of Christianity. The great points in this period particularly noticeable are these: first,
the conquest of Canaan was completed by two great battles; secondly, the conquest of
Canaan under Joshua and the Judges did not embrace all of the promised land.
The promise extended from the river of Egypt to the Euphrates, and was not realized until
the days of Solomon. The prophets assure us, the monarchies of the Japhetic race shall be
broken in two great battles at the conquest by Liberty, and hence the war for possession
of Canaan by republican Israel, coincides with the predicted war of the Christian
republicans for possession of the territories of Japhet. And the two great battles and
victories of Joshua coincide with the two predicted battles in the war for liberty. These
two battles are pointed out by John in Ezekiel 38 and 39 and in the 14th chapter of
Revelation, and in other places. The first is indicated by; "I will turn thee back,
and put hooks into thy jaws and I will bring thee forth, and all thine army, horses and
horsemen, all of them clothed with all sorts of armour, even a great company" and
"I will turn thee back, and leave but the sixth part of thee."
Then "One like unto the Son of Man" on a white cloud who "thrust in his
sickle on the earth and the earth was reaped;" and the second by the reaping of the
vine of the earth, and its being cast into the wine-press without the city, and the blood
coming out of it "even unto the horse bridles, by the space of sixteen hundred
furlongs."
And again John says, that three agencies went forth to gather all the kings of the earth
to the battle of the great day of God Almighty, and that they assembled at a place called
Armageddon. He then, after a short episode, describes the United States and the attack of
the confederate kings upon it, and states that the beast or Russian power was taken, and
that Europe or the False Prophet was taken at the same time.
The reaping of the earth signifies the destruction of European monarchy, and the reaping
of the vine indicated the dreadful flow of blood at the fall of all the European thrones.
As all thrones in Canaan fell before carnal Israel to make room for the republic, so all
thrones must fall before Christian Israel to make room for the great republic.
Let sceptics smile at our simplicity in writing the doom of European thrones: yet let them
be serious as they hear Daniel the prophet saying, "I beheld till the thrones were
cast down," and "became lie the chaff of the summer threshing-floor, and the
wind carried them away, and there was no place found for them."
The world was promised to Abraham as truly as was Canaan, and Canaan was but typical of
the world. A country typifies a country, and a people typifies a people; and so the
conquest of a large part of Canaan was, therefore, typical of the conquest of a large
portion of the earth; and as a republic typified a republic, the commonwealth established
in a great part of Canaan, typifies a common-wealth erected over a great part of the
earth.
The Millennium so often and lovingly spoken of in the pulpits of America is clearly a
state of the world in which a portion of it only is embraced under the blessings of civil
and religious republicanism, or Christianity. The seventh period of Israelite history
coincides with the seventh of the world and of Christianity.
This period is that in which the republic was changed to a monarchy by the universal voice
of the people. During the reign of a trinity of monarchs, the promised land was taken from
the foe, a capital of the kingdom was selected, and a temple of transcendent glory was
raised, and the Israelites attained the zenith of splendor. As like typifies its like,
this royalty typified a royalty, and the full conquest, under it, of all the typically
promised land, typified the full conquest of the world under the final royalty of Christ.
Now, prophecy declares that the people shall at last give up the government of the world
to the Son of Man, who shall come in the clouds of heaven, and that He shall destroy all
the wicked, shall renew the world, and reign for ever among men. It further says that the
capital of the redeemed world shall descend out of heaven to the earth; and it will hold
the same relation to all the world that old Jerusalem did to Canaan. We have now briefly
pointed out the great coincidences between the seven periods of the world from Noah to the
final redemption, and the seven periods of Christianity.
We have by no means descended to notice the minute resemblances between Christianity and
Hebrewism as religious type and anti-type, which fully accord with our expositions; we
have refrained from touching them for want of space, and because they have been largely
set forth by others.
We will, later go further, pointing out the coincidence of the Israelite history with
Christianity. One more point and we shall close this introduction. It may be inquired why
we have a right to give seven periods to Israelite history rather than any other number.
To this query we reply, first, that the periods we have given are plainly great ones, and
are marked out as such by nature of providence.
Secondly, each of these periods is also marked by a clear type of Messiah. Thus in the
first period, that of the fathers, Isaac was clearly a type of Christ. In the second, or
that of the patriarchs, Judah was a type of Christ. The septer was not to depart from
Judah, nor a lawgiver, until Shiloah came, and he was to be the "Lion of the tribe of
Judah."
In the third period, Joseph is called "the Shepherd, the Stone of Israel,"
and is allowed by all to prefigure Christ most graphically. In the fourth period,
the infant Moses prefigures the infant Jesus. As Pharaoh decreed the destruction of the
Israelite infants, so did Herod, the Jew; and as Moses was providentially preserved, so
was Christ; and as Moses came unto his own and they received him not, so did Christ. In
the fifth period, Moses, as a prophet, declares that he was a type of our Lord; and in the
sixth period, Joshua prefigured Jesus according to Paul, and in the seventh period, David
was certainly the type of his Son Jesus.
Biblical Basis For The Frame Work Of The United States
The Kingdom of God on Earth
The very foundations of the United States of America, was taken directly from the Laws of
God as stated in the Holy Scriptures. The claims of the Anti-Christs notwithstanding. Even
though liberation theology appears bent on under-mining the Christian faith from within,
in an effort to destroy its uniqueness and the freedom it has enjoyed for generations.
The Bible
It is amazing how many millions of Christians over the centuries have poured over the
pages of the Holy Bible without taking note of a fundamental truth: The Bible is a book
written by, for, and about Israelites. And by this we do not mean the Jews for they are no
part of Israel. While it is possible that this truth may not send spiritual shock waves
through any given congregation, or even any individual, but it should.
How people could read the best selling book of all history and not be more concerned about
the subjects of that book remain a mystery. Seldom does one hear any adverse comment when
it is made known that the Koran was written by and for Arabians. It is common knowledge
that the Vedas contain the sacred scripture for the Hindu people; yet that book proceeded
from their kind and hand is not disputed.
People seem to have no trouble relating the Talmud exclusively to the Jewish synagogue and
those who profess Judaism, and as such are called Jews. We have yet to meet a Christian
who wanted to claim the Talmud. The historical archives confirm that almost all people
have strong links to a particular religious creed. It should not come as a surprise, then,
for the Christian to find that his ties and Biblical roots go back to a people called
Israel.
This study is with the purpose that our Christian community learn and absorb this truth.
The Bible is inseparably linked to the people who comprise the Anglo-Saxon, Celtic,
Germanic, Scandinavian and kindred family in the earth. The spiritual eyes of millions of
Christians need to be opened wide to the racial origins of the Bible. The Bible shares a
genetic continuity in history from Genesis to the Revelation Letter. "And he had in
his hand a little book opened" was the statement of John, who in a vision saw the
people of the Book preparing to take its message overseas. History has since demonstrated
the willingness of the White Anglo-Saxon, Germanic, Scandinavian, Celtic and kindred
people to endure the hardships of the journeys in order to bring others the blessings of
the open Book. So long as that Book continues to remain open in the hands of Almighty
God's people, they are in possession of the perfect guide and chart which will enable them
to follow the course of their God-given heritage to a glorious destiny.
Westward, ever westward, has been the course of Empire as the ships of the People of the
Book plowed the seas, bringing our forefathers to the Isles from whence they set sail to
the uttermost parts of the earth. In obedience to the prophecy of the Scriptures:
"Ephraim (Israel) feedeth on wind, and FOLLOWETH AFTER THE EAST WIND (Always going
Westward - ever Westward to the ends of the earth - the West Coast of the United States of
America): he daily increaseth lies and desolation; and they do make a covenant with the
Assyrians, and oil is carried into Egypt."
And wherever they went, the open Book accompanied them on their journeys. As they
colonized, they evangelized: proclaiming the truth out of the Book in their hand! In
establishing governments, building cities, organizing communities and administering law,
the guiding hand of Almighty God, whose purposes were revealed to them through the open
Book, enabled His people to build (Far better than they knew) a type of civilization whose
foundation was to rest upon the administration of righteousness.
Familiarity with the open Book and the reason for sailing westward is well illustrated in
a statement from the Mayflower Compact of 1620, which began "In the name of
God." It proceeded: "Having undertaken for the glory of God, and advancement of
the Christian faith, and honour of our King and country, a Voyage to plant the first
Colony in the Northern part of Virginia, do by these presents solemnly and mutually in the
presence of God and one of another, covenant and combine our selves together into a civil
body politic."
It was the knowledge of the teachings of the open Book and the desire to follow these
teachings which brought the Pilgrim fathers to our shores to build anew a civilization in
conformity with the requirements of the law as set forth in this national document.
Let us turn back to the time before ever the Bible, as we know it, was written. In so
doing we will discover that the outstanding men of our Race were pressing forward to a
God-given destiny and as they lived, and worked, and labored, they wrote into the record
of the Book their faith, while in each succeeding generation men of renown carried on the
work of faith as the race continued on towards its destiny. Thus, in an ever-increasing
crescendo the Race of the Book moved forward with the open Book of the Race which, when
finally completed was taken by this Race to the less fortunate, that they might also
freely read and partake of its blessings.
Amounting almost to a paradox is the fact that the open Book from which we are now to
receive counsel, instruction, advice and guidance today is largely the history of our race
and an account of God's dealing with our forefathers. But along with the recording of that
history the future of the Race was also pre-written and we will do well to follow the
Divine instruction!
That Christianity has been the basic historic religion of the Nordic branch of the
Caucasian Race for the past two thousand years is something worthy of consideration.
Moreover, it should occasion no great surprise to find that the Anglo-Saxon, Celtic
Germanic, Scandinavian, and kindred people of the earth are more closely linked to
Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob/Israel of Bible fame than any other people in history Research
confirms that the Israelites of the Old Testament are directly linked to the Israelites of
the New Testament.
"STRICTLY SPEAKING IT IS INCORRECT TO CALL AN ANCIENT ISRAELITE A 'JEW' OR TO CALL A
CONTEMPORARY JEW AN ISRAELITE OR A HEBREW."
Moreover, the same blood that links Abraham, Isaac and Jacob to the twelve Apostles and
early Christians also flows in the blood of the modern day Anglo-Saxon, Germanic and
kindred people of the earth. There is a racial connection between the subjects of the
Bible and the main followers of Christianity.
There is a racial significance to the major religions of the world, and no amount of
historical revision will alter this. The religions of Buddhism, Shintoism, Taoism, and all
forms of the transcendental worship are linked to the Far East. Certainly none of these
religions rose out of the Caucasian world! The Moslem faith arose out of the Arabic world.
Judaism arose out of the Jewish mind. "It is highly probable that the bulk of the
Jew's ancestors 'never' lived in Palestine 'at all,' WHICH WITNESSES THE POWER OF
HISTORICAL ASSERTION OVER FACT."
Hinduism was not born in the Occidental western Caucasian world. Historically, one major
religion has been associated with the Western Caucasian world; Christianity. Just as the
Moslem faith has followed the Arabs in their migrations over the earth, Christianity has
followed the Caucasians in their wanderings. Voodooism has always found a home in the
hearts of the black race, but never within the Western Christian world. There is a
positive chemistry between Christianity and the blood of the Caucasian race. That there
might be a link between genetics and faith in Jesus Christ is something that has yet to be
fully explored by those who major in religious issues.
Judeo-Christian Heritage is A Hoax: It appears there is no need to belabor the absurdity
and fallacy of the "Judeo-Christian heritage" fiction, which certainly is clear
to all honest theologians. That "Judeo-Christian dialogue" in this context is
also absurd was well stated in the author- initiative religious journal, Judaism, Winter
1966, by Rabbi Eliezar Berkowitz, chairman of the department of Jewish philosophy, at the
Hebrew Theological College when he wrote: "As to dialogue in the purely theological
sense, nothing could be more fruitless or pointless. Judaism is Judaism BECAUSE IT REJECTS
CHRISTIANITY; and Christianity is Christianity BECAUSE IT REJECTS JUDAISM. What is usually
referred to as the JEWISH-CHRISTIAN TRADITIONS EXISTS ONLY IN CHRISTIAN OR SECULARIST
FANTASY."
That the Holy Bible has always been the Book for historic Christianity no one would deny.
And, what people in history have been responsible for the stewardship, printing, and
transmission of the Bible? None other than the Caucasian peoples of the Anglo-Saxon,
Germanic, Scandinavian, and kindred people of the earth! The Bible has ALWAYS found a home
in the heart of the Caucasian race. Its influence upon the other races has been sparse,
sporadic, transient, and meager at best, the claims of the Judeo-Christian evangelists on
television and radio notwithstanding. The moral values of the Bible appear to take root
ONLY within the minds and hearts of the Caucasian Race.
The fact that the Anglo-Saxons have always been the custodians of the Bible links them
inseparably to the people of God and of Scripture. Lost Israel has been found: we are
they! The Bible is an Israelitish book written for and about the same people who have
always found a place for it within their homes, churches and public life. It is impossible
to give a true record of Anglo-Saxon activities without always taking into consideration
the Book (Regardless of what the anti-Christs, humanists, communists and etc., wish you to
believe).
Wherever this Race has gone, whether the fact of the presence of the Book is mentioned or
not, the writings of this Book and the spirit of its message have always played a most
prominent part in all our undertakings. The importance of the open Book in the hand of the
pioneers of our Race is clearly and appropriately depicted in the figurehead of the man on
the prow of the sailing ship in whose hand is held the open Book, and who, yet reading, is
moving forward as the vessel sails the sea. This figurehead of the earthly Americans
sailing to our shores should be a continuous reminder to our generation that this nation
was founded upon the Book and God's Laws.
But the Book has not always been opened. Evil forces have sought again and again to close
it; knowing that, so long as it remains open, the irresistible forward march of a Race
destined to conquer evil and establish righteousness and peace cannot be stayed! In the
early Christian century the disciples of our Lord brought the open Book to the Isles and
to a people residing in those isles whose forefathers, because of their refusal to keep
His laws, had been led captive into Assyria.
From the land of the Assyrians this Race had moved north and west: migrated through
southern and central Europe and, after centuries, finally reached the isles north and west
of Palestine. It was to them who Jesus sent His disciples to when He told them to go
"to the lost sheep of the house of Israel." To Israel in the Isles they went,
and to them they brought the open Book. Thus, after centuries, the open Book was placed at
the disposal of His people. As a result Christianity took root downward and grew upward in
the isles of the sea. A few centuries passed during which Christianity flourished in the
Isles, then the Book was again closed.
During the period known as the Dark Ages the light of spirituality was all but
extinguished, for there was no open Book to which the people might have access. The Bible
had been written in a language which the common people did not understand and chained to
the altar of the Church. This period of darkness ended in a spiritual revolution.
Society of the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries was agitated to its profoundest depths
as the Reformation began. The invention of the printing press had reduced the Bible from
the bulky hand-written Book to a little Book and translated into the common language of
the masses: placing it in the hands of the people, opened, that all might read its
contents. John saw a Mighty One holding that Book open. Men now had access to the Bible
and the result, insofar as evil forces were concerned, was to arouse them to frenzy, for
they knew that the open Book spelled disaster to all their plans. The Spanish Armada was
equipped and launched with the avowed purpose of forever closing that Book. But it was to
remain open and no physical power on earth could stop the Reformation.
With the opening of the Book there began a period of activity for the Anglo-Saxon-Israel
people, first to acquire a knowledge of what was written therein and afterwards to spread
that knowledge throughout the world. Such was the task assigned to this people of whom the
Lord said through Isaiah the Prophet: "And he said, It is a light thing that thou
shouldest be my servant to raise up the tribes of Jacob, and to restore the preserved of
Israel: I will also give thee for a light to the Gentiles, that thou mayest be my
salvation unto the end of the earth."
In fulfillment of that mission the Anglo-Saxon peoples have taken the Bible and translated
it into over a thousand different languages and in their missionary activities given it to
the nations. Missionary Societies in Great Britain and in the United States of America
have, for over a century, been actively carrying out the mission laid upon His Israel
people.
Upon careful examination, the Bible proves to be the family history of one people; the
Israel people of God. And touches the other races only when they come into contact with
the people of the book, the Israelites. The Bible refers to many people and nations, but
its primary focus is always Israel. The Bible is the manufacturer's handbook for His
people in time and creation. Everything that Israel needs to know for this life is
contained within the canon of the Bible, a book that has been Divinely inspired and
preserved throughout time.
The Holy Bible is intended to enable the Israelite people to be thocrats (ruled by God) in
this earth. Its principles, laws, and precepts govern every area of life. All of man's is
couched by God's Word. There is no escape from the Holy Scriptures, for they follow man
and government him in every possible area. Scripture is both infallible and unchangeable
because it issues from a sovereign God. The key to a successful and prosperous life is to
read meditate, memorize, and apply Scripture to every area of one's life. The early
chapters of Genesis cover the creation of the universe, the vegetable and animal kingdom,
and the final work of God's hand in the creation of man. The fall of Adam and the Genesis
Flood are all a major focus of the early portion of Genesis. The post flood history of
nations, the building of the Tower of Babel, and the multiplication of nations and people
are covered in these early chapters. Beginning with Genesis 12, the remainder of the Bible
IS FOCUSED ON ABRAHAM AND HIS OFFSPRING.
Abraham became the father of eight sons born to three different women: Sarah, Hagar, and
Keturah. Only one of these sons become the focus of the Bible. The birth of Isaac, the
seed of promise which God made with Abraham and Sarah, becomes the object of the Bible.
Like a giant laser beam, the Holy Scriptures zero in on the PROMISE SEED OF ABRAHAM.
Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob/Israel become the central focus of the bible from Genesis 12 to
the remainder of the Bible. Every mention of other people and nations is always in
relationship to Israel, and their interaction with the primary focus of the Bible.
Jacob, son of Isaac and grandson of Abraham, became the father of twelve sons. They are,
beginning with the eldest: Reuben, Simeon, Levi, Judah, Issachar, Zebulun, Joseph,
Benjamin, Dan, Naphtali, Gad, and Asher. These twelve men became heads of twelve tribes
that multiplied into a mighty nation numbering just short of three million people at the
time of the exodus from Egypt. In subsequent history, millions of these Israelites
populated the earth.
In Genesis 13:16 Abraham is promised that his seed will number as the dust of the earth.
Genesis 15:5 records the promise that Abraham's seed would become as populace as the stars
of the sky. Genesis 22:17 confirms that the seed of Abraham would become numbered like the
sands of the sea shore. Rebekah was prophesied to be the mother of thousands of millions
in Genesis 24:60. God promised Jacob that he would become a nation and A COMPANY OF
NATIONS in Genesis 35:11. From Joseph's sons Ephraim and Manasseh would come A MULTITUDE
OF NATIONS.
A number of questions flow out of these Biblical promises made to Abraham and his seed.
Where are the thousands of millions who were to spring from Isaac and Rebekah? What people
make up the COMPANY OF NATIONS promised Jacob/Israel? Where is the MULTITUDE OF NATIONS
that were to spring from Ephraim and Manasseh? We need to account for HUNDREDS OF MILLIONS
OF PEOPLE to fulfill all of the promises and covenants of the Bible!
The people known in modern history as "Jews" have NEVER at any time fulfilled
the promises made to Abraham. However, they have been found among the multiplied missions
that constitute the Anglo-Saxon, Germanic, Scandinavian, and kindred people of the earth.
Lost Israel has been found, and the Bible is the record of these people It is time that
their discovery as the subjects of the Bible be known to all who have spiritual eyes to
see and ears to hear.
The Bible is indeed an Israelitish book. Every author of Scripture descended from Abraham,
Isaac, and Jacob/Israel. The family history of the Israelite Race of people is contained
within the pages of the Holy Bible. The Bible is the composite history and genealogical
record of Israel. The genealogical records of Egypt, Babylon, China, Japan, and the other
nations is missing from the Bible BECAUSE THE BIBLE IS NOT THEIR RECORD!
The first five books of the Bible or Law, is said to have been written by Moses, an
Israelite. The historical records of Joshua, Judges, Ruth, I and II Samuel, I and Ii
Kings, I and II Chronicles, Ezra, and Nehemiah focus on the Israelites descended from
Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob/Israel. All of the books of Job, Psalms, Proverbs, Ecclesiastes,
and the Song of Solomon flow from the pen of inspired Israelite writers. Every prophet of
Scripture was an Israelite raised up to prophesy to either or both Judah and Israel, the
two primary families within Israel.
The New Testament is no exception to all that has previously been confirmed about the
Bible. Every writer of the New Testament was an Israelite. All of the Gospels, the
Epistles, and the Revelation Letter are inspired and preserved records of the Israelite
people. There is no book and no writer of the New Testament who does not have racial roots
into the stock of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob-Israel From the first chapter in Matthew's
Gospel to the final restoration of the twelve tribes in a new heaven and new earth in
Revelation 21, the New Testament is an Israelitish book. To make the family history of the
Bible include the entire world is to wreck and ruin the entire plan of a supernatural and
provident God. Failure to correctly identify Biblical Israel and understand the Bible
message has resulted in the Church world seeking to build a program of world evangelism.
The attempt of modern Christianity to evangelize the world has erased the color line in
the Church, greatly accelerated interracial marriage, and brought the Church of Jesus
Christ to a day of real peril. Universalism in salvation history is not found in the
Bible.
It is the vain imagination of man running wild before God and in disobedience to His Word.
Is it not about time that we were content to leave the non-Israelites of the world to
follow their gods and their religions and rest content in the knowledge that God has
ordained the Bible and the salvation history contained therein for His people Israel?
Why do we want to rewrite the Bible in the image of fallen man? Why do we seek to make the
Bible something that God did not intend? Let the non-Israelites of the world follow their
gods, build their temples, and read their religious books. Bring back the Israelite
missionaries that are running to the far corners of the earth with a program God did not
ordain. Is it not about time that we believed God and Scripture and be content to hear the
words of Jesus Christ in Matthew 15:14: "...I am not sent but unto the lost sheep of
the house of Israel."
As for Israel, let them follow Jesus Christ, be faithful to His Commandments, and
evangelize their own kind. What God hath ordained let no man seek to change. Whenever the
Anglo-Saxon people allow the Book to be closed, through neglect or a refusal to heed its
warnings or listen to its message, the ensuing spiritual decadence brings retribution in
sorrow, trouble and national calamities. The forces of evil were unable to close the open
Book at the time of the Spanish Armada, but now they have succeeded in bringing about the
closing of the Book in the evil doctrine of modernism. The teachings of this sugarcoated
Judeo-Christian atheism have literally closed the Book to the understanding of multitudes
of our people.
Our people, today, face a crisis of such magnitude as has never before been experienced by
our nation or people. It was a day of evil for our land when modernism entered our
seminaries and graduated into the pulpits of our churches - and it was brought in through
traitors to Almighty God and the Lord Jesus Christ, and by their enemies; who falsely
claimed to be Christian.
With the advent of this Judeo-Christian modernism the Book began to close and people
turned away from its truths until today millions never look into its pages nor read its
message. A state of spiritual decadence is afflicting our land with unbelief, from the men
who stand in our pulpits to those who sit in the pews and the multitudes that crowd the
streets of our cities. Let us once again open the Book before it is too late, that there
may be a revival of interest, bringing such a spiritual awakening that it will enable God
to save us.
Let those who are in authority seek for Divine guidance as they pilot the Ship of State
through troubled waters. They must yet open the Book and follow the instructions of God
contained in this Book of books; there is no other solution for the crisis ahead, nor can
we expect victory over our enemies until there is compliance with these requirements. Of
Israel the Lord said: "Behold, I send an Angel before thee, to keep thee in the way,
and to bring thee into the place which I have prepared. Beware of him, and obey his voice,
provoke him not; for he will not pardon your transgressions: for my name is in him. But if
thou shalt indeed obey his voice, and do all that I speak; then I will be an enemy unto
thine enemies, and an adversary unto thine adversaries. For mine Angel shall go before
thee, and bring thee in unto the Amorites, and the Hittites, and the Perizzites, and the
Canaanites, the Hivites, and the Jebusites: and I will cut them off."
Today that Mighty Angel has "in his hand a little book opened." Let us obey His
voice and follow the instruction of the opened Book that our enemies may become God's
enemies and our adversaries His adversaries. If we continue to provoke Him by refusing to
believe, to read, to study and to be guided by the instruction of the open Book, there
will be no one but ourselves to blame for the troubles and national calamities that will
come upon us. May the figurehead, the man with the open Book, so markedly portraying the
reason for America's greatness, be a symbol of a soon awakening throughout our land to the
need of opening our Bibles that God's Will may be done and our country and people saved
from all their enemies. The original charters, compacts, contracts, and constitutions, all
had their origin in the Bible. All the laws, rules, and regulations concerning civil,
religious, and hygiene were taken from the Bible and patterned after the Christian Faith.
All of the Common Law of the United States of America came directly out of the Old
Testament books of the Holy Bible, namely, the original source of our Common Law was the
books of Leviticus and Deuteronomy.
We will present a brief rendition of the contents contained herein so you will be able to
see and understand what is being presented much better.
1). Decentralization of Government: Deuteronomy 1; Exodus 18, show that the Ancient Hebrew
Republic was decentralized.
1 Samuel 8 shows God was against the Children of Israel in attempting to centralize power
by asking for a king. However, Yahweh had told Moses several hundred years prior to that
time, that the Children of Israel would, in deed, demand a king; that they would refuse to
have Him rule over them . That the result of their rejecting Yahweh would result in
tyranny. 1 Chronicles 11:3; Deuteronomy 1:13-17 demonstrate our Israelite people were to
have only local self-government - government by consent of the people. Deuteronomy 17:6-7
shows the people were to enforce the law, not the government. In order to keep the
government as close to the people as possible, strong local and regional governments
should be established with a limited national or central government. Such a division of
power is a safeguard against the tyranny of the centralization of power which the pagans
prefer.
History has shown that centralization of governmental power destroys the liberty and
rights of man. The way to have good and safe government is to divide the power among the
people and the localities, instead of entrusting it to one central body. Civil government
in a country should be subdivided into many levels; local, regional, national. The power
of each level should be clearly defined and sovereign in those defined areas. No level of
government should be able to usurp the jurisdiction of another. A great majority of the
power should rest on the local level.
The power of the national government, on the other hand, should be limited to matters like
defence, foreign policy, regulation of inter-regional and foreign commerce, citizenship
laws, coining money, patents and copyrights. Those chosen to represent the people must be
forced to face the same people frequently in order to be re-elected. This establishes
accountability. Half of the national legislature of the Ancient Hebrew Republic was
composed of an elected house of officers called 'judges' which were selected on the basis
of population, not regional or tribal representation.
Another house of their legislature was composed of two appointed 'elders' and two
scribes/lawyers representing each geographic region (tribe) plus the 24 priests totalling
70 men. This unelected body was known as the Sanhedrin. The elected representatives of the
people were chosen on the basis of population: 10s, 50s, 100s and 1000s. Moses would swear
them in or 'appoint' them only after they were selected by the people .
A multi-party system and the right of any citizen to form a party are essential. In
addition, the vote must be secret so that no pressure or fear of reprisal can influence
the outcome and the vote must be available to all citizens equally, regardless of race,
color, social status, religion or gender.
2). Constitutionalism: Deuteronomy 5, 6, 8; Romans 13:1-2 gives us the Rule of Law.
Exodus; Leviticus; Numbers; Deuteronomy, Exodus 20; list the Ten Commandments, God's Laws
and Statutes. 2 Corinthians 3:17; John 19:11 show the Creator endowed our rights, and that
they were not government-granted rights or privileges.
The concept of constitutionalism began when Moses presented the Book of the Covenant to
the people at Mount Sinai. This initiated the concept of a national covenant or
constitution which must be agreed upon by the people before the government has legitimacy.
In a decentralized government a constitution, and a so-called ruling party or parties, is
supreme. A government of liberty will be a government of laws, not of rulers or of the
majority. In a pure democracy, a simple majority (just over 50%) of the people rule. The
rights of the minority could, and most likely, would be in jeopardy under such a
government. Therefore, the best form of democracy will be a constitutional democracy.
Here, the law is supreme, and both the people and the rulers are subject to the law. This
is essential for the protecting of the individual's rights to life, liberty, and property.
Since the law is supreme and not the rulers, the people will be protected from the ruler's
tyranny.
Many contrast a constitutional republic with a parliamentary form of government in which
parliament, rather than a fixed written constitution, is the supreme source of law.
However, a Parliament tends to favor whatever groups gain the majority coalition and
potentially may oppress the rights of minorities and individuals as it pleases.
3). Separation of Powers: The Ancient Hebrew Republic had separation of power. Isaiah
33:22 reveals the three functions carried out in all governments; legislative, executive,
judicial. Since man is fallen and sinful, he must be limited in power, as a prohibitive
measure to protect our God- given rights from the tyranny of unjust rulers,
which was why there were to be a separation of powers. Every government exercises power
through three different branches - the legislative, which makes the laws, the executive
which enforces and carries out the laws and the judicial which interprets the laws. The
Bible recognizes these three functions in Isaiah 33:22 when it says that the Lord is our
King, our Lawgiver and also our Judge. Because God is perfect and all-wise, He can
exercise all these functions simultaneously and righteously. Sinful, finite man cannot.
Thus one of the ways of limiting government power is to decentralize by ensuring that
different people run these different branches of government. Tyranny will result when
these three branches are in the same hands. An example of checks and balances is the
executive having the right to veto laws passed by the legislative, and the legislative
being able to override the veto with a larger percentage vote by their members.
Judicial Tyranny:
Empowered by The People
The United States Supreme Court has run amok. It has dis-emboweled most of the ten
Amendments of our Constitu-tion's Bill of Rights; pervert the 11th Amendment (which
affects judicial powers); threatened the 12th (presidential election procedures) with
computer rigging; allowed "involuntary servitude" (in the form of excessive
taxation) once prohibited by the 13th Amendment; paid only lip service to the 14th
(regarding citizenship and due process); and abused the 16th (never properly or legally
ratified).
In recent years, they've started dismantling our 1st Amendments rights to freedom of
speech, press, and petition for redress of grievances. And then on December 1, 1991, they
essentially terminated our constitutional right to trial by jury. The destruction of our
constitutional rights is based on Judiciary Law 28 USC 2072 which grants the Supreme Court
the power to make procedural rules provided that "such rules shall not abridge,
enlarge or modify any substantive right." Sounds reasonable enough, but the statute
includes the following "repealer:" "All views in conflict with such rules
shall be of no further force or effect after such rules have taken effect."
In other words, once these rules are passed, even by default, any previous rules or laws
to the contrary are automatically repealed. This repealer renders the statute
unconstitutional "on its face" and subject to challenge since the statute
permits the supreme court to non-judicially repeal laws previously passed by the
legislature. Nevertheless, the statute and the court's unconstitutional power continue
unpublicized and unchallenged. The judiciary's rule making assault on the Constitution
started after the Great Depression, when Congress began to shift some of its legislative
function to the Supreme Court. Instead of maintaining its constitutional responsibility to
legislate the procedural rules of federal courts. Congress ceded that power to the Supreme
Court.
At first, the Supreme Court made the Federal Rules of Civil Procedure (and also the
Federal Rules of Evidence, Criminal Procedure, and Appellate Procedure). Later several of
the Supreme Court Justices requested that the Supreme court be relieved of the rule making
power in order to avoid the "embarrassment of having to sit in judgment on the
constitutionality of rules which we have approved and which as applied in given situation
might have to be declared invalid." So to insulate the Supreme Court from political
repercussions, the rule making the power was shifted to another agency of the judiciary
called the "Judicial Conference." (The Judicial Conference includes the Chief
Justice of the Supreme Court, the Chief Judge of each of the twelve U.S. Circuit Courts,
the Chief Judge of the Court of International Trade, and one district court judge from
each of the Circuits. The diversity of judges sounds somewhat like a legislature that
serves only lawyers, doesn't it?).
Early each year, the Judicial Conference proposes whatever new procedural rules they want.
In the Spring, the Supreme Court rubber stamps the Judicial Conference's proposed rules,
and sends them to Congress for approval. In Congress, the House and Senate Judiciary
Committees are responsible for examining the proposed rules and rejecting those that are
constitutionally repugnant. (This is a curious reversal of constitutional roles; the
judiciary makes the rules, a legislative function, while the congressional committees
determine the rules' constitutionality, the legitimate role of the judiciary).
Although Congress can theoretically vote against the proposed rules, they almost never do.
Worse, Congress is not even obligated to approve the proposed rules for the rules to pass.
Each year, if Congress simply does nothing, the rules pass by "default" and
become Law. And that's what typically happens: The Judiciary writes the rules it wants.
Congress does nothing, and the rules become Law by default. Worse, any existing law or
rule which contradicts the new rules, is automatically repealed without a direct
Legislative or Judicial act. Congress has essentially surrendered its obligation to make
laws to the Judiciary in an obvious violation of the Constitution and the doctrine of
separation of powers.
As proof consider a July, 1991 article in Shepard's Litigation Reporter entitled
"Recent Amendments to the Federal Rules of Civil Procedure." The law
industry/lobby is so complacent about this rule-making process the article noted that
these proposed rule amendments "are to take effect on December 1, 1991," but
neglected to include the proviso "if Congress doesn't object." Why? Because
everyone knows that so long as the people are silent on the issue, Congress won't object
in the least, even though this year's rules seek to deny the last vestige of people power:
the jury trial.
We Were Warned
But none of this is news. We were warned. From 1937 to 1963, the liberal Supreme Court
Justices Brandeis, Black, Frankfurter, and Douglas frequently opposed the judiciary's
submission of proposed rule amendments to Congress. Excerpts from their objections:
"While some of the Rules of Civil Procedure are simply housekeeping details, many
determine matters so substantially affecting the rights of litigants in law suits that in
practical effect they are the equivalent of new legislation which...the Constitution
requires to be initiated in and enacted by the Congress and approved by the President. The
Constitution... provides that all laws shall be enacted by the House, the Senate, and the
President, not by the mere failure of Congress to reject proposals of an outside agency.
Our chief objection to the rules relate essentially to fact that many of their provisions
do 'abridge, enlarge, or modify' substantive rights and do not 'preserve the right to
trial by jury' but actually encroach upon it." ; "...Judges have whittled away
or denied the right of trial by jury, through the devices of direct verdicts and judgments
notwithstanding verdicts. Although the amendment here is not itself a momentous one, it
gives formal sanction to the process by which the courts have been wresting from juries
the power to render verdicts. Since we do not approve of this sapping of the Seventh
Amendment's guarantee of a jury trial, we cannot join even this technical coup de
grace." ; "Such devices are used to impair or wholly take away the power of a
jury to render a general verdict. One of the ancient, fundamental reasons for having
general jury verdicts was to preserve the right of trial by jury as an indispensable part
of a free government...Rule 49 is but another means utilized by the courts to weaken the
constitutional power of juries and to vest judges with more power to decide cases
according to their own judgments. A scrutiny of the special verdict and written
interrogatory cases in appellate courts will show the confusion that necessarily results
from the employment of these devices and the ease with which judges can use them to take
away the right to trial by jury."
Although the liberal Supreme Court Justices sometimes object to proposed rules as being
unconstitutional, their warnings were unheard by the public, ignored by the Congress, and
outvoted by the balance of the Supreme Court. As a consequence, the Supreme Court and
Judicial Conference have caused a constant erosion of our rights by making
unconstitutional procedural Laws in small, sneaky steps. But, the Judicial Conference's
assault on our constitutional rights is so bold as to be frightening. This year's proposed
Rule amendments to the Federal Rules of Civil Procedure are presently before Congress. On
December 1, 1991, these rules were to become Law over the Constitution and statutes, if
We, The People, did not intercede. If passed, four of these rules, in particular, will
effectively repeal our right to trial by jury. Although these four rules will not prohibit
trials by jury, they will end our absolute, constitutional right to trial by jury in
federal courts. We will no longer receive a trial by jury as an automatic, undeniable,
constitutional right, but only as a privilege to be selectively granted or refused
according to the whims of federal judges.
For example, proposed Rule 16(c)(15) will give federal judges the unconstitutional sua
sponte power (the ability to act on their own initiative, without even responding to a
litigant's motion) to enter summary judgments "to avoid unnecessary costs of
trial" at a pretrial conference. If the judge thinks you don't have a case, he can
simply decide in favor of your adversary, in the relative secrecy of a pretrial
conference. He can deny your right to trial by jury based on nothing more than his
personal evaluation of your case's prospects.
Of course, the judge can also deny your right to trial by jury because of your race, your
gender, your political affiliation, whether you're pro se, whether your adversary's lawyer
is a personal friend of the judge, whether the other side's bribed the judge, or whether
your case represents a constitutional issue the courts would rather not consider in
public. Federal judges will be able to do all that and more, provided they don't admit it
publicly, and justify their actions as per Rule 16(c)(15) as avoiding "unnecessary
costs of trial."
Both the current and proposed rule 41(b) permit the involuntary dismissal of cases for
failure to comply with other procedural rules or any court order. This Rule violates the
right to equal protection under the law because it applies only to plaintiffs, not
defendants. Since only plaintiffs are vulnerable, the courts can effectively restrict some
kinds of cases or litigants from even initiating a lawsuit (petitioning for redress of
grievance), let alone being heard in court.
For example, if you were trying to sue a judge or lawyer, a federal judge could
theoretically dismiss your case based ostensibly on the technicality of failing to observe
one of the myriad of other procedural rules. This reliance on technicalities may
constitute a de facto denial of our right to due process of law. The potential for
judicial abuse is obvious. Proposed Rule 50 will give federal judges total tyrannical
power to abort a case before giving it to the jury. The "Motion for judgment as a
matter of law" will authorize judges to enter judgments at any time during the trial
whenever a party has been fully heard with respect to only a single issue (not the whole
case) and the judge decides it's apparent that the party is unable to carry the burden of
proof essential to his case. Again, there is an enormous potential for abuse.
Proposed Rule 52 (judgment on partial findings) will give judges the same power as in Rule
50, except in non-jury trials. You can even prepare for trial, start your evidence, and
bingo, if the judge becomes bored, your case can be dismissed!
PUBLIC APATHY? OR PUBLIC POWER?
The liberal Justices Brandeis, Frankfurter, Black, and Douglas could not overcome the
unconstitutional rule-making by the Supreme Court and Judicial Conference. And though
Congress is obligated to overturn unconstitutional court decisions or decisions which
misinterpret the Constitution, they normally ignore their duty, unless they are lobbied.
Almost everyone has a lobby; NRA, NAACP, IPAC, Pro-Choice, Animal Rights, the Environment,
etc.
Even judges have a lobby which they use to petition Congress for judicial immunities! With
the rise of special interests, PACS, and unbridled political campaign contributions, the
people's original lobby, the Congress, has abandoned us. Now, only We, The People, have no
lobby, so our government ignores us. It should be painfully clear that if We, the People,
do not object, no one else will. We have the power. That power is in the vote and in
organizations supporting legal reform. But by failing to use those powers, especially in
an organized way, we are surrendering our rights. If we are to stop the judiciary's
usurpation of power and our loss of rights, we must stop blaming our legislators as being
totally responsible and accept some of the blame ourselves.
Call your Congressman or Senator and demand that Congress overturn any judicial rule
making which violate the Constitution. Ask them specifically what the status of
"Proposed Amendments to Federal Rules of Civil Procedure; 16 (c)(15), 41(b), 50, and
52 - which will give federal judges the unconstitutional power to deny trial by jury, due
process of law, and equal protection of the laws. These rules are currently buried in the
House Sub-Committee on Judicial Administration."
4). Trial by Jury: Deuteronomy 16:18-20; Exodus 18:15-16 shows were to receive a fair
trial under the law. Exodus 18:15-16 demonstrates the Right of Habeas Corpus. Deuteronomy
17:6; 19:5; Numbers 35:30; Matthew 18:15-16; Hebrews 10:28; 1 Timothy 5:19; 2 Corinthians
13:1 states there must be two or three witnesses against a person.
Another check on sinful men abusing their governmental power is having a court system with
judges independent of the executive or legislative branch, and by having trials by jury.
The courts are the ones who are to keep an eye on the legislative and executive branches
of government and determine their faithfulness to constitutional standards.
The Ancient Hebrew Republic emphasized an independent and impartial judiciary . It is also
asserted in passages such as Deuteronomy 19:15-19 that,
a). One is innocent until proven guilty;
b). The right to due process of law;
c). One cannot be forced to testify against oneself;
d). Accusers must personally confront you so they may be cross-examined, and
e). The right to appeal to a higher court . Wrongdoers must be punished by judges who, as
well as knowing the law, must be honest, refuse bribes and not show favoritism.
However, in order to protect individual liberty and guarantee a fair trial, the judicial
system needs a jury made up of unelected individuals who will not be swayed by political
pressures and who are drawn at random from the same social level as the defendant. The
jury system was foreshadowed in the Ancient Hebrew Republic and in the teaching of
Jesus concerning taking cases to the people .
5). Civilian Control of Police and Military Forces: In ancient Israel the people were
armed and formed the military. Their leaders were selected or consented to by the people:
Even the kings governed by consent demonstrates that the people were to have freedom
and peace through strength; that they were to bear arms for self-defence. That civil
government bears the sword and the rulers were to govern by the people's consent.
Another crucial curb on the power of sinful men in government is a civilian-dominated and
controlled police and militia. The Ancient Hebrew Republic clearly separated the
leadership of the army from the Executive branch: Moses was the Executive and Joshua was
the Commander of the military; David was the King and Joab was the Commander of the
military. The members of the militia, or civilian army, supplied their own weapons which
presupposed the right to bear arms . Any attempt to prohibit the right of an individual to
own arms was unbiblical and is a pagan attempt to centralize power .
The officers of the armies should not be appointed by the head-of-state, but by elected
representatives from their own geographical area. The majority of a nation's army should
simply be working citizens who have their own weapons and can be called together quickly.
The police force should be locally and regionally controlled and completely separate from
military power and from federal control. The head of the police forces should be elected
and governed by local government. The rest of the police should be hired by the government
as normal employment.
6). Free Market Economy: Genesis 1:26-28; Psalm 115:16; Exodus 20:15; Deuteronomy 19:14;
Ecclesastes 5:19 relate we were to have Private property rights; freedom of individual
enterprise.
Ancient Israel ensured that none of the areas under the jurisdiction of the individual,
the family and the church were controlled by the State. The only legislation the
government could pass in these areas was to protect equal opportunity, liberty and the
property of individuals. However separation of church and state did not mean religious
individuals were prohibited from influencing politics. A free market economy (within the
confines of the United States - not international) is especially important because its
components are essential for any country that desires to secure individual liberty and
economic productivity. Its components include private property rights, individual
enterprise and a free market. Private property includes all things that belong to an
individual through his own labors or which has been freely given to him.
This includes land, homes, personal possessions, inventions, wages, his religious beliefs,
his opinions, his freedom of speech and his writings. The basic idea of individual
enterprise is that when people are free to acquire and own property, produce what they
want choose their occupation, live and work where they wish, acquire whatever goods and
services they desire, and have access to free markets they will prosper, and,
consequently, cause their nation to prosper. In a free market (within the confines of the
various states in the United States) people offer quality goods or services that are
produced by their special talents and that they feel will be a benefit to the community.
Each person is free to sell or not to sell at whatever price they want to offer, but they
cannot force anyone to buy. The price of goods and services will be determined by 'supply
and demand.' The government must not interfere in the free market by setting prices and
wages, but must protect the free market by punishing theft and fraud. All men are equal in
their right to life, liberty, their equal status before the law and their right to acquire
property. However, they are not equal in their talents and abilities and therefore in
their ability to generate wealth. Each person is created by God and is unique and
distinct. He is responsible for his own choices and actions and must also bear the
consequences of his decisions. A government which has a false idea of equality says men
have an equal right to material possessions and tries to redistribute wealth accordingly.
By so doing it stifles initiative and individuality and weakens the country economically.
COMMERCE
One of the most detrimental acts; an act which is clearly evident to those who will only
look, which is helping to destroy our beloved America, is international commerce! Yet, our
people have been led to believe by traitorous leaders that commerce is good and wonderful.
Instead of the tool of destruction Satan is using in his never ending efforts to destroy
God's people, the Anglo-Saxon, Germanic, Scandinavian, Celtic and kindred peoples of the
word.
Yes the so-called Christian Nations of the Western World, of whom the United States, the
New Jerusalem spoken of in the scriptures; the home of the Kingdom of God when Christ
comes to take over His rightful place as the ruler of the earth, are being destroyed by
international commerce and because of the culpability of the media, our people cannot see
what is happening.
Michaleis in his Commentary on Laws of Moses, Article 39, pointed out the extreme
indifference of Moses toward foreign or maritime commerce. To some of the politicians of
our day, this will seem little short of remarkable. Yet there is obvious some erroneous
ideas lies at the bottom of their amazement. For when they observe the wealth acquired, in
recent years, by Japan and Germany, through foreign trade; which is so striking, many are
apt to think commerce alone is the true source of national prosperity, and that it is the
greatest benefit which a legislator can confer upon his constitutes. The mere mention of
the name "commerce" fascinates their imagination and seems to make them
incapable of sound and sober reflection and comparison.
In the stupor and delirium of their dreams of vast wealth and power they are totally
oblivious to the fact that commerce is proving to be the ruin of both public and private
prosperity; the approaching destruction of our beloved country, as too many superfluous
commodities are imported, and America is plunged into the mire of foreign indebtedness.
The main cause of this over valuation of commerce, as compared to agriculture is; those of
agriculture are reserved and modest; seldom coming to the public notice [unless something
stops the food from getting to their grocery shelves], whereas those of commerce lie upon
the surface and are more open to general observation. Japan appears to be the most
commercial nation on earth today. Her trade with the United States is enormous; yet the
entire annual movement of this commerce both ways would pale in insignificance to that of
agriculture were in not for the action of those in government to destroy America's power.
Commercial pursuits are unstable and are drastically effected to changes, in the
international markets; whereas agricultural are solid and much less effected by
international whelms. The prizes in commerce are few; when one individual or company rises
hundreds sink into oblivion and ruin. The physical and moral influences of commerce and
agriculture is almost indescribable. Where agriculture is both mother and father of
health, industry, temperance, cheerfulness, friendliness, and frugality; of simple
manners, pure and strong morals; of patriotism and domestic virtues and above all that
sturdy independence, without which a man is not a man; but becomes feminine and is the
slave or servant [Is not America becoming a servant nation?] the plaything of the
anti-Christs and heathens. Agriculture produces and cherishes a spirit of equality and
sympathy. Buying and selling are the chief business of cities, where the giving and
receiving of wages an hourly or daily transaction. It produces a collision of interests
and feelings, which of necessity checks the feeling of sympathy. International commerce
creates immorality, indifference, apathy, crime, drug abuse; in other words everything
that is evil and anti-God, anti-Christ, anti-Christian and anti-American. The goals of
Satan.
Agriculture strengthens love of country, racial pride. The heart of the former and rancher
is tied to the fields and pastures, where he bestows his love and labor, which responds in
turn to his work by clothing itself in beauty and riches beyond measure. More especially
when possessions have come down through a long line of honored ancestors, which
strengthens even more the attachment he feels to his home and country. Agriculture
produces the highest degree of conservation in its nature and every action. It is a great
antagonist of that Satanic spirit of liberalism, radicalism and revolutionary innovations,
which is the greatest enemy of Christian institutions which was observed long ago by
Aristotle, who stated: "Husbandry is the best stuff of a commonwealth, such a
one being the most devoted to liberty, and the least subject to innovation or
turbulence."
It is in the occupation of the rural life, that ones mind is the most tranquil, sober and
unclouded by media hype. It is in such an atmosphere, one can most clearly discern the
relations of things; to look beyond the spur of the moment, the events of a day. It is
from the country, from the land free nations have drawn many of their greatest leaders and
patriots.
An Israelite farmer was summoned from the quiet of farm life on the distant plains of
Midian, to become the lawgiver and founder of a mighty republic. It was an American farmer
who led the first American army to victory, and secured for his grateful and admiring
countrymen [with God's help], the blessings of liberty, independent self-government: A
REPUBLICAN CHRISTIAN NATION! Our American government and American people should follow
Moses and give no encouragement to international or maritime commerce because:
1). International Commerce tends to counteract the first and highest principles of
Christianity, morality and honesty.
2). International Commerce entices too many of our citizens and industry to leave America
and settle in foreign lands. It weakens patriotism and causes them to eventually betray
the trust and best interests of the United States. It causes them to become, in a sense, a
citizen of the world with no love or affection for the country of their birth.
3). International Commerce introduces luxurious tastes and habits, such as drug addiction
and perversion. The bad effects of commerce far outweighing the good.
4). International Commerce makes enemies between nations with common ancestors. Such as
the wars between England and France; England and Spain; France and Spain; United States
and Germany and etc.
5). It drains off a nations wealth; just as it has the United States. Once
the richest nation ever known in the history of the world.
Now, since its leaders have betrayed their trust and have led America down the
International Maritime Commerce path to destruction. Except God and Christ intervenes.
6). International Commerce is condemned in the scriptures, Chapter 18 of the Book of
Revelation is a ringing indictment against it. In verse four God's people are admonished
to not participate; to come out of her.
However, we should point out, there is one form of commerce which is beneficial to America
and its people: That is internal commerce. Which made America rich and powerful in the
first place!
7). Election of Representatives: Deuteronomy 1:13-17; Exodus 18:21-27.
THE ESSENTIAL FOUNDATIONS OF A REPUBLICAN FORM OF GOVERNMENT
1). Self-government: 1 Timothy 3:5; Proverbs 16:31.
2). Union: The Bible is full of examples of covenants. 1 Corinthians 1:10; Psalms 133:1;
Ephesians 4:1-3.
3). Individuality: Genesis 1. God's creation reveals the principle of individuality.
God created all things, He is reflected in His creation. Each member of the
Church has unique callings and gifts.
4). Property: Genesis 1:1; Isaiah 43:7; Ephesians 2:10; Revelation 4:11. God created the
earth and all things on it, including man. Therefore, we belong to Him. We are not our
own. We were created for His glory and His purpose. We are to be good stewards of that
which is first our own person, and includes our conscience, which is the most sacred of
all property. Acts 24:16 We should strive to maintain a blameless conscience.
5). Education: Deuteronomy 10:12-14; 6:4-9; Matthew 13; Mark 4; Luke 8. These chapters
reveal the importance of the seed principle. Education operates like a seed.
6). Morality: Romans 8:19; John 15; Acts 24:16; Matthew 7:15-29; Galatians 5:22-23. The
fruit of the Spirit.
7). Faith: Exodus 20; Deuteronomy 28; Luke 10:27. Our faith in God and adherence to His
truth is the foundation for blessing and success in all walks of life. This is one major
theme of the Bible. The Christian system of government as established in the United States
of America had its origin predominantly as follows:
1). The Old Testament of the Bible,
2). The New Testament of the Bible,
3). Magna Carta of 1215,
4). Petition of Rights of 1628,
5). Habeas Corpus of 1679,
6). Bill of Rights of 1689,
7). Articles of Confederation of 1643-1684,
8). Declaration of Independence of July 4, 1776,
9). Articles of Confederation of 1781,
10). Constitution of the United States 1789,
11). Bill of Rights 1791.
Sir William Blackstone (1723-1780), the famous English authority on jurisprudence, gives
the following definition of Divine Law as it applies to human or man-made laws:
"Disobedience to any one of the Divine Commandments throws the whole structure of
national life out of harmony with universal law." He also said: "On account of
the blindness and imperfection of human reasoning, God has given a Divine and direct
revelation of His natural laws...to be found in the Scriptures THESE LAWS ARE SUPERIOR IN
OBLIGATION and NO HUMAN LAWS HAVE ANY VALIDITY IF CONTRARY TO GOD'S LAWS."
Let's take a look at part of the original grants and charters, more of which will be
presented later:
1). To Christopher Columbus, 1492: "Ferdinand and Isabelle, BY THE GRACE OF GOD, King
and Queen of Castile, of Arragon, of Scily...For as much as you, Christopher Columbus, are
going by our command, with some of our vessels and men, to discover and subdue some
Islands, and Continent in the ocean, and it is hoped that by GOD'S ASSISTANCE, some of the
said Islands and Continent in the ocean will be discovered and conquered by your means and
conduct..."
2). To Sir Humphry Gylberte, June 11, 1578:"Elizabeth BY THE GRACE OF GOD, Queen of
England.. do give and grant to our trusted and well-beloved servant Sir Humphrey Gilbert
of Compton, in our castle of Devonshire Knight, and to his heirs and assignes FOR EVER,
free liberty and license from time to time, and at all times forever hereafter, to
discover, find, search out, and view such remote, heathen and barbarous lands, countries,
and territories NOT ACTUALLY POSSESSED OF ANY CHRISTIAN PRINCE OR PEOPLE...and forasmuch,
as upon the finding out, discovering, and inhabiting of such remote lands, counties, and
territories, as aforesaid, it will be necessary for the safety of all men that shall
adventure themselves in those journeys or voyages, TO DETERMINE TO LIVE TOGETHER IN
CHRISTIAN PEACE AND CIVIL QUIETNESS EACH WITH THE OTHER...according to such statutes, laws
and ordinances, as shall by him, the said Sir Humphrey, his heirs and assignes, or ever,
or any of them, devised or established for the better government of the said people as
aforesaid: so always that the said statutes, laws, and ordinances may be as near as
conveniently may, agreeable to the form of the laws and policy of England; and also, THAT
THEY BE NOT AGAINST THE TRUE CHRISTIAN FAITH OR RELIGION NOW PROFESSED IN THE CHURCH OF
ENGLAND."
3). First Charter of Virginia, April 10, 1606: "I, James, BY THE GRACE OF GOD, King
of England... We, greatly commending, and graciously accepting of, their Desires for the
furtherance of so noble a Work, which may, by the PROVIDENCE OF ALMIGHTY GOD, hereafter
tend to the Glory of his Divine Majesty, in the PROPAGATING OF CHRISTIAN RELIGION."
4). Sir Robert Heath by Charles 1st, Oct. 30, 1629: "Whereas our beloved and faithful
subject and servant, Sir Robert Heath Knight our Attorney General, kindled with a certain
laudable and pious desire as well of ENLARGING THE CHRISTIAN RELIGION..."
5). Orders of Connecticut, January 14, 1639: "Forasmuch as it hath pleased the
ALMIGHTY GOD by the wise disposition of His Divine Providence so to order and dispose of
things that we, the Inhabitants and residents of Winsor, Hartford and Wethersfield, are
now cohabiting and dwelling in and upon the River of Connecticut and the Lands thereunto
adjoining; and well knowing where a people are gathered together THE WORD OF GOD REQUIRES
that to maintain the peace and union of such a people THERE SHOULD BE AN ORDERLY AND
DECENT GOVERNMENT ESTABLISHED ACCORDING TO GOD, to order and dispose of the affaires of
the people at all seasons as occasion shall require; do therefore associate and conjoin
ourselves to be as one Public State or Commonwealth; and do, for our selves and our
successors and such as shall be adjoined to us at any time hereafter enter into
Combination and Confederation together, TO MAINTAIN AND PRESERVE THE LIBERTY AND PURITY OF
THE GOSPEL OF OUR LORD JESUS WHICH WE NOW PROFESS as also the discipline of the churches,
which according to the truth of the said gospel is now practiced amongst us..."
6). Articles of Confederation, 1643-1684: "Whereas we all come into these parts of
America with one and the same end and aim, NAMELY, TO ADVANCE THE KINGDOM OF OUR LORD
JESUS CHRIST and TO ENJOY THE LIBERTIES OF THE GOSPEL in purity with peace...that, AS IN
NATION AND RELIGION, SO IN OTHER RESPECTS, WE BE AND CONTINUE ONE according to the tenor
and true meaning of the ensuing articles...The said United Colonies for themselves and
their posterities do jointly and severally hereby enter into a firm and perpetual league
of friendship and amity for offence and defence, mutual advice and succor upon all just
occasions BOTH FOR PRESERVING AND PROPAGATING THE TRUTH AND LIBERTIES OF THE GOSPEL and
for their own mutual safety and welfare."
There is no doubt, and it is clearly apparent the colonist knew they were to establish a
theocratic form of government which was to conform to the Word of God, that they were, in
actuality reestablishing the Kingdom of God on Earth, over which our Lord Jesus Christ
will reign when He returns to claim His rightful place over His Israel People: The
Anglo-Saxon, Germanic, Scandinavian, Celtic and kindred peoples of the earth. Common Law
rights were protected by the Northwest Ordinance of 1787. This is a Key Document
establishing our right to Common Law Judicial proceedings.
This Ordinance was passed by the Congress of the United States. Article 5 provided for the
creating of a maximum of five states which later became; Ohio, Michigan, Illinois,
Wisconsin and Minnesota. The last words of the introduction or preamble to the Articles of
the Ordinance, are as follows: "It is hereby ordained and declared by the authority
aforesaid, That the following article shall be considered as articles of compact between
the original States in said territory AND FOREVER REMAIN UNALTERABLE, UNLESS BY COMMON
CONSENT, TO WIT."
These articles HAVE NEVER BEEN ALTERED BY COMMON CONSENT OR IN ANY OTHER MANNER AND
PRESENTLY REMAIN THE LAW OF THE LAND. They may be found in the original forty-eight states
Compiled Laws if you were to check. Some points concerning the validity of the ordinance
that should be considered is:
a). It is a Federal Statute. The preamble reads forever unalterable. It is in the Compiled
Laws of many States. and it is protected by Article 4, Section 2, Part 1 of the
Constitution of the United States and reads as follows: "The citizens of each state
shall be entitled to all privileges of citizens in the several states."
Article 1, states: "No person, demeaning himself in a peaceable and orderly manner,
shall ever be molested on account of his mode of worship or religious sentiments, in the
said territory."
Article 2, states: "The inhabitants of the said territory shall always be entitled to
the benefits of the writ of habeas corpus, and of the trial by jury...and of judicial
proceedings according to the course of the Common Law..."
We should remind you that the Old Testament is the original source of Common Law and is
found in the books of Leviticus and Deuteronomy. The definitions of Noah Websters original
finalized dictionary in 1828 were adopted by Congress and by the courts. His definitions
were Common Law definitions and established a unity of language for the United States of
America
The Republican form of limited government, just as established by our ancient Israelite
ancestors, while encamped by Mount Siani, was established upon the premise: That each and
every individual is the creation of the Almighty God, that each and every one has a
separate and equal station to which the Laws of God entitle them. All men are created
equal [in the sight of God] and endowed by their Creator with certain Inalienable Rights
that are not to be encroached or infringed upon by another group, individual, or
government. Among those rights are Life, Liberty and the Pursuit of Happiness [the
ownership of land].
Governments are formed for the express purpose of protecting those rights, maintaining the
peace, and keeping law and order. The Government formed derives its just Powers from the
Consent of the Governed themselves. When the Governing faction becomes abusive and
destructive of these Ends delegated to them by the citizens it is the responsibility,
right and duty of the people to disolve, alter, or abolish it and institute New government
which will provide safe guards for their future security. "For rulers [government
leaders] are not a terror to good works, but to the evil...For he is the minister of God
to thee for good. But if thou do that which is evil, be afraid; for he beareth not the
sword in vain: for he is the minister of God, a revenger to execute wrath upon him that
doeth evil."
This simply means the Government was formed by the People through a written contact,
Compact, or Constitution within which the people delegate to the elected or appointed
representation presiding over the Government for the People the Laws, Rules, and
Regulations of power and authority they may exercise. The various governing bodies such as
the Executive, the Legislative, and the Judicial of the Federal, State, county and local
Municipalities must restrict their operations to within the boundaries of authority
delegated them by the People unless changed by the People themselves.
This is the principle describe in detail within the Declaration, the Articles of
Confederation, the Northwest Ordnance, the Constitution of the United States of America
and the first ten amendments known as The Bill of Rights. The Constitution of the United
States being the Supreme Law of the Land, until Christ returns, as is the added Ten
Amendments both have a Preamble that illustrates its personal Spirit and Intent. "WE
THE PEOPLE of the United States, in order to form a more perfect union, establish justice,
insure domestic tranquility, provide for the common defense, promote the general welfare,
and secure the blessings of liberty to ourselves and our posterity, do ordain and
establish this Constitution for the United States of America."
This emphases the fact that Government is established by the People, having only powers
and authority delegated to it by the People by Contact and it is to be contained within
those boundaries. The Preamble to the Ten Amendments known as The Bill of Rights is as
follows: "The conventions of a number of the States having at the time of their
adopting the Constitution expressed a desire, IN ORDER TO PREVENT MISCONSTRUCTION or ABUSE
OF ITS POWER, that FURTHER DECLARATORY AND RESTRICTIVE CLAUSES SHOULD BE ADDED: And as
extending the ground of public confidence in the Government will best insure the
beneficent ends of its institution..."
This preamble explains the Bill of Rights as being "Further Declaratory and
Restrictive clauses" for the purpose of preventing "Misconstruction or
Abuse" of Constitutional power. Our forefathers knew that Constitutional power can be
misconstructed or abused by those who are in the seat of governing authority, even though
placed there by the people who pay the bills, elect, appoint, or hire them. These are
Public Servants to be tried by the People themselves when found to be destroying,
subverting, or changing the delegated authority by Constitutional Contract. The Laws of
God intended that in each and every case the position of central authority for earthly
government should be vested within the people, and no one else.
PRINCIPLES
We lay down the following as our principles of interpreting symbolic prophecy.
First: Perfect coincidence of events with prophecy, is infallible proof of the fulfillment
of prophecy. It was in accordance with this principle, that Jesus proved himself to be the
Messiah.
Second: The definition of prophetic symbols is to be found in scripture, or to be
determined by fulfillment. Where a symbol has more than one scriptural sense, which is
rarely the case, its intended meaning must be determined either by its context or by
fulfillment, or by both.
Third: All interpretations must coincide with the literal and evangelical doctrines of the
Bible.
Fourth: All the symbolic days, months, and times, are interpretable on the same principles
as are the seventy weeks, and have a double, or twice doubled interpretation and
fulfillment.
Fifth: All symbolic prophecy of great events is given in twice doubled forms, or is
interpreted by symbols, or literally.
Sixth: The people of God are symbolized, always, in a dual character, coinciding with the
spiritual and civil departments of government, growing out of the spiritual and social
nature of man and the dual nature of the great law of love to God and love to man.
Seventh: The globe and mankind are to be freed from the curse, and the globe is not to be
annihilated, but renewed with all the splendors in the gift of Deity, and be the
tabernacle of God, the Holy of Holies forever and ever.
For our work, we ask the calm and charitable attention of the reader. We present it as a
theory, a true theory, of the dealings of God with the nations of the world; but we would
by no means compel anyone to adopt our conclusions against His will; we would rather let
the demonstrations be examined, and persuade by invincible and logical argument. Our
deductions are not the result of fugitive thoughts, but of unceasing attention by day and
by night, without intermission, for more than twenty years. Our labors have been of
unceasing attention, by day and by night, without intermission, for more than twenty
years. In addition to this, it may not be improper to remark, we sought God for wisdom to
understand the mystery which He said should be unsealed.
Through the pity of some, the derision of others, the rebukes of many, and with the good
wishes of but few, we have steadily pursued our course in quiet to the goal of our wishes;
and we now return with gratitude to God for our success. We commit the work we have
written to Him who hears the prayer of the humble, and doubt not but that it will do some
good to our country, our Israel brethren, and the world.
Should we be found somewhat in error in some small points relating to the future, it is no
more than would be naturally anticipated; but we feel assured that we are not, and can not
be. So far as the past is concerned, we feel assured that we are presenting to the public
some of the most extraordinary proofs of the inspiration of [the government of the United
States of America] in the scriptures that have ever been compiled in one place.
Being sustained, triumphantly, by the facts of the past, and judging the future by
principles deduced from certain knowledge, we feel that our judgment, in most cases, will
be found coincident with plain common-sense views of things. That ill fed and wounded
vanity may instigate the hostility to our work of small envy and jealousy, of pride of
sect and self-inflated opinion, and the hatred of the antichrists, of pride of sect and
self-inflated opinion, is what we expect to a small extent, and we rather court than shun
such prejudiced enmity.
In every instance where we differ from others on the subject, we do so because they do not
strictly conform to past facts, and by consequence must err, proportionally, with
reference to the future.
In some cases; very exalted human authorities will be consulted against us; but we appeal,
for support, to inspiration and to history and refuse to yield to any sanctified human
opinion that is not punctilious in accordance with known truth. We claim to have
discovered, that most old presentations are either erroneous in whole or in part.
Unknown to fame or to the famous, we appeal to common sense people, to read and decide our
correctness, for on account of such we have written; we crave not the attention of chiefs
and princes, but seek an humble place of consideration among the great Christian
republican people of regathered Israel, The United States of America.
The New Jerusalem and New Zion as spoken of in the scriptures. Misfortune is the fate of
discoverers and inventors generally, and we expect no exception will be made in our favor;
yet, from a better sphere than this, we hope in triumph to descend at the appearing of the
victory of God, and advent of that kingdom for which from infancy, each Christian child is
daily taught to pray. If, then, some humble place be ours among the glorified, we shall be
more than recompensed for our toil.
Chapter One
ISRAEL
To properly understand why America was founded as a Christian Nation, we must first
present you with the information of where our people came from. When speaking of our
people, we are of course talking of the descendents of Abraham, Isaac and Jacob-Israel;
the people known to the world today as the Anglo- Saxon, Germanic, Celtic, Scandinavian,
and kindred peoples of the earth.
In our studies we have come to realize: That the White Anglo- Saxons, Germanic,
Scandinavian, Celtic and Kindred people are True Israel [Which means by inference that THE
JEWS ARE IMPOSTERS: THEY ARE WOLVES IN SHEEPS CLOTHING]. And since this is so completely
alien to what you have always been taught by the Clergy of Organized Religion; whom I
believe to be, for the most part, nothing more than Baal Priests. That most have
prostituted themselves to the enemies of Christ because they had rather receive the gold,
silver and praise of man; more than the praise of God and of a promise of Eternal Life.
Therefore this presentation is an attempt to show you, from both secular and Bible
sources, that what we say about the Anglo-Saxons and etc., is true.
YOUR BIRTHRIGHT
Some will say at this point: "What difference does it make, if we are Israel?"
We must respond that it makes a lot of difference. If a person were to knock at your door,
and inform you that on the basis of legal documents, charters, covenants, and the last
will and testament of a testator, you were heir to a GREAT INHERITANCE, you would be truly
overjoyed, no doubt. By the same reasoning, this presentation will attempt to demonstrate
that if you are a natural born child of Abraham, Isaac and Jacob-Israel, you are heir to
an inheritance in Jesus Christ.
If you believe that you have been called to be a Christian, and you are of White
Anglo-Saxon, Germanic, Scandinavian, Celtic or Kindred people descent; then you MUST be
indeed, a natural born child of Abraham, and are, therefore, heir to the promises of the
Holy Bible. It can be demonstrated that there is a people upon the face of the earth
today, who by legal documents, charters, covenants, and a last will and testament recorded
in a Book called the Bible, are the heirs to the Grace of Jesus Christ and are thereby
called to inherit Eternal Life.
This presentation is knocking at your door, so to speak, today. You may be heir to the
promises of the Holy Bible. If you are called to be a Christian, and believe that the Holy
Spirit is guiding you into truth, then you should carefully study this presentation.
Because this could be the most important day in your life! Please do not shut the door to
your mind. Open that door and let the truth of Jesus Christ come into your life. Remember,
Jesus said: "And ye shall know the truth, and the truth shall make you free."
THE COVENANT
"...if ye be Christ's, then are ye Abraham's seed, and heirs according to the
promise." To ALL Christians, and to those Anglo-Saxons, Germanic, Scandinavian,
Celtic and Kindred people who are not YET Christians; who are searching to understand the
Holy Scriptures, Genesis to Revelation. The purpose of this discussion is to demonstrate
from the Holy Scriptures that those people who are called, and who believe, and become
Christians, do so, because they are the physical descendants of Abraham, Isaac and
Jacob-Israel. "God hath not cast away his people which he foreknew."
The promises made to the physical seed of Israel in the Old Testament, beginning with
Abraham, confirmed in Isaac and established in the thirteen tribes descended from
Jacob-Israel have been faithfully kept by Jesus Christ. "Now I say that Jesus Christ
was a minister of the circumcision for the truth of God, to confirm the promises made unto
the fathers."
The basic ground upon which this discussion is established is to be found in Romans 9:4-5.
"Who are Israelites; to whom pertaineth the adoption, and the glory, and the
covenants, and the giving of the law, and the service of God, and the promises; Whose are
the fathers, and of whom as concerning the flesh Christ came, who is over all, God blessed
for ever. Amen."
In these Scriptures Paul very clearly establishes:
1). The adoption,
2). The Glory,
3). The Covenant,
4). The giving of the Law,
5). The Service of God,
6). The promises, and
7). The fathers through whom Christ came in the flesh all belong to Israel.
Americans have in their homes a book, called simply, "The Bible." This book is
the religious book of 95% of all the churches in the English-speaking nations such as our
own.
Is the Bible a closed book to you? Or do you understand portions of it, while the rest
remains a mystery? You do want to increase your understanding of the Bible, do you not?
The Bible story begins in Genesis 1:1: "In the beginning God created the heaven and
the earth."
In the rest of Chapter 1 we are told of the creation of the animals and all living
creatures on the earth and under the sea. Chapter 2 is the forming of Adam, placing him in
the garden of Eden, of Eve, their disobedience, and removal from the Garden. In a few more
pages we read of the flood, the saving of Noah and his household, and the spreading of
their descendants across the land.
We learn of the building of the tower of Babel, its destruction, God's confounding of the
people's language, and their dispersion across the earth. In only a few pages, God covers
many centuries, including awesome and terrifying calamities. Then God speaks to one man, a
man named Abraham, and from that point on the Bible is about Abraham and his descendants.
In Genesis 12, God says to this man: "...Get thee out of thy country, and from thy
kindred, and from thy father's house, unto a land that I will shew thee: And I will make
of thee a great nation, and I will bless thee, and make thy name great; and thou shalt be
a blessing: And I will bless them that bless thee, and curse him that curseth thee: and in
thee shall all families of the earth be blessed."
Then follows a number of meetings between God and Abraham. God later meets with Abraham's
son, Isaac, and later with Jacob, the son of Isaac, and repeats the promises (Covenants)
made with Abraham. All of these promises and covenants have to do with the future of
Jacob's children. The rest of the Bible deals almost exclusively with these heirs of the
covenants and the promises, called in the Bible "The children of Israel."
The Law, the doctrines, the warnings, and admonishments, are addressed to Israel. All of
the Prophets are Israelites. All of the writers of both the Old Testament and the New are
Israelites. It is imperative that the ground and foundation for this Bible Study be
established upon the truth that the Bible is a Book written to, for, and about Israel
beginning with Genesis 12:1 and continuing through the remainder of the Bible.
It will be important to hold to a constant thread of divine truth as we establish that all
those who are called, Chosen, and quickened to believe and accept Christ, becoming
Christian do so because they are the physical seed of Abraham, Isaac and Jacob/Israel.
True Christians do not become children unto Abraham because they believe, they believe
because they are the children of Abraham. Herein lies the foundation for understanding the
Bible message of Salvation. To depart from this basic premise is to forfeit the basic
presuppositions upon which the Holy Scripture is written. To clearly establish the Old
Testament foundation for this discussion, let us turn to Genesis 12:3 wherein God Almighty
had declared to His servant Abraham: "And I will bless them that bless thee, and
curse him that curseth thee: and in thee shall all families of the earth be blessed."
The families spoken of are those nations, or families of people who were to come forth
from the loins of Abraham and who were to be counted as children of the promise.
Confirmation of this may be found in Jeremiah 2:4 where the Prophet declares: "Hear
ye the word of the Lord, O house of Jacob, and all the families of the house of
Israel."
Again in Jeremiah 31:1 we read: "At the same time, saith the Lord, will I be the God
of all the families of Israel, and they shall be my people."
Finally, we read in Amos 3:2: "YOU [Israel] ONLY HAVE I KNOWN OF ALL THE FAMILIES OF
THE EARTH: therefore I will punish you for all your iniquities."
We conclude that the promise made to Abraham in Genesis 12:3 is that all of the families
(nations) of the Israelite people would be blessed through faithful father Abraham. To
read anything else into Scripture is to distort the Word of God. Jesus Christ Himself
declared in Matthew 15:24: "...I am not sent but unto the lost sheep of the house of
Israel."
Turning once again to Genesis 17:7 Almighty God had declared to Abraham: "And I will
establish my covenant between me and thee and thy seed after thee in their generations for
an everlasting covenant, to be a God unto thee, and to thy seed after thee."
This Covenant of Promise, made to Father Abraham, was made to him and his seed after him,
throughout their generations, to be an everlasting covenant. This Covenant of Promise made
to faithful Abraham was an unconditional covenant made to Abraham and his seed after him.
This Covenant of Promise was made to bring about the eternal purposes established in the
Covenant of Grace, which was the Master Covenant established by God in Christ before the
foundation of the world for His people Israel.
Before this Covenant of Grace would be fulfilled in the sacrifical death of Jesus Christ
upon the cross, the Israelites would be given the conditional Covenant of Law which would
mirror their sin, causing them to know that their salvation was not through the works of
the Law, but rather through the Covenant of Grace wrought by the Blood of Jesus Christ,
the Lamb of God, slain from the foundation of the world . The Promise of Salvation was
made then to Abraham and his seed after him for an everlasting covenant. This Covenant was
not established in Ishmael, nor in the children of Abraham born to Keturah; rather it was
confirmed in the Seed of Isaac, in Genesis 17:21 where we read: "But my covenant will
I establish with Isaac..."
Again in Genesis 17:19 we read: "And God said, Sarah thy wife shall bear thee a son
indeed; and thou shalt call his name Isaac: and I will establish my covenant with him for
an everlasting covenant, and with his seed after him."
In Genesis 21:12; Romans 9:7 and Hebrews 11:18 we read that in Isaac was the seed to be
called. This is absolute confirmation that the Promises made to Abraham would be fulfilled
in the seed of Isaac. Again in Genesis 17:5 God Almighty promised Abraham that he would be
a father of many nations. Although Abraham was to become the father of nations through
Ishmael and through the sons born to Keturah, it was to that family of nations descended
through Isaac that the Covenant of Promise would be fulfilled. Again we recall Genesis
21:12 which declared that in Isaac would the seed of Abraham be called. This company of
nations that would descend from Isaac would be the recipients of the promise God almighty
made to Abraham in Genesis 22:18: "And in thy seed shall all the nations of the earth
be blessed; because thou hast obeyed my voice."
We can gather the importance of the Israelite people who descended from Abraham, through
Isaac by reading Deuteronomy 32:8-9: "When the Most High divided to the nations
their inheritance, when he separated the sons of Adam, he set the bounds of the people
according to the number of the children of Israel. For the Lord's portion is his people;
Jacob is the lot of his inheritance."
Israel was to be God Almighty's measuring line. Israel was to be the Elect of God . In
Isaiah 41:8-9 we read of the exhalted station to which Israel was chosen. "But thou,
Israel, art my servant, Jacob whom I HAVE CHOSEN, the seed of Abraham my friend. Thou whom
I have taken from the ends of the earth, and called three from the chief men thereof, and
said unto thee, Thou art my servant, I HAVE CHOSEN THEE, AND NOT CAST THEE AWAY."
The Promise made to Abraham was fulfilled in Israel, the people who descended from Isaac.
In Psalm 135:4 we read: "FOR THE LORD HATH CHOSEN JACOB UNTO HIMSELF, AND ISRAEL FOR
HIS PECULIAR TREASURE."
Since the unconditional Covenant of Grace, made from the foundation of the world was
made to Israel, the unconditional Covenant of Promise made to Abraham was necessary to
make the Covenant of Grace effectual. Before Israel could receive this Grace, it became
necessary to place them under the Covenant of Law, to expose their sin nature, and to
confirm that their salvation was through Grace and the shed Blood of the Lord Jesus Christ
and not the works of the law. The Covenant of Law, however, in keeping with the truth that
Salvation was to be for Israel, was given only to Israel.
ONLY THE ISRAELITES WERE PLACED UNDER THE LAW! "He sheweth his word unto Jacob,
his statutes and his judgments unto Israel. He hath not dealt so with any nation: and as
for his judgments, they have not known them. Praise ye the Lord."
This is confirmed in Psalm 105:6-10: "O ye seed of Abraham his servant, ye children
of Jacob HIS CHOSEN...He hath remembered his covenant for ever, the word which he
commanded to a thousand generations. Which covenant he made with Abraham, and his oath
unto Isaac; And confirmed the same unto Jacob for a law, and to Israel for an everlasting
covenant."
The Old Testament Scripture, beginning with Genesis 12:1 through the remainder of the Old
Testament Scripture, is written to, for, and about the Israelites. It affects the other
races and people of the earth, only as they come into contact with Israel. After the
twelve sons born to Jacob/Israel had multiplied into twelve tribes, this great family of
people went down into Egypt, where Jacob/Israel adopted the sons of Joseph; thus making
them thirteen tribes, which centuries later were lead out of Egypt by Moses, and into the
promise land by Joshua. There in the land of Canaan all of the thirteen tribes were
confederated together in a theocratic government during the reign of Judges which lasted
more than three hundred years.
It was during the lifetime of the Prophet Samuel, Israel elected to be ruled by earthly
Kings and was ruled over successively by Saul, David and Solomon. At the death of Solomon
in 975 B.C. the House of Israel was divided into two separate and distinct kingdoms of
people with the Northern Kingdom being occupied by ten of the tribes and approximately
one-half of the tribe of Levi; the Southern Kingdom being occupied primarily by Judah,
Benjamin, and the remainder of the tribe of Levi. From 975 B.C. forward through the
remainder of the Old Testament Scripture, Israel and Judah remained divided from each
other with the promise that they would ultimately be united together and restored under a
Theocratic Government. The Northern Kingdom of Israel, consisted of about 10 million
Israelites, was carried into captivity by the Assyrian Kings between 741 and 721 B.C., and
DID NOT RETURN TO THEIR HOMELAND IN SAMARIA.
The Southern Kingdom was invaded by the Assyrian Kings in 713 B.C. and a large number of
Judah and Benjamin were carried into the Assyrian captivity to join the other ten tribed
Israelites. The remainder of the Southern Kingdom was carried away into Babylon in about
588 B.C. and remained there during the seventy year Babylonian Captivity; at which time
about 50,000 returned to rebuild the temple in about 536 B.C.
When the Old Testament Canon comes to a close in 397 B.C. with Malachi, both Israel and
Judah still remained divided into two distinct and separate Kingdoms. A careful
examination of the Books of the Law and the Prophets, together with the Psalms, will
reveal that the promise throughout the Old Testament is that Israel would be redeemed and
restored back under the Covenant. The Scripture in the Old Testament is replete with
tremendous amount of evidence to prove that even though Israel of the Northern Kingdom had
been divorced and carried away into captivity, God had promised to bring them again under
the bond of His Covenant. Listen to the beautiful promise made to Israel and Judah by
Jeremiah the Prophet about 606 B.C. when both Israel and Judah were two distinct and
separate peoples within the House of Israel. "Behold, the days come, saith the Lord,
that I will make a new covenant with the house of Israel, and with the house of
Judah...But this shall be the covenant that I will make with the house of Israel; After
those days, saith the Lord, I will put my law in their inward parts, and write it in their
hearts; and will be their God, and they shall be my people."
Here is the promise of our God that He would make a New Covenant with His people Israel,
both Israel and Judah. The Law was to be written into their inward parts and was to be
inscribed within their hearts. This is further confirmed in Isaiah 51:7. Here is a
profound presupposition in the Holy Scripture of truth. THE NEW COVENANT WAS TO BE MADE
WITH ISRAEL AND JUDAH!
The Blood of Jesus Christ was to be shed for Israel, THE CHOSEN AND ELECT PEOPLE OF THE
LORD GOD ALMIGHTY. When we arrive at the New Testament Scriptures of the Bible, the
typical reader of the Bible, without a solid foundation of study in the Old Testament, is
at a loss to understand what he reads in the Gospels and Epistles of the New Testament.
Without a valid knowledge of the Old Testament he cannot understand that the New Testament
is the written confirmation of all the promises which were fulfilled at the first coming
of Jesus Christ and others which will be confirmed at His Second Coming.
WHAT HAPPENED TO THE ISRAELITES
For an answer to that question, we will call upon Mr. E. Raymand Capt, a Bible student and
Biblical archaeologist from California. Mr. Capt has traveled and studied extensively in
Europe and the Mideast. He lectures on the Dead Sea Scrolls, on the pyramids of Egypt and
on other archaeological subjects. Mr. Capt is the author of "The Great Pyramid
Decoded," "The Glory of the Stars," "Stonehenge and Druidism,"
"King Solomon's Temple," "Jacob's Ladder" and the "Abrahamic
Covenant." He relates the following concerning the tracing of Israel.
"During the last hundred years a number of archaeological teams have been working in
the Middle East. They have unearthed and published the original contemporary accounts of
the Assyrians, who took the Israelites captive. It is from these records that vital clues
have come to light. In fact, these records are found in the form of cuneiform tablets.
These tablets were found at Nineveh in 1900 and published in 1930. However, their
relevance to Israel was overlooked then, because they were found in complete disorder and
amongst about 1,400 other texts. The tablets were Assyrian frontier post reports, dated
about 707 B.C. They describe the activities of the people called 'Gimira,' who lived in
the land of 'Gamir.' The descriptions of Gamir described the area in which the Israelites
had been placed just a few years earlier. One tablet stated that when the king of Urartu
came into the land of Gamir, his army was routed, as the Gamira counter- attacked, entered
the land of Urartu, and killed their commanders...
The first archaeological evidence to establish a chronological link in the contacts
between Assyria and Israel are found on inscriptions on the side of a limestone stele
found at Nimrud, known as the 'Black Obelisk.' The stone was inscribed with the records of
Shalmaneser III and an illustration of the Israelite king Jehu bringing tribute to the
Assyrian king. An inscription above the illustration says: 'This is Jehu (Iaua), the son
of Khumri (Omri).'
Omri in Hebrew, begins with the consonant, 'Agin,' formerly called 'Gayin' which was
pronounced with a gutteral 'H,' that is 'Gh' or 'Kh.' The Israelites would have naturally
pronounced Omri as 'Ghomri' which became 'Khumri' in Assyrian.
As this inscription was executed nearly a century before the captivity of Israel, we know
now the reason secular historians found no mention of the exiled Israelites in ancient
records. IT WAS SIMPLY BECAUSE THE ASSYRIANS WHO TOOK THE ISRAELITES CAPTIVE DID NOT CALL
THEM BY THAT NAME. Historians are now aware of the fact that the Gamira were the same
people, who, about 30 years later, during the reign of Esarhaddon, king of Assyria, again
were called Gimira. [Notice the slight changes in spelling]..."
About 600 B.C. the Lydians drove the Gamira, or Cimmerians, out of Asia Minor, where they
settled in the Carpathian regions west of the Black Sea. We find them called in the second
book of Esdras, the people of Ar-Sareth. "...as for your seeing him gather about
himself another multitude that was peaceable, these are the ten tribes that in the days of
King Hoshea were carried away from their own land into captivity, whom Shalmaneser, king
of Assyria, made captives, and carried beyond the river; they were carried off to another
country. But they formed this plan among themselves, to leave the heathen population, and
go to where the human race had never lived, so that there perhaps they might keep their
statutes, which they had not kept in their own country. And THEY WENT IN BY THE NARROW
PASSAGES OF THE EUPHRATES RIVER. For the Most High then did wonders for them, for he held
back the sources of the river until they had passed over."
Archeology has solved two of the greatest archaeological problems: First, what happened to
the hundreds of thousands of Israelites who disappeared south of the Caucasus; and Second,
what was the origin of the "Cimmerians" and the mysterious nomadic tribes, known
as Scythians, who suddenly appeared north of the Caucasus both at the same time in
history. They were one and the same people. THEY WERE ISRAELITES. Now may I point out what
the Bible has to say concerning these same people: "For, behold, I am about to give
command, And I will shake the house of Israel among all the nations, Just as one shakes
the sieve, But not a kernel shall fall to the ground."
THE SO-CALLED "LOST TRIBES OF ISRAEL" REALLY WERE NEVER LOST. THEY ONLY LOST
THEIR IDENTITY AS THEY MIGRATED WESTWARD OVER THE CENTURIES FROM THE LAND OF THEIR
CAPTIVITY. And there you have it, an answer to our question: "What happened to the
millions of Israelites who were dispersed out of old Canaanland seven centuries before
Christ, and who never returned?"
With the answer of this question about Israel's disappearance we have been provided with
the key to several other mysteries of world history. Mr. Capt has revealed to us why it
was these people of Europe who became the great nations, and who were blessed by God above
all other nations, not only with fertile land and abundance from the seas, but with arts,
science, literature, inventions, and discovery.
God has bestowed upon that one race, the White Race, almost every invention and discovery
that has improved man's condition and lot upon the earth. Certainly, God made these
offspring of Abraham a blessing to all the families of the earth. Mr. Capt has answered
yet another question which is often asked of ministers, but seldom answered: "Why, of
all the people of the earth, has it been only this White Caucasian Race, these so-called
'Gentiles,' who have claimed Jesus Christ as their God, and who have taken the Bible as
the foundation of their religion?"
The answer: The truth which is avoided and even denied by the Clergy of Organized
Religion, is simple. THESE PEOPLE, THE WHITE ANGLO-SAXONS, GERMANIC, SCANDINAVIAN, CELTIC
AND KINDRED PEOPLE ARE THE ISRAELITES, THE CHILDREN OF ABRAHAM, GOD'S CHOSEN PEOPLE! And
that explains why every true Gospel Preacher and missionary for Jesus Christ for over
1,900 years has been of this one race. They are dispersed Israel, fulfilling Bible
prophecy even while blindness in part is upon them, blindness of their own identity as the
Chosen of God.
BIBLICAL PROMISES HAVE BECOME HISTORICAL FACTS
In the Old Testament God had promised to regather divorced Israel unto Himself: "My
flock wandered over all the mountains, and over every high hill; my flock was scattered
over all the face of the earth, with none to seek or search for them...For thus says the
Lord God: Behold, here am I, and I will seek and search for my flock."
Jesus made it plain He was the instrument of Israel's return to God, in the following
verses: "For the Son of Man has come to search for what was lost [Israel] and to save
it."
And: "I [Christ] AM SENT ONLY TO THE LOST SHEEP OF ISRAEL'S HOUSE."
The word "lost" appears 13 times in the New Testament in relation to Israel. The
Greek word means "put away and punished." So Jesus was saying in Matthew 15:24,
"I am not sent but unto the put away and punished house of Israel."
In Matthew 10:6, Jesus instructed His disciples to go to: "...the lost sheep of
the house of Israel."
In Luke 1, Zacharias the priest, who was John the Baptist's father, said that Jesus CAME
TO REDEEM HIS PEOPLE and: "To perform the mercy PROMISED to our [Israel's] fathers,
and to remember his holy covenant; The oath which he sware to our father Abraham."
When moving from the Old Testament to the New Testament you dare not lose Physical Israel.
"God hath not cast away his people which he foreknew..."
If you lose physical Israel, the seed of Isaac, then you will be unable to find a
confirmation of the promises made to Abraham and Isaac and Jacob/Israel. Remember that
according to Romans 15:8 Jesus Christ came to confirm the promises made to the fathers. If
you lose physical Israel, then you will end up without the people that the Eternal God
promised to make the New Covenant with . If you lose Israel, you will deny the very
veracity of God and turn the Bible into a shambles. If you fail to understand that the
Israelites in dispersion were to be called by another name.
And if you fail to understand all of the Old Testament promises of these Israelites
returning to the knowledge of their God and His Truth, you will not be able to read the
New Testament with any understanding whatever. You cannot lose Physical Israel when
turning to the New Testament. In Matthew 1:21 we find that Jesus was to save His people
from their sins. Israel was that people that was to be ransomed from the bondage of sin
and death. In Matthew 10:5-6 Jesus Christ commanded His disciples to go only to the lost
sheep of the house of Israel.
In Matthew 10:23 Jesus Christ declared that His disciples would not have gone over the
cities of Israel until the Son of Man be come. He was speaking of His Second Coming and
meant that the Gospel was to be preached only among the Israelites, for they were the
children of the Promise made to Abraham. In Matthew 15:24 Jesus Christ declared: "I
am not sent but unto the lost sheep of the house of Israel."
In Matthew 28:19 Jesus Christ commanded His disciples to go and teach all nations,
Baptizing them in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost. These
nations that were to be Baptized consisted of the family of Israelite nations that were
promised to come from Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob/Israel. The New Testament is confirmation
that our God kept His promise to physical Israel of the Old Testament.
In Acts 26:7 Paul confirms the existence of all twelve tribes of Israel in 62 A.D.
"Unto which promise our twelve tribes, instantly serving God day and night, hope to
come..."
In Acts 28:20 Paul confirms that: "...for the hope of Israel I am bound with this
chain."
The Apostle Peter addresses his epistle to the Israelites in dispersion .
James the servant of God, addresses his epistle to Israel saying: "James, a servant
of God and of the Lord Jesus Christ, to the twelve tribes which are scattered abroad,
greeting."
Also remember that the entire Book of Revelation is posited on God fulfilling His promises
to Israel. The Lamb's Wife is identified as Israel in Revelation 21:1-10. The entire
account of the Gospels, the Pauline Epistles, the General Epistles, and the Book of
Revelation is directed to the Israel of God and to some of the great promises made to them
in the Old Testament Scriptures.
When we turn to the New Testament it is imperative that we remember the greater portion of
the House of Israel, now in dispersion, has peopled all of the areas of the world called
Asia Minor, the Greek speaking world, all of central Europe, Scandinavia and the British
Isles. The Churches of the New Testament were made of both Israelites from the House of
Judah [Judah-Benjamin and Levi] and of Israelites from the Northern Kingdom which were in
dispersion.
The Israelites of the Southern Kingdom of Judah have been given the name of
"Jews" in error. However, the "Jews" were NOT Israelites which the
following Scriptures attest to: "Son of man, thy brethren, even thy brethren, the men
of thy kindred, and all the house of Israel wholly, are they unto whom THE INHABITANTS OF
JERUSALEM HAVE SAID, GET YOU FAR FROM THE LORD [in this case it means Baal -- #1167
Strong's Concordance]: UNTO US IS THIS LAND GIVEN IN POSSESSION."
Ezekiel gives a second testimony: "Also, thou son of man, prophesy unto the mountains
[nations] of Israel, and say, Ye mountains [nations] of Israel, hear the word of the Lord:
Thus saith the Lord God; BECAUSE THE ENEMY HATH SAID AGAINST YOU, AHA, EVEN THE ANCIENT
HIGH PLACES ARE OUR'S IN POSSESSION."
John relates the same thing concerning the "sheep" of the Lord Jesus Christ --
for all Israelites are called sheep throughout the Old and New Testaments. So we MUST
remember, whenever we see the word "sheep" in the Scriptures -- It ALWAYS means
Israelites. Jesus, while talking to the "Jews" He said: "But ye [Jews]
believe not, because ye [Jews] ARE NOT OF MY SHEEP [here Jesus is giving testimony that
the Jews ARE NOT ISRAELITES -- but are impostors], as I said unto you [Jews]."
Epistles are directed to Israelite Congregations made up from Israelites -- the
Anglo-Saxon, Germanic, Celtic, Scandinavian and Kindred peoples of the earth; in their
state of Dispersion. With this background in mind, let us now return to our primary
objective and reason from the Holy Scriptures.
As we have previously stated: The purpose of this discussion is to demonstrate from the
Holy Scriptures that those people who are chosen and called and who believe and become
Christian, do so BECAUSE THEY ARE THE PHYSICAL DESCENDANTS OF ABRAHAM, ISAAC AND
JACOB/ISRAEL. [Now people of other races CAN be Saved if they accept the Lord Jesus
Christ. But that is only on very rare occasions.
Any so-called conversion of a Jew is for the purpose of subverting, with treasonable
intentions, the Christian Doctrines as presented in the Scriptures!]. However, for the
most part; Only Natural born Israelites can be saved: Only natural born Israelites were
lost; Only Natural born Israelites were under the Law. Therefore Only Natural Born
Israelites can be redeemed.
When people believe and become Christian it is because they are the Children of Abraham,
the Children of Isaac, and heirs of the promises of God. Now let us examine some
controversial Scriptures to demonstrate that people become Christian because they are the
Children of Abraham. They do not become the Children of Abraham because they believe. God
hath not cast away His people which he foreknew .
IN JOHN 10:26 JESUS TOLD THE JEWS
"But ye believe not, because ye are not of my sheep, as I said unto you."
Question: Were the Jews not sheep because they did not believe OR did the Jews not believe
because they were NOT sheep.
Answer: THE JEWS DID NOT BELIEVE BECAUSE THEY WERE NOT THE SHEEP!
IN JOHN 10:27 JESUS TOLD THE JEWS
"My sheep hear my voice, and I know them, and they follow me."
Question: Did these sheep become Christians because they heard His voice OR did they hear
His voice because they were His sheep?
Answer: They heard His voice BECAUSE they were His Sheep.
IN ROMANS 2:14-15 PAUL TOLD THE GENTILES
"For when the Gentiles, which have not the law, do by nature the things contained in
the law, these, having not the law, are a law unto themselves: Which shew the work of the
law WRITTEN IN THEIR HEARTS, their CONSCIENCE also bearing witness, and their THOUGHTS the
mean while accusing or else excusing one another."
Question: Did these Gentiles [Israelites] have the law written into their hearts because
they believed and became Christians? OR did they become Christian because they had the Law
written into their hearts. "Behold, the days come, saith the Lord, that I will make a
NEW COVENANT with the house of Israel, and with the house of Judah: Not according to the
covenant that I made with their fathers in the day that I took them by the hand to bring
them out of the land of Egypt; which my covenant they brake, although I was an husband
unto them, saith the Lord: But this shall be the covenant that I will make with the house
of Israel; After those days, saith the Lord, I will put my law in their inward parts, and
write it in their hearts; and will be their God, and they shall be my people. And they
shall teach no more every man his neighbour, and every man his brother, saying, Know the
Lord: for they shall all know me, from the least of them unto the greatest of them, saith
the Lord: for I will forgive their iniquity, and I will remember their sin more."
Answer: The Gentiles of the New Testament, became Christian because they, being of the
physical seed of Abraham, had the Law written into their heart and conscience; their
inward parts and in their heart. "Hearken unto me, ye that know righteousness, the
people in whose heart is my law; fear ye not the reproach of men, neither be ye afraid of
their revilings."
IN ROMANS 4:16 PAUL TOLD THE GENTILE CHURCH AT ROME
"Therefore it is of faith, that it might be by grace; to the end the promise might be
sure to all the seed; not to that only which is of the law, but to that also which is of
the faith of Abraham; WHO IS THE FATHER OF US ALL."
Question: Did they which are of the "faith of Abraham" become the Seed of
Abraham because they had the "faith" of Abraham OR did they have the Faith of
Abraham because they were the Children of Abraham.
Answer: They had the "faith of Abraham" because they were the physical children
of Abraham.
PAUL TOLD THE GALATIAN GENTILES
IN 3:7-9
"Know ye therefore that THEY WHICH ARE OF FAITH, THE SAME ARE THE CHILDREN OF
ABRAHAM. And the scripture, foreseeing that God would justify the heathen through faith,
preached before the gospel unto Abraham, saying, In thee shall ALL NATIONS BE BLESSED. So
then they which be of faith are blessed with faithful Abraham."
Question: Were the Galatians Children of Abraham because they had faith in Christ OR did
they have faith because they were the children of Abraham.
Answer: They had faith because they were the Children of Abraham and therefore accepted
the Grace of Jesus Christ. THE GALATIANS HAD FAITH BECAUSE THEY WERE THE CHILDREN OF
ABRAHAM. They did not become the Children of Abraham because they had faith as so many
would have you believe.
PAUL TOLD THE GALATIAN GENTILES
IN 3:26-29
"For ye are all the children of God by faith in Christ Jesus. For as many of you as
have been baptized into Christ have put on Christ. There is neither Jew [should have been
translated Judean -- Jew] nor Greek, there is neither bond nor free, there is neither male
nor female: for ye are all one in Christ Jesus. And if ye be Christ's then are ye
Abraham's seed, and heirs according to the promise."
Question: Were these people in the Churches of Galatia Abraham's children because they
were Christ's OR were they Christ's because they were the children of Abraham.
Answer: They were Christ's because they were Abraham's Children and have been chosen by
the Father, Redeemed by the Son, and sanctified and set apart by the effectual power of
God the Holy Spirit. We belong to Jesus Christ because we are the Children of Abraham,
rather than saying we are Abraham's children because we belong to Christ.
PAUL TOLD THE GALATIAN GENTILES
IN 4:4-7
"But when the fulness of the time was come, God sent forth his Son, made of a woman,
made under the law, To redeem them that were under the law, that we might receive the
adoption of sons. And because ye are sons, God hath sent forth the Spirit of his Son into
your hearts, crying, Abba, Father. Wherefore thou art no more a servant , but a son; and
if a son, then an heir of God through Christ."
Question: Do we become redeemed Israel and the Sons of God because we believe OR do we
believe and become sons of God because we are physical Israel and are redeemed by the
blood of Jesus Christ?
Answer: We become the Sons of God because we are the physical Children of Abraham, and
are, therefore, Redeemed by the Blood of the Lord Jesus Christ and called to be Christian.
You do not become Redeemed Israel and a Son of God because you BELIEVE, but rather you
BELIEVE and are made a Son of God because you are the Children of Abraham and have been
redeemed by the Blood of the Lamb.
PAUL TOLD THE EPHESIAN GENTILES
IN 2:12-14
"That at that time ye were without Christ, being aliens from the commonwealth of
Israel, and strangers from the covenants of promise, having no hope, and without God in
the world: But now in Christ Jesus ye who sometimes were far off are made nigh by the
blood of Christ. For he is our peace, who hath made both one, and hath broken down the
middle wall of partition between us."
Question: Were these Ephesian "Gentiles" that were "far off" and
without God in the world made members of the commonwealth of Israel because they believed
and became Christian OR did they become Christian, believe and come back into the
commonwealth of Israel because they were the physical Children of Abraham.
Answer: These Israelites who were "far off" and divorced from the covenants of
promise and without hope were reconciled back into the commonwealth of Israel through the
Blood of Jesus Christ because they were the physical offspring of Abraham. These verses in
Ephesians Chapter Two deal with both the House of Judah [Them that were nigh as in
Ephesians 2:17] and them which were afar off [Israel in Dispersion as in Ephesians 2:17],
and the middle wall of partition, that is the division between the two houses of Israel,
Judah and Israel, was broken down by the Blood of Jesus Christ as we read in Ephesians
2:13-19.
PAUL TOLD THE ROMAN GENTILES
IN ROMANS IN 9:23-26
"And that he might make known the riches of his glory on the vessels of mercy, which
he had afore prepared unto glory, Even us, whom he hath called, not of the Jews [Judeans]
only, but also of the Gentiles? As he saith also in Osee [Hosea], I will call them my
people, which were not my people; and her beloved, which was not beloved. And it shall
come to pass, that in the place where it was said unto them, Ye are not my people; there
shall they be called the children of the living God."
Question: Were these Gentiles made vessels of mercy and thereby Christian because they
believed OR did they believe and become Christian because they were the physical children
of Abraham an were thereby vessels of mercy from the foundation of the world.
Answer: These Gentiles who were brought to the knowledge of Jesus Christ became Christian
because they were Israelites in dispersion, called Gentiles, and when they heard the Word
of God preached, having the Word of God inscribed upon their hearts and inward parts
they believed.
The word Jews in Romans 9:24 has reference to the House of Judah and could have included
Israelites from any of the tribes making up the Southern Kingdom, that is Judah, Benjamin
or Levi. Moreover, if you will carefully examine the direct quotations from Hosea 1:10 you
will find that this Prophet had reference to Israelites of the Northern Kingdom and would
one day be called the Children of the living God.
This confirms beyond all question that the Gentiles Paul is speaking to were the physical
descendants of the Israelites who had been put away in Divorce and then went into
dispersion throughout Asia, Europe and eventually the entire world, with emphasis upon the
Western World. Then to America where all thirteen tribes were regathered as promised in
the Scriptures.
PAUL SPEAKING TO THE GENTILES
IN ROMANS 11:13-18
"For I speak to you Gentiles, inasmuch as I am the apostle of the Gentiles, I magnify
mine office: If by any means I may provoke to emulation THEM WHICH ARE MY FLESH, and might
save some of them. For if the casting away of them be the reconciling of the world, what
shall the receiving of them be, but life from the dead? For if the first-fruit be holy,
the lump is also holy: and if the root be holy, so are the branches. And if some of the
branches be broken off, and thou, being a wild olive tree, wert grafted in among them, and
with them partakest of the root and fatness of the olive tree; Boast not against the
branches. But if thou boast, thou bearest not the root, but the root thee."
Question: Were these Gentiles of the "wild olive tree" made Christian and
thereby partakers with the "natural olive tree" because they believed in Christ
OR did they believe and become Christian because being of "the wild olive tree"
they were the Children of Abraham.
Answer: These Gentiles of the "wild olive tree" became Christian and were
grafted back into the natural root stock of Israel because they were the physical Children
of Abraham that having been divorced and separated from God were reconciled and grafted
back into the natural tree through the Grace of Jesus Christ upon the cross.
It is important to remember that the Olive Tree was one of several symbols used to
identify Israel in Scripture. The Gentiles were called the "wild branches of the
olive tree" because having been divorced and sent into dispersion, they were outside
the commonwealth of Israel and were considered as uncircumcised and unclean by the members
of the House of Judah [called the natural branches of the Olive Tree]. Also note that from
the Olive Berries we have a precious Oil that is extracted. This oil represents the
"light of the world" and the Israelite nations have been the light of the world.
The Caucasian Israelite nations of the Western World have produced all of the Christian
Missionaries, printed all the Bibles, built all of the Churches, enacted all of the
Christian Laws, advanced Christian morality and elevated the light of Jesus Christ
wherever they have lived. In return our God has abundantly prospered them and given them
the highest standard of living in the world. God hath not cast away His people which he
foreknew .
PETER TO THE ELECT IN CHRIST
1 PETER 2:9-10
"But ye are a CHOSEN GENERATION [Race], a royal priesthood, an holy nation, a
peculiar people; that ye should shew forth the praises of him who hath called you out of
darkness into his marvellous light: Which in time past were NOT A PEOPLE, but ARE NOW THE
PEOPLE OF GOD: which had not obtained mercy, but now have obtained mercy."
Question: Were the people a CHOSEN RACE because they believed Christ and were thereby made
spiritual Israelites OR did they become Christian because they, being descendants of
Abraham, Isaac and Jacob/Israel, WERE A CHOSEN RACE.
Answer: These elect Israelites who were scattered throughout Pontus, Galatia, Cappadocia,
Asia and Bithynia were portions of the House of Israel in dispersion and through Faith in
Jesus Christ were being grafted back into the natural Olive tree. Peter's Epistle was
addressed to these Israelites in Dispersion.
For confirmation of the fact that the subject people were of the Tribes of Israel in
dispersion, please carefully read 1 Peter 2:10 where the quotation from Hosea 1:10; 2:23
refer to the Israelites who were being put away in divorce and dispersion.
PETER TOLD THE ELECT IN CHRIST IN
2 PETER 2:21-22
"For it had been better for them not to have known the way of righteousness, than,
after they have know it, to turn from the holy commandment delivered unto them. But it is
happened unto them according to the true proverb, The dog is turned to his own vomit
again; and the sow that was washed to her wallowing in the mire."
Question: Did the Dog return to his vomit because he quit believing, OR did he turn from
the truth because he was a dog?
Answer: The dog returned to his vomit because he did not really believe. You cannot turn a
dog into a sheep! You cannot make an Israelite out of a non-Israelite.
Question: Did the sow return to her wallow because she ceased to believe OR did the sow
return to her wallow because she was a sow?
Answer: The sow returned to her wallow because she never really believed. You cannot turn
a sow into a sheep. You cannot turn a non-Israelite into an Israelite.
As Christians we dare not lose physical Israel when reading the New Testament portion of
the Bible. God hath not cast away His people which He foreknew . God has not lost His
people Israel. The Unconditional Covenant of Grace is effectual. The Unconditional
Covenant of Promise made to faithful Abraham is being made sure to all the seed. The
Covenant of Law has exposed the sin nature of the Israelites and demonstrated that not by
the works of the Law, but by the righteousness of Jesus Christ, we must be saved.
ISRAEL IS ALIVE AND WELL ON THIS EARTH! The denominational churches of the Western World
are full of these Israelites, and are often called "Gentiles," who are searching
and seeking the truth of Jesus Christ. These millions of Gentile-Israelite Christians who
flock to the Churches every Sunday Morning are there because they are the Physical
Children of Abraham and are searching for the voice of Their Shepherd, the Lord Jesus
Christ! The Holy Bible is indeed a glorious Book of Divine Truth and Revelation.
LOST ISRAEL HAS BEEN FOUND! They are filling the Churches of our land! These precious
people need to know who they are! They need to know that they are the Elect and Chosen of
God, the Redeemed of Christ, and that they are Heirs of The Promise made to their Father
Abraham. Praise Jesus Christ! Lost Israel has been found. These so- called
"Gentile" Christians that now fill our churches do not become spiritual
Israelites when they believe and become Christian. They believe and become Christian
because they are the physical Children of Abraham, Isaac and Jacob-Israel. The
faithfulness and integrity of God Almighty has been preserved. He has redeemed His people.
The physical Children of Abraham is seeking to be spiritually reborn through the effectual
power of the Holy spirit. THE WHITE CAUCASIAN GENTILES now seeking the truth of
Christianity in the denominational Church World are doing so now because they are the
children and offspring of Abraham. They are Heirs to the Promises of God. Because they are
The Children of Abraham, they are Christ's and are Heirs to the Promises made to Abraham.
If you are descended from the Anglo-Saxon, Germanic, Scandinavian, Celtic or Kindred
people. Then you are descendants of the people we have traced in the Bible and in history
and are Israelites, heirs according to the promise, and the Bible is about you and your
race. Do not take what you have read lightly. True to His promise to our fathers, Abraham,
Isaac, and Jacob, the God of Israel has redeemed us with His own blood. He has kept His
Word to our fathers. He will most certainly keep His promise with us, their children, of
THE KINGDOM OF CHRIST UPON THIS EARTH! We believe the time has come when God is casting
down all lies, exposing the false prophets, and revealing the Truth to His Israel people.
The key to understanding the Bible is the truth that we are Israelites, redeemed by Jesus
Christ, heirs of the promise, Abraham's children.
ACCESSION
Today the great Israel nation of America is surrounded and invaded by the Red communist
anti-Christ forces of Gog and Magog as God gathers the nations of the earth for the
battle of Armageddon . The wicked of the earth, who are the enemies of Jesus Christ, have
grown strong and arrogant in our land. They have infiltrated our schools, the news media,
even the churches and government in their attempt to keep you in ignorance of your
identity as Israelites. They are attempting to steal your heritage that they may conquer
America and take rule over the whole earth.
WHY IS JUDGMENT BEING POURED OUT
UPON AMERICA -- THE LAND OF REGATHERED ISRAEL?
The judgment upon America -- just as it was on Ancient Israel is and was a result of their
national sins and their turning from Almighty God and His Laws. America, like ancient
Israel has broken covenant with God Almighty and the Lord Jesus Christ; they have rejected
His Laws, and have worshipped other gods. The sin debt is piled high in America, the
judgment of the living God is upon this land. Consider the parallels between the sins of
Ancient Israel and America, the Modern Day Israel.
SINS OF ANCIENT ISRAEL/AMERICA
After God established Jeremiah as the Prophet ordained to root out and pull down, to build
and to plant, God takes command of Jeremiah's lips and begins to catalogue the sins of the
nation of His Israel People. The sins articulated by Jeremiah reads like a current
commentary on the transgressions of America and every other Israelite people in Abraham's
family of nations.
Our priests and pastors have failed to teach the Laws of God . The purity of our Israelite
people is threatened by race mixing . The blood of innocents, including aborted babies, is
a part of America's national shame . The people are adulterous and practice prostitution .
Our people worship false gods and are guilty of idolatry . Our people are guilty of
possessing a rebellious heart . Our whole nation is wallowing in covetousness . Our nation
has refused the Word of God and have rejected His Laws . Our leaders have oppressed the
fatherless and the widow and shed the blood of the innocent . Our people have turned the
House of God into a den of robbers and are guilty of stealing, murder, adultery, false
swearing, and the worship of Baal . Our nation has rejected correction, truth has all but
perished, and the Temple of God is a polluted house . Our preachers and pastors preach
smooth things and refuse to preach against sin, they can not even blush . God's sheep are
scattered and the pastors do not seek God's people . Our people follow the customs of the
heathen and decorate trees in their homes .
Our Israelite people have broken covenant with God, and a conspiracy of evil men rule the
nation . The sin of usury is condoned in the land . Our nation has profaned the Holy
Sabbath by buying and selling on this holy day . Profanity and swear words fill the land .
False prophets have turned our people from the worship of God Almighty and the Lord Jesus
Christ to the worship of the Jews -- who are the enemies of Jesus Christ the Son of God,
preaching lies, false doctrines and Jewish Fables . And in spite of the treachery of these
false prophets and lying priests, our people are content . The sin debt has been piled
high in America, and our people have refused to turn to God and Christ in repentance. All
of these sins and more are presently being committed in the United States of America,
thus, the judgment of God Almighty is being poured out upon America. Unless our people
turn back to God and repent; then the following is sure to happen:
ALIEN INVASION OF AMERICA
The present invasion of this country by uncontrolled numbers of aliens pouring in from the
third world and every continent on earth will continue unabated. The starving wretched
poor of the world are packing their suitcases and heading for America. Our borders are out
of control and it will become increasingly worse. Asians, Mexicans and Blacks will soon
dominate the political scene of America. Our coastal areas, ALREADY filling up fast, mean
that the alien flood tide will soon spill into the interior of America. Ultimately, the
third world aliens will be everywhere, from the jungles of Los Angeles and New York to the
quiet countryside of the Midwest.
UNEMPLOYMENT IN AMERICA IS BECOMING ACUTE
With the arrival of hundreds of thousands of aliens annually, the job market in America is
more than saturated. Jobs, ALREADY scarce, will become impossible to find. Non-whites will
receive FIRST CHOICE, and the whites will find it increasingly more difficult to find a
good job. The planned deindustrialization of America, high wages and labor union
subversion has produced a loss of the work ethic and has put millions of people out of a
job. Foreign imports, mass merchandising of consumer goods by factories in Korea, Japan,
Asia and elsewhere, with our alien controlled government assistance will force millions
more of our Israel people from the work place in America. We will soon become a nation of
unemployed people.
PREPARE FOR A PLUNGING
STANDARD OF LIVING
The deindustrialization of America, the alien flood tide, deficit budgets at every level
of government, massive unemployment, and foreign imports will cause, and indeed, has
caused the living standards of most American to plunge. In some areas of rural America,
men are fighting over minimum wage jobs. The high costs of food, shelter, clothing,
medical care, and utilities will make it increasingly more difficult for families to make
ends meet. We can expect an even more drastic and radical change in the living standards
of the middle and lower class of people in America.
FEDERAL, STATE AND LOCAL DEFICITS, INFLATION, USURY
Will bring a total collapse of the American economic system. The multi-trillion dollar
national debt is now increasing geometrically, and the interest on this debt will soon be
the greatest single outlay of the Federal Budget. America is ALREADY bankrupt and our
people are fast approaching national bankruptcy. Both the public and private debt
structure are reaching astronomical levels. The banking system, because of the actions of
the Federal Reserve System, is teetering on the brink of an economic earthquake. All the
power, finesse, and expertise of government economists, bankers, and politicians are
necessary to keep the economic system glued together on a month-by-month basis. The
voracious financial appetite of the Federal Government, State Governments, City and County
Governments cannot be SATISFIED. The debt structure of this nation is taking our people
into an economic abyss. The only question that remains unanswered is how much longer the
system can operate with a Federal economic train racing down the mountain side with no
brakes, and no visible means of a desire to break the Richter scale will one day take
place in America.
BEWARE OF THE LONG TERM INSTABILITY OF SOCIAL SECURITY
AND ALL PENSION FUNDS
The American public must surely know that the Social Security Fund is always about an
economic eyelash from insolvency, their comments to the contrary notwithstanding. The
financial demands being made on Social Security will very shortly greatly exceed all
potential of those paying into it.
Moreover, remember that the ever proliferating numbers of people who can qualify grow ever
larger [This includes many aliens], while the number of people paying in diminishes. All
pension funds in this country are tied to the stability of the economy in general. And all
too many of them have their funds tied up in the bandit state, Israeli Bonds, at 3 to 6
percent interest [And the payment of these bonds has been delayed for up to 30 years --
which will give the Israeli Lobby time to have the loans dismissed, thus American's
pensions have been given to A PEOPLE WHO HATE THE LORD JESUS CHRIST! THE JEWS!]. Any major
economic problem could spell disaster for all types of pension funds in this country. You
cannot count on long term Social Security and pension funds to carry you through a major
economic collapse. They will all go down the economic tubes along with the rest of Mystery
Babylon the Great.
PREPARE FOR A NATIONAL PANDEMIC PLAGUE OF AIDS AND OTHER DISEASES
The plunging moral standards of America has brought about the curses and plagues of an
Eternal God upon the United States. Because America now tolerates every form of immoral
behavior, and perversion, including sodomy [Queers], incest, adultery, fornication,
promiscuity, and sexual perversion of every form known to man, a legion of terrible
diseases are proliferating in this nation and will continue to do so until millions
perish.
The anti-Christian sexual morals of the American people could result in the liquidation of
literally millions of people in the next few years. More than twenty venereal diseases are
running rampant throughout the sexually promiscuous population of this nation. Leprosy has
been diagnosed in California. The plague is breaking out upon us, and millions will
perish! One hundred and Eighty Million or more as related by Ezekiel 38 and 39.
THERE IS A CULTURAL AND MORAL DECLINE THAT IS DESTROYING AMERICA
Our country is now in the death phase of the Organic Culture Curve -- brought about by the
manipulations of the International Jewish Conspirators. Our language, music, art,
literature, drama, and dress habits are reflecting subculture standards of the Black Race.
Profanity and gutter language are now commonly heard in polite society and are accepted
behavior in the college and University Classrooms of America. Our schools have degenerated
into cess pools as a result of mixing the blacks, who, for the most part have no morals or
ability to succeed in an open society.
Our music has taken on the sounds of the Jungle Bunny's of Africa. Our art and literature
are reflections of the Jewish humanism and anti-Christian teachings of the Godless Talmud.
Drunkenness is becoming a way of life for young people before they even graduate from high
school.
Smoking and chewing tobacco are standard for elementary school children in many areas of
the country. More than two million unwed teenage girls are pregnant in America. Venereal
Disease is rampant among teenagers. Drug infestation of our population is reaching
astronomical levels. A growing love of many Americans, in every walk of life, is getting
high on drugs. marijuana is not a leading cash crop in much of America. The drug traffic
is now the single largest business in America.
DESTRUCTION OF THE FAMILY IS ALL BUT COMPLETE IN AMERICA
The breakup of the family is reaching completion in America. One out of every two marriage
will end in divorce. Working mothers, peer group pressure in the public school,
television, drugs, profanity, decline of religion, and immorality have rent asunder the
Christian Family in America. More than two million couples live together outside the
sacrament of Marriage. Single parent homes account for about one third of all children in
America. More people are lined up on a given day in America seeking a divorce than are
going to the altar to be married.
Juvenile delinquents are proliferating by the millions. No fault divorces, throw away
marriage vows, live-in relationships, adultery, and wife swapping are now common place
among those who travel the fast lane of America. Satan and his minions, THE JEWS, are
attacking the Christian Family on every hand. When the family goes, the ground and
foundation for the future of America is gone. No nation can survive the dissolution and
breakup of the family. No greater calamity can befall America than to lose the institution
of the family.
DECLINE AND END OF THE FAMILY-OWNED FARMS
IS NOW IN PROGRESS THROUGHOUT AMERICA
For the past five decades our farm population has been declining in America, the family
farm is now an endangered species. We are currently losing about 200,000 family sized
farms per year in America. Thousands of farmers are being driven from the land in
bankruptcy, farm foreclosures, depressed farm prices, usury, and skyrocketing production
costs. The farm land of America is being swallowed up by giant corporations, insurance
companies, and banks; foreigners, under various covers, are purchasing millions of acres
of land.
The government, through various programs have caused millions of acres to be taken out of
production -- making America ever more dependent upon imported foods. There is now an
exodus from the family farm to the metropolitan centers of America; The backbone of
America is being crippled and destroyed by the loss of the family farm: Because people are
more easily controlled if they live in the cities and do not have the capability to
produce their own food and resources.
LOSS OF BIBLE KNOWLEDGE
AMONG WHITE AMERICANS IS APPALLING
The United States of America was founded by Bible-believing Christians. The first 125
years of American history were written in the Christian teachings of the Holy Bible. Such
is not the case today. We have discarded the Bible from our national life. The American
public is no longer familiar with the bible. The teachings of this great book of Divine
Truth has been lost and we are now without the truth of God's Word. Apathy and
indifference toward the Bible are manifested everywhere in this country. The Bible is no
longer revered as the Word of God. The knowledge of this great Book has been lost by this
generation because of the false doctrines and Jewish Fables brought into the pulpits of
America. We are rapidly becoming a nation of atheists and infidels, lost and without the
hope of the Saving Knowledge of the Word of God.
AMERICA IS NOW SUFFERING
THE LOSS OF HER GENETIC HERITAGE
The American Nation was discovered, explored, and settled by Anglo-Saxon and Kindred
peoples from Caucasian Europe. A pure racial stream of Anglo-Saxon peoples poured into
this country beginning in 1620 with the arrival of the Pilgrims and continuing to the
middle of the 19th century or about 1850. This vast pool of genetic racial seed is now
being lost in America. The alien tidal wave from third world nations, together with the
integration, amalgamation, and fusion of the races now taking place wholesale in every
city, hamlet, and village of America is about to deplete the genetic heritage of the
United States of America. Integration, amalgamation, fusion, and miscegenation of the
races in the public schools, colleges, and universities are bringing about the systematic
death to a pure white Anglo-Saxon racial population.
THE DECLINE OF HISTORIC CHRISTIANITY
IS ALMOST COMPLETE IN AMERICA
The Faith once delivered to the Saints is almost lost in the mainline Churches of America.
The pulpits of our Churches no longer resound with the soul stirring doctrines and creedal
teachings of the Apostolic Church Fathers. The Knowledge of God's Laws is no longer taught
from the pulpits. We no longer see the Seven Holy Sacraments of the Living God
administered from a sanctified altar. We are losing the faith of our Christian Fathers,
and our land is becoming barren of the great soul stirring Christianity of the first
generations who came to this country.
The Modern Church is inflicted with humanism, lies, worship of Baal and of the Jews. The
religion of humanism is preached from the pulpits and comes from the anti-Christ Jewish
Talmud. The great hymns of the faith have been discarded for the syncopated beat of the
jungle bunny niggers, and Jesus Christ is no longer taught as THE WAY, the Truth, and the
Life. Our churches have lost the touch of God. They are void of the Holy Spirit. They
teach Jewish fables and the doctrines of Baal. Many of the most popular denominations in
the Christian world are little more than houses of Baal where the false prophets of Baal
preach for hire before a brainwashed congregation. But God Almighty has decreed the
destruction of those who hate Jesus Christ and His True Israel People. IN A LAST BATTLE
THEY SHALL BE DEFEATED. "And the house of Jacob shall be a fire, and the house of
Joseph a flame, and the house of Esau [The Jews] for stubble, and they shall kindle in
them, and devour them; and there shall not be ANY remaining of the house of Esau [The
Jews]; for the Lord hath spoken it."
We shall be delivered, and the earth will be prepared for the return of Jesus Christ and
the great Kingdom Age. Even so, come, Lord Jesus. Amen.
Chapter Two
GEORGE WASHINGTON'S VISION
The first President of the United States was George Washington; who during the war for
independence had a vision, he later called "America's Three Great Perils." This
vision was related to Mr. Bradshaw, reporter for the National Tribune and was published in
Vol. 4, No. 12, December 1880. It was told to him by a Mr. Anthony Sherman on the Fourth
of July 1859 in Independence Square. Mr. Sherman was at that time 99 years of age, his
eyes dimming but were rekindled as he gazed upon Independence Hall, which he had come to
visit once more. Where he related to Mr. Sherman: "I want to tell you an incident in
Washington's life -- one which no one alive knows of but myself; and, you will before long
see it verified."
He paused and then went on to say: "From the opening of the Revolution, we
experienced all phases of fortune, good and ill. The darkest period we ever had, I think,
was when Washington after several reverses, retreated to Valley Forge where he resolved to
pass the winter of 1777. Oh! I have often seen the tears coursing down our dear
commander's careworn cheeks, as he would be conversing with a confidential officer about
the condition of his soldiers. You have doubtless heard the story of Washington's going to
the thicket to pray. Well, he also used to pray to God in secret for aid and comfort. One
day, I remember well, the chilly winds whistled through the leafless trees, though the sky
was cloudless and the sun shone brightly, he remained in his quarters nearly all the
afternoon alone. When he came out I noticed that his face was a shade paler than usual and
there seemed to be something on his mind of more than ordinary importance. Returning just
after dusk, he dispatched an orderly to the quarters of the officer I mentioned, and was
presently in attendance. After a preliminary conversation of about half an hour,
Washington gazing upon his companion with that strange look of dignity which he alone
could command, said to the latter: 'I do not know whether it is owing to the anxiety of my
mind, or what, but this afternoon, while preparing a dispatch, something seemed to disturb
me.
Looking up, I beheld, standing opposite me, a singularly beautiful being. So astonished
was I, for I had given strict orders not to be disturbed that it was some moments before I
found language to inquire the cause of the visit. A second, a third, and even a fourth
time did I repeat my question, but received no answer from my mysterious visitor, except a
slight raising of the eyes. By this time I felt strange sensations through me, and I would
have risen, but the riveted gaze of the being before me rendered volition impossible. I
assayed once more to speak, but my tongue had become useless, as though it had become
paralyzed.
A new influence, mysterious, potent, irresistible, took possession. All I could do was
gaze steadily, vacantly at my unknown visitor. Gradually the surrounding atmosphere seemed
as though it was becoming filled with sensations, and grew luminous. Everything about me
seemed to rarefy, including the mysterious visitor. I began to feel as one dying, or
rather to experience the sensations which I have sometimes imagined accompany dissolution.
I did not think, I did not reason, I did not move; all were alike impossible. I was only
conscious of gazing fixedly, vacantly at my companion. Presently I heard a voice saying,
'Son of the Republic, look and learn,' while at the same time my visitor extended an arm
eastwardly. I then beheld a heavy vapor at some distance rising fold upon fold. This
gradually dissipated, and I looked out upon a strange scene. Before me lay spread out in
one vast plain all the countries of the world; Europe, Asia, Africa and America. I saw
rolling and tossing between Europe and America the billows of the Atlantic; and between
Asia and America lay the Pacific.
'Son of the Republic,' said the same mysterious voice as before, 'look and learn.' At that
moment I beheld a dark shadowy being as an angel standing, or rather floating in mid-air,
between Europe and America. Dipping water out of the ocean in the hallow of his hand, he
cast some on Europe. Immediately a cloud arose from these countries, and joined in
mid-ocean. For awhile it remained stationary, and then moved slowly westward until it
enveloped America in its murky folds. Sharp flashes of lightning gleamed through it at
intervals, and I heard smothered groans and cries of the American people. A second time
the angel dipped water from the ocean and sprinkled it out as before. The dark cloud was
then drawn back to the ocean in whose billows it sank from view.
A third time I heard the mysterious voice saying, 'Son of the Republic, look and learn,'
and I cast my eyes upon America and beheld villages and towns and cities spring up one
after another until the whole land from the Atlantic to the Pacific was dotted with them.
Again I heard the mysterious voice say, 'Son of the Republic, the end of the century
cometh, look and learn.'
This time the dark shadowy angel turned his face southward, and from Africa I saw an
ill-omened spectre approach our land. It flitted slowly over every town and city of the
latter. The inhabitants presently set themselves in battle against each other. As I
continued looking, I saw a bright angel on whose brow rested a crown of light, on which
was traced the word, 'Union,' bearing the American Flag which he placed between the
divided nation, and said, 'Remember, ye are brethren.' Instantly the inhabitants, casting
down their weapons, become friends once more, and united around the National Standard.
Again I heard the mysterious voice saying, 'Son of the Republic, look and learn.' At this
the dark shadowy angel placed a trumpet to his lips and blew three distinct blasts; and
taking water from the ocean, he sprinkled it on Europe, Asia and Africa.
Then my eyes beheld a fearful scene; from each of these countries arose thick black clouds
that were soon joined into one. And throughout this mass there gleamed a dark red light by
which I was seeing hordes of armed men, who, moving with the cloud, marched by land an
sailed by sea to America, which was enveloped in the volume of cloud. And I dimly saw
these vast armies devastate the whole country and burn villages, towns and cities that I
beheld springing up. As my ears listened to the thundering of the cannon, slashing swords,
and the shouts and cries of millions in mortal combat, I again heard the mysterious voice
saying, 'Son of the Republic, look and learn.' When the voice had ceased, the dark angel
placed his trumpet once more to his mouth and blew a long and fearful blast. Instantly a
light as of a thousand suns shown down from above me, and pierced and broke into fragments
the dark cloud which had enveloped America. At the same moment the angel upon whose head
still shown the word 'Union' and who bore our national flag in one hand a sword in the
other, descended from the heavens attended by legions of white spirits. These immediately
joined the inhabitants of America, whom I perceived were well nigh overcome, but who,
immediately taking courage again, closed up their broken ranks and renewed the battle.
Again, amid the fearful noise of the conflict I heard the mysterious voice saying, 'Son of
the Republic, look and learn.' As the voice ceased, the shadowy angel for the last time
dipped water from the ocean and sprinkled it upon America. Instantly the dark cloud rolled
back, together with the armies it had brought, leaving the inhabitants of the land
victorious.
Then once mere I beheld the villages, towns and cities springing up where I'd seen them
before while the bright angel, planting the azure standard he had brought in the midst of
them, cried with a loud voice: 'While the stars remain, and the heavens send down dew upon
the earth, so long shall the Union last.' And taking from his brow the crown on which
blazoned the word 'Union' he placed it upon the standard while the people, kneeling down,
said 'Amen.'
The scene instantly began to fade and dissolve, and I, at last, saw nothing but the
rising, curling vapor I at first beheld. This also disappeared, and I found myself once
more gazing upon the mysterious visitor who, in the same voice I had heard before said,
'Son of the Republic, what you have seen is thus interpreted. Three great perils will come
upon the Republic. The more fearful is the third (the comment on his word 'third' is: 'The
help against the third peril comes in the form of Divine Assistance') passing which the
whole world united shall not prevail against her. Let every child of the Republic learn to
live for his God, his land and Union.' With these words the vision vanished, and I started
from my seat and felt that I had seen a vision wherein had been shown me, the birth, the
progress and the destiny of the United States.'
Such my friends, were the words I heard from Washington's own lips, and America would do
well to profit by them."
Chapter Three
AMERICA A CHRISTIAN NATION
"The more thoroughly a nation deals with its history, the more decidedly will it
recognize and own an over-ruling Providence therein, and the more religious a nation will
it become; while the more superficially it deals with its history, seeing only secondary
causes and human agencies, the more irreligious will it be."
All nations are arbitrary collections of men under a common government, they are political
mechanisms which have a purpose only in the sense that it can be attributed to mechanism
such as a train or an automobile. When one speaks of a national purpose because every
government reflects the personality of those in control of the vehicle or government in
this case. Under a dictatorship the national purpose is clearly discernable as that of the
dominant group or individual. Under a representative government, like that of the United
States, the national purpose will tend to reflect that of the people as a whole. However,
in recent years the United States has been subjected to increasingly serious challenge,
and by no means its only enemy is Communism. Its enemies are legion and are seemingly
without number.
In spite of what the enemies of Christ and the United States would have you believe:
AMERICA WAS FOUNDED AS A CHRISTIAN NATION! "The Christian religion is the established
religion by our form of government and all denominations are placed on an equal footing
and equally entitled to protection in their religious liberty." ; "As Men we
have God for our King, and are under the Law of Reason: as Christians, we have Jesus the
Messiah for our King, and are under the Law revealed by Him in the Gospel."
Prior to 1776 the Colonies which later became known as the United States of America, were
under the Common Law of England, sovereign in their own right, as were the people, under
the Articles of Confederation. Christianity being dominant in the land. At the birth of
America the "People" "Ordained" and "Established" a
Christian Nation, by adopting the Christian Common Law as the Supreme Law of the Land. The
system of law and jurisprudence which they adopted was the Common Law of England, but only
in so far as it was in agreement with the Law of the Bible. The Founding Fathers, like
their English and German ancestors, had a profound respect for the Holy Bible and the
principles of liberty stated therein. THEY ALSO HAD A PROFOUND HATRED OF
"DEMOCRACY!"
DEMOCRACY
Democracy: A political system in which government is directly exercised or controlled by
the people Collectively.
Republic: A state where the sovereignty resides in the people and the administration is
lodged in officers ELECTED BY and REPRESENTING the people: as in the REPUBLIC OF THE
UNITED STATES OF AMERICA.
It is important to review the distinction between a republic and a democracy by examining
a U.S. Army Training Manual (TM 2000-25) issued by the U.S. War Department, November 30,
1928; to clearly see the degeneration that has occurred in our once Christian Nation. This
publication, used to educate American soldiers on the distinction between a republic and a
democracy, was withdrawn from circulation and publication by the U.S. Government long ago.
However, it contains excellent information for those seeking to understand what good
Citizenship is all about.
The following information was taken from the 156 page book officially compiled and issued
by the U.S. War Department, November 30, 1928, setting forth exact and truthful
definitions of a democracy and a republic and explaining the differences between the two.
These definitions issued by authority of the U.S. Government should be acceptable as
authentic in any court in America.
Citizenship: Training Manual 2000-25, Sect. 118-121 on Democracy: A government of the
masses. Authority derived through mass meeting or any other form of "direct"
expression. Results in mobocracy. Attitude toward property is communistic, negating
property rights. Attitude toward law is that the will of the majority shall regulate,
whether it be based upon deliberation or governed by passion, prejudice, and impulse,
without restraint or regard to consequences. Results in demagogism, license, agitation,
discontent, anarchy.
Citizenship: Training Manual 2000-25, Sects. 118-121 on Republic: Authority is derived
through the election by the people of public officials best fitted to represent them.
Attitude toward property is respect for laws and individual rights, and a sensible
economic procedure. Attitude toward law is the administration of justice in accord with
fixed principles and established evidence, with a strict regard to consequences. A
greater number of citizens and extent of territory may be brought within its compass.
Avoids the dangerous extreme of either tyranny or mobocracy. Results in statesmanship,
liberty, reason, justice, contentment, and progress. It is the "standard form"
of government throughout the world.
A republic is a form of government under a constitution which provides for the election
of;
1). an executive and;
2). a legislative body, who working together in a representative capacity, have all the
power of appointment, all power of legislation, all power to raise revenue and appropriate
expenditures, and are required to create;
3). a judiciary to pass upon the justice and legality of their governmental acts and to
recognize;
4). certain inherent individual rights. Take away any one or more of those four elements
and you are drifting into democracy. (Atwood).
Citizenship: Training Manual 2000-25, Sect. 121: Superior to all others. Autocracy
declares the divine right of kings; its authority can not be questioned; its powers are
arbitrarily or unjustly administered. Democracy is the "direct" rule of the
people and has been repeatedly tried without success.
Our Constitutional fathers, familiar with the strength and weakness of both autocracy and
democracy, with fixed principles definitely in mind, defined a representative republican
form of government. They, "made a very marked distinction between a republic and a
democracy...and said repeatedly and emphatically that they had founded a republic."
It is important to point out that a republic, as good as it may be, is not the very best
type of government, the best being a theocracy under which Yahweh rules by virtue of His
Law. The Commandments, Statutes, and Judgments of the Living God as contained in the Holy
Bible constitute the Law for a theocratic nation. Under this there is no need for a
legislative body to enact thousands of unjust laws, since Almighty God, the only Lawgiver,
has already legislated His Law government.
For a "century and a quarter" no American President failed to publicly affirm
that he considered himself as President of a Republic. President Wilson was the first one
to introduce this change and, the first ten words of his inaugural address should be
remembered by every student of American Government, they were. "My fellow citizens:
THERE HAS BEEN A CHANGE OF GOVERNMENT."
A 'DEMOCRACY' CAN SIGN ITS OWN DEATH WARRANT! Our original Republic could not. The mere
fact that representative government is based on delegated authority requires that the
limitations on such authority be defined. It is the relationship of principal and agent.
The Constitution is a contract between the principal (the citizen or voter) and the agent
(the legislator, administrative or judicial officer). Democratic action, after the
revolution made possible Communism in Russia. The abandonment of our Constitution or a
failure to abide by it is rapidly bringing about Communist-Socialism in the United States.
In America, under Roosevelt, it was known as the 'New Deal.' In Germany, under Hitler, it
was called 'Nazism.' In England, it is known as 'Socialism.' Under President Bush, it is
called 'A New World Order.' But whatever name one cares to give it, it is totalitarianism
or Communism! The adoption of Democracy as a form of government, upon close examination
has always been fatal to good government, to liberty, to law and order, to respect for
authority, to Christianity and must eventually produce a state of chaos from which a
tyranny will arise. A "New World Order" if you will!
There is no better way to destroy our government than to champion legislation under the
guise of democracy, which piece by piece undermines the checks and balances of our
Republic. Hence at all costs, the difference between a republic and a democracy must be
made clear to the American people. For the advocates of Communism, Socialism, New Dealism,
Fascism, Nazism, Great Societies, Judeo-Christianity, New Liberalism and
neo-Conseritivities are constantly obscuring vital issues by juggling with the favorable
connotation the word democracy possess in the minds of Americans. 'Isms' are sometimes
supported by a misled majority. In Russia, however, the totalitarian regime was
established by a minority. But in Germany, the regime was established by an enraged
majority who were successful in thwarting the plans of a minority. In that particular
case, the minority was responsible for the so-called 'direct action' reforms that were
later to make them fugitives from their own land. Everybody lost, the majority, in their
effective suppression of the minority by the placing of unlimited power in the hands of a
dictator found themselves subjected by the same collectivist governmental machine.
Those who drew up our Constitution in the 18th century foresaw 20th century developments.
THEY WERE GUARDING AGAINST A MINORITY. In order to see this, we must read what was written
in "The Federalist" No. X, by Madison: "If a faction consists of less than
a majority, relief is supplied by the republican principle, which enables the majority to
defeat its sinister views by regular vote. It may clog the administration, it may convulse
the forms of the Constitution. When a majority is included in a faction the form of
popular government, they enable it to sacrifice to its ruling passion or interest both the
public good, and private rights. From this point of view of the subject, it may be
concluded that a pure democracy, by which I mean a society consisting of a small number of
citizens who assemble and administer the government in person, can admit of no cure for
the mischiefs of party. A common passion or interest will, in almost every case, be felt
by a majority of the whole; a communication and concert results from the form of
govern-ment itself; and there is nothing to check the inducements to sacrifice the weaker
party or an obnoxious individual. Hence it is that such democracies have ever been
spectacles of turbulence and contention; have ever been found incompatible with personal
security, or the rights of property, and have in general been as short in their lives as
they have been violent in their deaths.
Theoretic politicians who have patronized this species of government, have erroneously
supposed that by reducing mankind to a perfect equality in their political rights, they
would at the same time be perfectly equalized and assimilated in their possessions, their
opinions and their passions. A republic, by which I mean a government in which the scheme
of representation takes place, opens a different prospect, and promises the cure for that
which we are seeking. That is why the American system has enabled us to advance faster and
further than any people in the entire world's history.
One can follow the trail of the attempts to break down ordered government while hiding
under the popular connotations of the term 'democracy.' The effects beginning with Russia.
Next came Hungary, whose collapse a year later enabled Karolyi to establish a so-called
'democracy' under which Hungary was thrown into chaos, and the ensuing disorder made it
possible for Bela Kuhn, Trotzkite Internationalist, to take over. 'Democracy' came to
Germany with the abdication of the Kaiser; and led to Hitler. Calles brought 'democracy'
to Mexico and it has turned into Communism. The centralization of power that was made
possible by removing the checks and balances that stood in the way of a people granting
rights to a dictator under waves of emotional hysteria or under soothing promises of a
demagogue. It is happening in these United States -- where it is called a 'New World
Order.' By one who has crossed the Rubicon. Even if it means a civil war, which is what
happened when Caesar crossed his Rubicon. '... The right to freedom being the gift of God
Almighty...' The Rights of the Colonists as Christians'...may be best understood by
reading and carefully studying the institutes of the great Law Giver...which are to be
found clearly written and promulgated in the New Testament."
NOT ONE PASTOR IN 100,000 WILL TEACH OR PREACH THESE VERSES BECAUSE OF THEIR COWARDICE! In
1789, America recognized only male members of the White Race as being able to establish a
righteous criteria for voting, as citizens of the State wherein they resided. Women did
not vote because they still obeyed the Word of God and were under the Biblical covers of
their fathers and husbands. "...that women adorn themselves in modest apparel, with
shamefacedness and sobriety: not with broided hair, or gold, or pearls, or costly array;
But (which becometh women professing godliness) with good works. Let the woman learn in
silence with all subjection. But I suffer not a woman to teach, nor to usurp authority
over the man, but to be in silence. For Adam was first formed then Eve. And Adam was not
deceived, but the woman being deceived was in the transgression."
It was the view of the Founding Fathers, that the political realm was regarded as a mere
reflection or extension of the Law or Word of Almighty God and the Lord Jesus Christ. In
fact, ALL LAW is a direct reflection of the prevailing religion upon which a state is
founded.
THERE IS NO SUCH THING AS A SECULAR STATE; for "religion" is the great
state-building principle. The American colonists created a new state, because they were
already a church, A "CHRISTIAN" CHURCH, and that church was the very soul of the
created state. Our Fore Fathers held as Divine Doctrine, that governments were made for
the benefit of the governed and not for that of the governors, who were to regard
themselves as THE SERVANTS OF GOD; appointed for the benefit of His Israel People, the
Anglo-Saxon, Germanic, Scandinavian, Celtic and Kindred People of the United States and
the rest of the so-called Christian Nations of the World. "For rulers are NOT A
TERROR TO GOOD WORKS, BUT TO THE EVIL...For he [Government Agent] is the minister of God
to thee for good. But if thou do that which is evil, be afraid..."
THE PURPOSE OF GOVERNMENT
"If my people, which are called by my name, shall humble themselves, and pray, and
seek my face, and turn from their wicked ways; then will I hear from heaven, and will
forgive their sin, and will heal their land."
That government is ordained of God is a Biblical precept beyond reasonable controversy .
The Biblical reasons for government are as follows:
1). To punish murderers and violent offenders against mankind in order to protect the
innocent and maintain order .
2). To establish courts for the settlement of civil strife or disputes (Judges).
3). To maintain a sufficient military force in reserve to protect the citizenry against
unwarranted domestic and foreign aggression .
The preceding three reasons for the establishment of government are to allow man to
exercise three rights granted by the Creator: Life, Liberty, and Property ("Pursuit
of happiness" in the Declaration of Independence was substituted for
"property"). The most profound thesis on government ever written was by a
Frenchman, Frederic Bastiat (1801-1850), titled "The Law." Bastiat wrote:
"Life, liberty, and property do not exist because men have made laws. On the
contrary, it was the fact that life, liberty, and property existed beforehand that caused
men to make laws in the first place."
God ordained government TO PROTECT THESE RIGHTS, and government is simply the centralized
will of men whose consciences dictate that such precious gifts from the Creator be guarded
from usurpation by ungodly men. Or, as Bastiat explained: "If every person has
the right to defend, even by force, his person, his liberty, and his property, then it
follows that a group of men have the right to organize and support a common force to
protect these rights constantly."
The Biblical concept of government is always presented in the negative, rather than the
positive. The government cannot promise the citizenry anything other than protection.
While it can promise protection from injustice, it cannot offer administration of justice,
food, housing, or even equality, without planting the seeds for its own destruction.
Bastiat explained the downfall of government through the ungodly usurpation of the rights
of the individual thusly: "It can be further stated that, thanks to the
non-intervention of the state in private affairs, our wants and their satisfactions would
develop themselves in a logical manner. We would not see poor families seeking literary
instructions before they have bread. We would not see cities populated at the expense of
rural districts, nor rural districts at the expense of cities. We would not see the great
displacements of capital, labor, and populations that are caused by legislative
decisions...The law has gone further than this; it has acted in direct opposition to its
own purpose. The law has been used to destroy its own objective: it has been applied to
annihilating the justice that it was supposed to maintain; to limiting and destroying
rights which its real purpose was to respect. The law has placed the collective force at
the disposal of the unscrupulous who wish, without risk, to exploit the person, liberty,
and property of others. It has converted plunder into a right, in order to protect
plunder. And it has converted lawful defense into a crime, in order to punish lawful
defense...The law has been perverted by the influence of two entirely different causes:
greed and false philanthropy."
It is a natural instinct to want to help others, and this is an inherent faculty imparted
in the truth that man was made in the image of God. But in government, philanthropy, in
due course, is used by evil men ruled by greed to promote their own powers, ambitions, and
agendas. One example that Bastiat gave of the perversion of government through false
philanthropy was education, which produces a pseudo-intellectual, educational
"paradise" where God is left out.
Subsequently, moral decline sets in and men merely become clever devils. In spite of all
the billions poured into education and college student support programs in the U.S., it
can be argued without contradiction that the citizenry as a whole is actually worse off
than it was fifty years ago. Due to the unnatural intervention of government into
education and the social order, employment figures in many metropolitan areas favor 70
percent for women to 30 percent for men, further contributing to the increase in crime and
the moral degeneracy fomented by the breakup of the family unit.
Entitlement is another matter that infuses greed and plunder into the governmental
quagmire. According to the 1994 World Almanac, over $16 billion a year is required just to
pay veteran's pensions. Add to this the billions paid each year to the millions of retired
government employees (hidden in budget figures) and the cost to working taxpayers is
staggering.
In the 1992 fiscal year $257 billion was spent (again at taxpayer expense) on government
philanthropic programs (*health and human services), and another $281 billion for social
security benefits. It should be pointed out, however, that Social Security is the only
true government entitlement program, in that workers have paid their retirement benefits
into the insurance fund. Every legislator in Congress has their own particular pet pork
barrel project; every lobbyist walking the halls of Congress is after their sponsor's
share of the tax dollar. With only nineteen exceptions, every member of the House and
Senate, plus all past members still living (whether retired or defeated for office), are
eligible (based on the average life span) for $100,000 to $500,000 a year for the rest of
their lives in pensions and benefits. Bastiat observed: "Men naturally rebel against
the injustice of which they are victims. Thus, when plunder is organized by law for the
profit of those who make the law, all the plundered classes try somehow to enter, by
peaceful or revolutionary means, into making the laws. According to their degree of
enlightenment, these plundered classes may propose one of two entirely different purposes
when they attempt to attain political power: Either they may wish to stop lawful plunder,
or they may wish to share in it. Woe to the nation when the latter purpose prevails among
the mass victims of lawful plunder when they, in turn, seize the power to make laws."
Did the results of the November elections indicate a class struggle where the taxpayers
were simply attempting to put in power those who would reduce their tax burden? Did the
results indicate a national revulsion against the immorality and corruption in the present
administration (a national poll indicated that among 70 percent of the voters morality was
a consideration), or did the vote indicate that the voters want government to stay out of
their lives and not be a usurper of the individual God-given rights of the people?
The Republican party attained, through the November elections, a majority of the seats in
both the House and the Senate as well as in state governorships. If there are no changes,
or only cosmetic ones in the federal and state governments, then in 1996 the Republicans
will be voted out and the Democrats voted back in. The political circus will continue as
long as the legislators can collect enough tax money to keep enough of the philanthropic
recipients of government dole voting them back into office. Bastiat wrote of those who are
beneficiaries of political plunder: "Man can live and satisfy his wants only by
ceaseless labor; by the ceaseless application of his faculties to natural resources. This
process is the origin of property...Now since man is naturally inclined to avoid pain, and
since labor is pain in itself, it follows that men will resort to plunder whenever plunder
is easier than work. History shows this quite clearly. And under these conditions, neither
religion nor morality can stop it. When, then, does plunder stop? It stops when it become
more painful and more dangerous than labor."
There are a greater percentage of criminals and welfare recipients in the population of
the United States than any other country in the world, but it should be quickly noted that
criminals and welfare recipients do not fall in the same social category. The prisons of
America are glutted with murderers, dope peddlers, robbers, thieves, rapists, you name it,
they're there. But, due to a federal law, when a prison exceeds its inmate quota the
excess must be turned loose again on society.
Often, even the most violent and dangerous criminals spend only a few days in jail, and
then are allowed back out on the streets to kill, rob, and rape. (But a youngster that has
done no more than smoke a few joints of Murrina, or a tax protester, will have to spend
their full sentence in jail) Congress passed a $30 billion plus crime bill to hire more
policemen and build more jails.
Will it help? NO! Some new members in Congress say they plan to strengthen the bill, but
even shoring it up will not help. What will help is to execute every criminal on death row
within 90 days, and then begin shipping the rest to a secured island with enough lumber to
build dwellings, plows to till the ground, and seeds to plant. The penalty for plunder
will then become more painful than working for an honest living.
In the meantime, Americans are spending trillions of dollars for jails, police salaries
and bureaucracies, insurance, and the court systems. It does great harm to pass
legislation to deter crime when murderers and rapists are not executed, and liberal judges
and juries excuse the criminal and ignore the rights of the victim.
The O.J. and Nicole Simpson case was an excellent example of what's wrong with America:
divorce, dependent children, too much money, too little responsibility, fornication,
adultery, miscegenation, drugs, idolization of false gods of sports, lies, abuse, racial
conflicts, murder, abortion, too many lawyers, and a judicial system that leaves a
brainwashed and oversexed generation crying for more sensational news media titillation.
Indeed, O.J. and Nicole Simpson epitomize the present American generation. Only a
continuing united voter demand for the strict enforcement of the capital punishment laws,
linked with the abolishing of socialistic programs that only create criminal and crime
environments, will make a change in the crime statistics in this country.
President Lyndon Johnson, through federal subsidization of his "Great Society"
program, was going to eliminate poverty. Thirty years later, after plundering the working
class of trillions of dollars for welfare, there are ten times as many on the welfare
rolls now than there were at the beginning. When you subsidize welfare, accepting
government aid becomes less painful than working, and women bearing illegitimate children
will continue to do what to them comes natural. Statistics showing that the percentage
rate of illegitimacy has increased over five times in recent years have been published
again and again. Social weepers will moan and groan before TV cameras how these poor women
struggle just to make their welfare checks stretch far enough to obtain the bare
necessities of life.
It is true that some mothers on welfare have been abused, and that husbands have left them
with several children to care for. However, as we read in the Bible, the rain falls on the
just as it does on the unjust, and unless welfare is stopped altogether the bumper crop of
welfare bums will continue to be harvested. Churches and local aid programs can be
marshalled to help those deserving of financial assistance.
Only by eliminating welfare will the foundation of every social order, the family, be
restored in the nation. Boys and girls will be more careful about selecting a mate; a
husband and wife will try more earnestly to make their marriage work before getting a
divorce; and single women will be more careful about engaging in sex before marriage.
Termination of federal welfare programs will also result in lowering the crime rate. The
majority of criminals today come from single-parent or broken homes where no moral or
spiritual guidance is provided. They have grown up without respect for the work ethic,
law, property, or their fellow man. But! Stop welfare and there could be a near revolution
in our nation. Not only will welfare recipients riot, pillage, and burn when welfare
checks stop, the liberal news media will stir up millions of sobbing social apologists to
join the cause of "decency."
Senator Phil Gramm, on the NBC program "Meet The Press," revealed that welfare
spending last year (1994) totaled $310 billion. Several congressmen and senators are now
proposing legislation to either stop or overhaul the federal welfare dole program. Bastiat
observed: "While society is struggling, men who put themselves at its head are filled
with the spirit of seventeenth and eighteenth centuries. They think only of subjecting
mankind to the philanthropic tyranny of their own social inventions. Like Rosseau, they
desire to force mankind docilely to bear this yoke of the public welfare that they have
dreamed up in their own imaginations."
Bastiat, citing welfare entrenched programs that go back in history to the times of the
Greeks, Romans, and Egyptians, concluded that the only way such federally endowed systems
have ever been stopped or reversed was through an absolute dictatorship. Therefore, with
the authority of history, it is likely that some legislators will orate and propound brave
words about emptying the public trough, but the majority in Congress will shout them down
as cruel and heartless Scrooges. Ultimately, little will be done other than an obscure
reshuffling of the public dole which will signify nothing. The taxpayers will, as Bastiat
said, continue to meekly submit to tyrannical philanthropy because no one wants to be
accused of allowing widows and children to go hungry.
According to the U.S. Department of the Treasury, by using the income tax, meaning a tax
on income, there was collected in 1992 $476 billion from individual citizens and $100
billion from corporations, with another $413 billion from employees and employers in
Social Security "contributions." Total revenue from all sources for the federal
government in 1992 was $1.1 trillion.
The 16th Amendment to the Constitution became the law of the land in 1913. This law
made legal the confiscation of certain percentages of income to both individuals and
businesses. The income tax law did not limit or qualify the way in which the tax receipts
were to be used. Therefore, the "law" not only set historical precedents as an
instrument for plunder, but it gave to the federal government great powers over all those
bound under it. When Nelson Mandela, the new president of South Africa, was asked how he
would redistribute the wealth, he replied without hesitation or apology, "Through
taxation." Whether we agree or disagree with the need or application of the income
tax law, it is used in many ways as a vehicle of socialism; taking from the
"haves" and giving to the "have-nots." A Reuters news story, dateline
Washington, November 14, 1994, stated in part: "Congressional leaders Sunday
distanced themselves from proposals by some leading Republicans to scrap the income tax
and impose a national sales tax instead."
This news report continued to reflect the views of some of the leading members of
Congress. Phil Gramm and Newt Gingrich said it should be considered, but that there are
more important matters like cutting the budget that needs their attention first.
Congressman Gephardt from Missouri said that he was against terminating the income tax law
and believed that such a thing would never happen because the poor would have to bear a
disproportionate percentage of the tax burden.
However, let us consider that a citizen who makes $20,000 a year would spend $10,000 on
taxable merchandise and services, while another citizen making $1 million would spend
$500,000 on taxable items. If the sales tax for the federal budget was 5 percent, then the
lower income person would pay $1,000 a year, and the higher income person would pay
$25,000, or twenty-five times as much.
These Americans in the lower income tax bracket must pay the social security tax out of
their wages, and they also must pay for their public utilities like everyone else, so why
not let them bear some of the federal expense even though it may be only a small part.
There are some high ranking members of Congress like Dick Armey and Bill Archer of Texas,
and Pete Domenici of New Mexico who plan to introduce a bill in January 1995 to do away
with the income tax law.
Whether such a bill will ever pass Congress is questionable. If it should pass, President
Clinton would likely veto it. The federal bureaucracy in both the executive and
legislative branches of government will fight to the death rather than relinquish this
power-control weapon over the population, a law that presumes tax payers guilty until
proven innocent. Referencing Bastiat once again: "Socialists desire to practice legal
plunder, not illegal plunder...Now, legal plunder can be committed in an indefinite number
of ways. Thus we have an infinite number of plans for organizing it: tariffs (taxes),
benefits, subsidies, encouragements, progressive taxation, public schools, guaranteed
jobs, guaranteed profits, minimum wages, a right to relief, a right to the tools of labor,
free credit, and so on. All these plans as a whole, with their common aim of legal
plunder, constitute socialism. Now, since under this definition socialism is a body of
doctrine, what attack can be made against it other than a war of doctrine? If you find
this socialistic doctrine to be false, absurd, and evil, then refute it. And the more
false, the more absurd, and the more evil it is, the easier it will be to refute. Above
all, if you wish to be strong, begin by rooting out every particle of socialism that may
have crept into your legislation. This will be no light task."
One hundred and fifty years ago Bastiat advised that if we attempt to attack socialistic
legal plunder on the grounds of the ultimate recipients like widows, farmers, orphans,
police enforcement, etc., we will lose and legal plunder will only become worse.
Socialism, and its ultimate weapon, the income tax, must be opposed on a basis of doctrine
that considers the restraint on production, the unfairness to the working class, and the
moral damage to both the nation and the recipients as well. However, even if as a result
of the 1994 elections the income tax law is rescinded (which is not likely), new
safeguards would have to be written into the new tax system or the same
bureaucratic-socialistic evils would just continue in another form.
During the early years of America, each family was considered in itself to be a unit of
government, with only adult males casting the votes. The de jure government established in
1789, was basically Christian; it was established on Bible Law -- A Republican
Representative form of Government: One which honored the Lord Jesus Christ and the
Christian Faith! The prosperity and happiness of the American People was seen by the other
nations of the world, and the founding fathers, to be a direct outcome of its Christian
Religion and that ruin was inevitably seen to be the outcome following vice and sin. And
it was their view that the first duty of a government was to support, teach and practice
the Christian Religion of the Nation, by public recognition and honor paid to it in the
outward forms of its worship, and by using it as the groundwork of the education of the
people; and by putting a social stigma upon all deviation from it.
It was widely believed, failure to adhere to these principles would inevitably lead to the
destruction of the United States. "The dread and redoubtable sovereign, when traced
to his ultimate and genuine source, has been found, as he ought to have been found, in the
free and independent man...This truth, so simple and natural, and yet so neglected or
despised, may be appreciated as the first and fundamental principle in the science of
government."
This, then, was the prevailing view of history, law and religion at the time the American
Republic was founded and subsequently for the first one hundred years of its existence.
The organic law completely embodied those Christian principles because it was wholly based
upon the same authority that taught them -- THE CHRISTIAN HOLY BIBLE. "Next to the
power of religion, a strict administration of justice is the best security of morals.
Foreign influence will not greatly prevail, as long as morals remain uncorrupted. The
British common law is, therefore, one of the bulwarks against that corruption of manners,
which will invite foreign influence, in spite of all the frothy harangues that will
ascribe it to the wrong causes. A people thoroughly licentious and corrupt [And democracy
will make them such], will be betrayed, and foreign states will reward demagogues for
managing their passions to mislead them. It is by practicing on their hopes and fears,
that such men gain an influence over the people, and after they have gained, they have it
for sale."
The Common Law of England, in its purest and earliest form, was Germanic and Celtic in
origin. Beyond that its roots go back into the mists of history, to ancient Israel. It
appears over and over again in the records and traditions of all the Aryan nations. In the
ancient records it is always described and couched in the context of a fundamental law of
divine origin associated with the governance of all nature. "For the law was given by
Moses, but grace and truth came by Jesus Christ."
The founding fathers of the American Republic referred to it as "the law of nature
and nature's God." This phrase was lifted directly from the "Lex Salica,"
the common law of the German tribes that over ran Europe as well as Scandinavia and
eventually settled in large portions of what was then Britain, later to become England.
Both Franklin and Jefferson stated that the substantive principles of representatives
government upon which the American Constitution was founded were taken from two sources.
The First: Was the system of Constitutional Government was practiced by Ancient Israel,
under the leadership of first Moses and later Joshua. "Liberty...is the essential
condition and guardian of religion; and it is in the history of the Chosen People,
accordingly, that the first illustrations of my subject are obtained. The government of
the Israelites was a Federation, held together by no political authority, but by the unity
of race and faith, and founded, not on physical force, but on a voluntary covenant. The
principle of self- government was carried out not only in each tribe, but in every group
of at least 120 families; and there was neither privilege of rank nor inequality before
the law. Monarchy was so alien to the primitive spirit of the community that it was
resisted by Samuel in that kingdoms of Asia and many of the kingdoms of Europe have
unceasingly confirmed."
The Second: Source was the institutes of government of the Anglo-Saxons which were almost
identical to those of the Ancient Israelites. America being a third. "The heroic age
of Greece confirms it, and it is still more conspicuously true of Teutonic Europe.
Wherever we can trace the earlier life of the Aryan nations we discover germs which
favoring circumstance and assiduous culture might have developed into free societies. They
exhibit some sense of Common interest in common concerns, little reverence for external
authority, and an imperfect sense of the function and supremacy of the state."
Jefferson's historical studies brought him to the conclusion that ancient Israel was the
first nation in history to have a representative government; he also discovered that 1500
years later the Anglo-Saxons were living under a system which was almost identical. Was
there a connection? Were these two peoples so separated by time and geography related?
"...And Reason, which is that Law, teaches all Mankind, who will but consult it, that
being all equal and independent, no one ought to harm another in his Life, Health,
Liberty, or Possessions..."
Franklin and Jefferson both proposed a national seal for our new nation which portrayed on
one side the Children of Israel in the wilderness led by a cloud by day and a pillar of
fire by night. And on the other side of the proposed seal was portrayed:
"Hengist and Horsa, the Saxon chiefs, from whom we claim the honor of being descended
and whose political principles and form of government we have assumed."
The motto which Jefferson and Franklin proposed to go on the national seal was,
"REBELLION TO TYRANTS IS OBEDIENCE TO GOD."
Jefferson wrote extensively at the time about the need for a renaissance of Anglo-Saxon
primitive institutions on the new continent. He considered the American Rebelion as
nothing but the declaration of the Anglo-Saxon birthright of which the colonists had been
deprived by "a long train of abuses." On August 13, 1776, Jefferson wrote to
Edmund Pendleton to convince him that Virginia must abolish the remnants of feudalism and
return to the "ancient principles:" "Are we not better for what we
have hitherto abolished of the feudal system? Has not every restitution of the ancient
Saxon laws had happy effects? Is it not better now that we return at once into that happy
system of our ancestors, the wisest and most perfect ever yet devised by the wit of man,
as it stood before the eighth century?"
Jefferson even studied the language of the Anglo-Saxons so that he might read their laws
in the original tongue. In a letter to his old tutor, George Wythe, dated November 1,
1778, Jefferson wrote that: "...the extracts from the Anglo-Saxon law, the sources of
the Common Law, I wrote in the original for my own satisfaction; but I have added Latin or
liberal English translations."
Jefferson also stated in 1803: "I am a Christian, in the only sense in which He
{Christ} wished anyone to be: sincerely attached to His doctrines, in preference to all
others."
Also said the following about centralized government: "...I am not a friend to a very
energetic government. It is always oppressive. It places the governors indeed more at
their ease, at the expense of the people."; "If ever this vast country is
brought under a single {Central} government, it will be one of the most extensive in
corruption."; "Our country is too large to have all its affairs directed by a
single government. Public servants, at such a distance and from under the eye of their
constituents, must, from the circumstance of distance, be unable to administer and
overlook all the details necessary for the good government of the citizens; and the same
circumstance, by rendering detection impossible to their constituents, will invite the
public agents to corruption, plunder, and waste...
What an augmentation of the field for jobbing, speculating, plundering, office-building,
and office-hunting would be produced by an assumption of all the state powers into the
hands of the general government. The true theory of our Constitution {strict construction}
is surely the wisest and best - that the states are independent as to everything within
themselves, and united as to everything respecting foreign nations. Let the general
government be reduced to foreign concerns only, and let our affairs be disentangled from
those of all other nations, except as to commerce, which the merchants will manage the
better, the more they are left free to manage themselves. And our general government may
be reduced to a very simple organization and a very inexpensive one: a few plain duties to
be performed by a few servants."
BIBLICAL CONNECTION
The Anglo-Saxons originated in the area of the Black Sea in the centuries before Christ
and from there spread all across Northern Europe. This was the same area to which the
Northern Ten Tribes of Ancient Israel had been transported by their Assyrian conquerors
some 100 years earlier. THE OBVIOUS IMPLICATION OF THESE HISTORICAL FACTS IS THAT THE
ANCIENT ISRAELITES AND THE LATTER DAY ANGLO-SAXONS ARE ONE AND THE SAME PEOPLE.
The two peoples share many of the same cultural practices and preserved the same unique
institutes of government. The Anglo-Saxons organized themselves into units identical to
those of the ancient Israelites described in the Old Testament. As called for by Biblical
Law, their society was organized upon the foundation of the family and the tribal concept
of clan, sept, kith and kin. "Let divines and philosophers, statesmen and patriots,
unite their endeavors to renovate the age, by impressing the minds of men with the
importance of educating their little boys and girls, of inculcating in the minds of youth
the fear and love of the Deity and universal philanthropy, and, in subordination to these
great principles, the love of their country; of instructing them in the art of
self-government, without which they never can act a wise part in the government of
societies, great or small; in short, of leading them in the study and practice of the
exalted virtues of the Christian system..."
Like the ancient Israelites, the Anglo-Saxons considered themselves a commonwealth of
freemen with certain inalienable rights and duties intended for the preservation of blood
and soil. All laws, as well as the election of leaders, had to be by the common consent of
the people. Authority granted to a chieftain in time of war was extremely limited and was
taken away from him as soon as the emergency passed.
Again, as in the Bible, THEIR SYSTEM OF JUSTICE WAS BASED UPON THE PRINCIPLE OF PAYMENT OF
DAMAGES [restitution] TO THE VICTIM RATHER THAN CALLING IT A CRIME AGAINST THE WHOLE
PEOPLE. They recognized all the capital crimes designated in the Bible and their
punishments were the same. For documentation as to the foregoing see:
1). Colin Rhys Lovel, English Constitutional and Legal History, Oxford University Press,
1962; and
2). Sharon Turner, The History of the Anglo-Saxons, London: Longman, etc., 1836, pp.
221-225).
From the foregoing historical authorities, it is evident that the common law and the law
of God are synonymous, the former having originated in the latter. It is also evident that
these things were all part of our ancestral birthright long before the advent of the Roman
Church of Europe and the Isles. In fact, these cultural, historical and genetic
associations can be traced directly back to the time of the classical civilization of
ancient Israel and beyond. "...'in almost all cases, the common law was grounded on
the law of God, which it is said was causa causans,' and the court cited the 27th chapter
of Numbers, to show that their judgment on a common law principle in regard to the law of
inheritance, was founded in God's revelation of that law to Moses." ; "...The
eternal principles of natural religion are part of the common law; the essential
principles of revealed religion are part of the common law; so that any person reviling,
subverting, or ridiculing them, may be prosecuted at common law..."
Thus, as originally adopted in England from both the Celtic and Germanic influences, THIS
COMMON LAW EMBRACED ALL THE FUNDAMENTAL TENETS OF BIBLICAL LAW as to property and the
rights of the individual. "By the Common Law and by the Bible, which is the
foundation of the Common Law..."
A CHRISTIAN IDEA OF MAN
This nation was begun as The last word in human political institutions -- A Republican
form of Government! "The vast region which the flag of the United States protects
was, two centuries and a half ago, the roaming ground of tribes of Indians...It was
virtually a wast awaiting, in the order of Providence, the magic influence of an incoming
race, imbued with the spirit of a new civilization. The period referred to was an epoch in
which there had been a providential preparation for great events in the Old World. It was
an era of wonderful discovery in the heavens and the earth. It was also the period of the
Reformation. This, in its essence, was the assertion of the principle of individuality, or
of true spiritual freedom; and in the beginning, not by Protestants alone, of whom Luther
was the great exponent... Though first occupied with subjects not connected with political
speculation, yet it was natural and inevitable, that inquiry should widen out from the
realm of the Church into that of the State. Then a fresh impetus was given to that
transformation of society, which began when Christianity - the basis of the good,
permanent, and progressive in modern civilization first appeared in the world. At that
time, social order rested on the assumed natural inequality of men. The individual was
regarded as of value only as he formed a part of the political fabric, and was able to
contribute to its uses, as though it were the end of his being to aggrandize the State.
This was the pagan idea of man.
The wisest philosophers of antiquity could not rise above it. Its influence imbued the
pagan world. The State regarded as of paramount importance, not the man, but the citizen
whose physical and intellectual forces it absorbed.
If this tended to foster lofty civic virtues and splendid individual culture in the
classes whom the State selected as the recipients of its favors, it bore hard on those
whom the State virtually ignored, on laboring men, mechanics, the poor, captives in war,
slaves, and woman. This low view of man was exerting its full influence when Rome was at
the height of its power and glory.
Christianity then appeared with its central doctrine, that man was created in the Divine
image, and destined for immortality; pronouncing, that, in the eye of God, all men are
equal. This asserted for the individual an independent value. It occasioned the great
inference, that man is superior to the State, which ought to be fashioned for his use.
This was the advent of a new spirit and a new power in the world. The struggle between the
pagan and Christian elements was severe.
In four centuries, civil society was transformed from the pagan basis to that of
Christianity. But, long after Rome had crumbled, the influence of Paganism, under various
forms, continued to operate; and especially the idea, that man was made for the State, the
office of which, or of a divine right vested in one, or in a privileged few, was to
fashion the thought and control the action of the many.
Its embodiment in arbitrary power, both in ecclesiastical and political affairs, continued
to oppress and benumb the intellect, until the Reformation roused a spirit of activity in
the bosom of the Church.
The new life thus started in the domain of religion soon communicated itself to other
provinces...There then rose, above the low level of a corrupt political world, a class of
thinkers who grasped the idea that the State ought to exist for man; that justice,
protection, and the common good, ought to be the aim of government...Among them were John
Milton, imbued with the very spirit of the Reformation, who defended the noble thesis,
that freedom is the native right of man, and gave the world a mighty and still unsurpassed
plea for liberty of utterance; John Locke...was so successful in catching and expressing
the liberal spirit of his age, in his work on Civil Government, that it became the
platform of a great political party, and gradually widened out into an influence that
operated far beyond the thought or the theory of its adherents; so that, Hallam says,
'while silently spreading its fibers from its roots over Europe and America, it prepared
the way for theories hardly bolder in their announcement, but expressed with more
passionate ardor, from which the last and present age have sprung.' This historical
judgment is applicable to a line of illustrious characters, who grasped the Christian idea
of man; and, because of the brilliancy of their service in behalf of human rights, they
deserve a place among the morning stars of the American constellation."
LIBERTY
"Where the Spirit of the Lord is, there is liberty."
Liberty is a word often uttered, but seldom understood. It is the theme of ardent
elocution, but of little sober considera-tion. Poets and orators have eulogized the
attributes of Liberty; demagogues shout the word from the roof-tops, for political
advancement; enemies of our Israel people have used the word as a battle cry to start wars
in their efforts to destroy them; yet few, investigate or comprehend its true nature.
Civil liberty, the liberty of a community, is a severe and restrained thing.
The fundamental idea of it is that of protection in the enjoyment of our own rights, up to
the point where we begin to entrench upon the rights of others. It is natural liberty, so
far restrained, and only so far, as may be necessary for the public good. Every law, which
abridges personal freedom, without a corresponding general advantage, is an infringement
of civil liberty.
But it is no infringement of liberty to restrain the freedom of subjection, and obedience.
Motesquieu has well defined it, when he says, that it "consists in the power of doing
what we wish to do, and in not being constrained to do what we ought to not to do."
Liberty is a right of doing what the laws permit. For if one citizen does what the
law forbids, all might do it, which would eventually result in anarchy. In such a state
True liberty would expire. "In those days there was no king in Israel, but every man
did that which was right in his own eyes...In those days there was no king in Israel:
every man did that which was right in his own eyes."
JEWISH SUBVERSION
However, as early as the fifteenth century various Jewish practices with regard to debt,
usury, taxation of the land, inheritance of the land and mortgages [The death gate] had
begun to creep into the common law of England via the influence of Jewish money lenders
attached to the throne. These principles of Jewish law had their origins in the Babylonian
Talmud and not the Bible. These practices were correctly perceived by the American
colonists as alien and contrary to Biblical law and all the principles of liberty
championed therein. For this reason the common law of England was considered by the
colonists as defiled and corrupted everywhere the Talmudic influence had touched it.
The American Founding Fathers utterly rejected and scorned these influences. They were
well aware that the practices of the Jews came not from the Old Testament, but rather from
the Talmud and other spurious rabbinical sources. They knew that Christ had referred to
the Babylonian teachings of the Jews as "the traditions of the elders" and had
condemned these practices as being not only contrary to the Law of God but of actually
making God's Law of no effect. Our forefathers knew that Judaism and Christianity were
total opposites, which is much more than the Judeo-Christian preachers of today know.
"The current expression 'Judeo-Christian' is an error which
has altered the course of universal history by the confusion it has sown in men's mind, if
by it one is meant to understand the Jewish origin of Christianity; for by abolishing the
fundamental distinctions between Jewish and Christian messianism, IT SEEKS TO BRING
TOGETHER TWO IDEAS THAT ARE RADICALLY IN OPPOSITION. By laying the accent exclusively on
the 'Christian' idea to the detriment of the 'Judean' it conjures away monotheistic
messianism - a valuable discipline at all levels of thought, and reduces it to a purely
confessional messianism, preoccupied like Christian messianism with the salvation of the
individual soul. If the term 'Judeo-Christian' does point to a common origin, there is no
doubt that it is a most dangerous idea.
It is based on a 'contrdictio in adjecto' which has set the path of history on the wrong
track. It links in one breath two ideas which are completely irreconcilable, it seeks to
demonstrate that there is no difference between day and night or hot and cold or black and
white, and thus introduces a fatal element of confusion to a basis on which some,
nevertheless, are endeavoring to construct a civilization. Christianity offers to the
world a limited messianism which it wishes to impose as the only valid one...Even Spinoza,
who was further than any other thinker from the historic messianism of Israel, wrote: 'As
for what certain churches say, that God assumed human nature, I must confess that this
seems to me as absurd as saying that a circle assumed the shape of a square ...' The
dogmatic exclusiveness professed by Christianity must finally end...It is the obstinate
Christian claim to be the sole heir to Israel which propagates-anti-Semitism. This scandal
must terminate sooner or later; the sooner it goes, the sooner the world will be rid of
the issue of lies in which anti-Semitism shrouds itself."
The Talmud was considered to be the complete antithesis of Biblical Law and when adopting
the common law for the new Republic the Founding Fathers specifically rejected anything
and everything that had the slightest odor or stench of Jewish influence.
STANDARD OF JUSTICE
They removed everything that was contrary to the Christian understanding of God's Law as
set forth in both the Old and New Testaments and it was their stated intention that the
justice embraced by the Constitution would be defined in terms of Christian Morality and
none other. They fully adopted and implemented the Law of God not only as the judicial
standard for measuring and determining justice, but also for the very organization of the
government itself. "The people of this state, in common with the people of this
country, profess the general doctrines of Christianity, as the rule of their faith and
practice..."
As a matter of law, Christianity was to be the foundational influence in all the social,
political and economic aspects of the social compact and government formed; Christianity
was to completely define and determine the very organization and structure of the
government. "Christianity, general Christianity, is and always has been a part of the
common law of Pennsylvania..." ; "The distinguished commentator on the laws of
England informs us, that upon the foundations of the law of nature and the law of
revelation, all human law depends, . The municipal law looks to something more than merely
the protection of lives, the liberty, and the property of our people. REGARDING
CHRISTIANITY AS PART OF THE LAW OF THE LAND, it respects and protects its institutions;
and assumes likewise the regulate the public morals and decency of the community."
The moral, ethical and spiritual force of Christianity was so interwoven into the fabric
of the Republic that one could not be separated from the other without destroying both.
Thus, the ancient common law adopted as the foundation of the American Republic, being
fully predicated upon the Christian revelation of the Scriptures and the Divine
Commandments therein, was rightfully referred to as "Christian Common Law."
"Every system of law known to civilized society generated from or had as its
component one of three well known systems of ethics, pagan, stoic, or Christian concept of
right and wrong or right and justice motivates every rule of equity. It is the guide by
which we dissolve domestic frictions AND THE RULE BY WHICH ALL LEGAL CONTROVERSIES ARE
SETTLED."
REPUBLIC AND THE FAITH
Thus, the colonists "Established" their state constitutions within the
principles of the common law [as measured against the Bible] to assure that THE NATION
[The United States] WOULD BE A CHRISTIAN REPUBLIC. "The Christian religion is the
established religion by our form of government and all denominations are placed on an
equal footing and equally entitled to protection in their religious Liberty."
What does Justice Chase mean? "The Christian Religion is the established religion by
OUR FORM OF GOVERNMENT?"
Isn't it true that Christians believe that our Father is composed of three co-equal parts
in one whole: the Father, the Son and the Holy Ghost? Isn't this a major tenet of the
Christian Faith? The Constitution of Delaware (1776) clearly points out that this is a
part of the Christian faith embraced by our forefathers. It requires that the following
declaration be made before taking a seat in the legislature, entering upon the execution
of an office, or occupying a place of trust in the Delaware government, to wit: "I, A
B, do profess faith in God the Father, and Jesus Christ His only Son, and in the Holy
Ghost, one God, blessed for evermore; and I do acknowledge the Holy scriptures of the Old
and New Testament to be given by divine inspiration."
Thus, the oath requires three fundamental declarations:
a). A belief in the divinity of Jesus the Christ;
b). A belief in the divine origins of both the Old and New Testaments; and,
c). A belief in the triune nature of our God; the principle of three in one.
Upon these three points the founding fathers defined what was and was not
"Christian" and organized our government.
The government in a Christian Nation must be fashioned after its head, i.e. the one true
God declared in the Delaware Constitution and in the Scriptures of the Old and New
Testaments. Thus, we find the source of three co-equal branches of government in a
Christian Republic. Now you understand why Mr. Justice Chase said that "the
Christian Religion is the established religion by our form of government" [A
Christian Republic].
Obviously, if Christianity is the established religion, then it is also the protected
religion. Consider that the nature of the sovereignty determines the nature of the
government both as to structure as well as function. This is so because the form of
government must follow the form and practice of the religion that created it and gave it
birth. And don't you doubt for one minute that absolutely ALL governments are founded upon
and find their origins in religion! Even that of the Soviet Union! It follows then that a
system of government and law founded upon the principles of Christianity is fundamentally
duty bound to protect and nurture Christianity. Otherwise it has no reason to justify its
continued existence.
A government which acts contrary to its own founding principles and pollutes the
wellsprings of its own creation must decline into chaos, anarchy and destruction. It is
impossible for such a government to bring about order and harmony in anything. It is an
abomination! And the people of the land shall know the same end as the government they
tolerated and supported. The law of nature and divine justice will not be defied! We SHALL
REAP ALL THAT WE HAVE SOWN. "Be not deceived; God is not mocked: for whatsoever a man
soweth that shall he also reap."
In Leviticus 26:22, the penalties for flouting the commands of the Everliving God are
clearly set out: "I will also send wild beasts among you, which shall rob you of your
children, and destroy your cattle, and make you few in number; and your high ways shall be
desolate."
DEMOCRACY HAS NO FAITH
As a means of contrast, let's review the constitution of the Soviet Union. There we find
that only one branch of government holds the governing power. The USSR, being officially
un-Christian or an anti-Christ nation, does not depend upon the design embodied in
Christian doctrine for the establishment of their nation and government. "The highest
organ of state power in the USSR is the Supreme Soviet of the USSR." ; "In order
to ensure to citizens freedom of conscience, the church in the USSR is separated from the
state, and the school from the church. Freedom of religious worship and freedom of
anti-religious propaganda is recognized for all citizens."
Apparently there must be more than one type of republic. The U.S.S.R. is called a
"republic." The United States of America is a "republic." But, by
their respective forms of government, they are clearly differentiated as two contrasting
types thereof. We're told that the U.S.S.R. is becoming more like the U.S.A. THIS IS LIE;
just the opposite is true. The truth is that AMERICA, today IS, by the process of
legislative fiat, BEING TRANSFORMED FROM A CHRISTIAN REPUBLIC INTO A SOCIALIST ANTI-CHRIST
DEMOCRACY, both in law and in fact.
Why do you think that in America today "May Day" is celebrated as "Law
Day?" The answer is because what was done in Russia through wholesale murder is being
accomplished here through the process of statutory legislation. They are both
revolutionary processes; one is just quieter than the other and has the advantage of
stealth. How is this being accomplished? First, the socialists in this nation had to
convert the constitutions of the several states from their common law [Christian] form to
the socialist [anti- Christ] form of republic:
1). By removing the indivisible "nation" principle; that is, the recognition of
free whites as a citizenry, thereby destroying the principle of one race indivisible and
unmixed; and,
2). By removing the common law jurisdiction from the courts which:
a). gave particular recognition to and enforced the rights of that citizenry; and
b). recognized Christian doctrine as the standard whereby justice was to be measured and
decreed; and
3). Neutralize the common law jurisdiction of the counties and cities/towns; and
4). Remove all State militias; and,
5). By bringing state government under the full power of one branch and making it the
"highest organ of state power."
The Socialists/Communists, if they believe in any thing at all, believe in Satan's form of
government; one master with sole control. Satan's government demands total centralization
of all power, authority and responsibility. But that isn't all. It also demands wholesale
miscegenation; mixing of the races. Satan's government always demands the destruction of
that which God has created and separated and it is always based upon the egalitarian
principles of internationalism; especially where the White Race is concerned. Satan loves
confusion. Our Father loves order. Our Father says that miscegenation is confusion and an
abomination. Miscegenation is confusion and is forbidden by God. "Neither shalt thou
lie with any beast [dark races] to defile thyself therewith: neither shall any woman stand
before a beast to lie down thereto: it is confusion. Defile not ye yourselves in any of
these things: for in all these the nations are defiled which I cast out before you"
For a second witness: "When the Most High divided to the nations their
inheritance, when he separated the sons of Adam, he set the bounds of the people according
to the number of the children of Israel. For the Lord's portion is his people; Jacob is
the lot of his inheritance."
It is appalling to examine the limits that Bible teachers will go to in their efforts to
make a place in Scripture of interracial marriage. Every Scripture in the Bible is
carefully scrutinized to make room for race mixing. These false apostles of Satan's
kingdom will do anything to make it appear that the Word of God commends race mixing.
If you believe what the modern clergy preach, you will believe that Adam and Eve might
have been black and white. You would believe that Asenath, wife of Joseph, Zipporah, wife
of Moses, Rachab, wife of Salmon, and other leading women of Scripture were black or some
other color. The American clergy appears to derive some special pleasure out of turning
the Holy Bible into a racial polyglot of twisted and confusing bloodlines that end up
merging all races into one fully integrated and mingled people. These preachers of mix and
mate, love and amalgamate go to any end to promote interracial dating, marriage and social
relationships. IN FACT, IF THIS WERE TRUE, THERE WOULD BE NO WHITE RACE, NO BLACK RACE AND
NO ORENTIAL RACE!
The miscegenation mania in the pulpit, in the pew, throughout America, and now
appearingthe the remnant pulpit is cause for grave concern. Blood pollution is forever;
it's irreversible. We can rebuild the foundations of a collapsed economy. The rotting
political infrastructure of America can be restored amid fasting, prayer, and Bible
reconstruction. A resolution for our social problems can, in time, be found. But if we
pollute our blood amid the sin of miscegenation and reduce the purity of our White Race
and every race to bland gray, America will be finished forever. Every base nation on earth
today results fromthe fusion of the primary builder race, the White Race, with the help of
the other races not through race mixing. The browning of Egypt, Greece, North Africa,
India, Peru, and other nations resulted from race mixing. Those who fail to live by the
Biblical Law of racial purity will be judged in the eternal loss of the genetic
foundations upon which nations are built.
Never realizing that Sodom and Gomorrah were destroyed by Almighty God because of sodomy
and race mixing. "Even as Sodom and Gomorrha, and the cities about them in like
manner, giving themselves over to fornication, and going after strange flesh [having sex
and marrying those of other races], are set forth for an example, suffering the vengeance
of eternal fire." ; "Neither shalt thou make marriages with them; thy daughter
thou shalt not give unto his son, nor his daughter shalt thou take unto thy son." ;
"...I am the Lord your God, which have separated you from other people." ;
"...so shall we be separated, I and thy people, from all the people that are upon the
face of the earth."
Satan's form of government will not and cannot tolerate individual responsibility and
liberty, nor will it tolerate their mandatory corollaries: purity, cleanliness and
obedience to God. A citizen in Satan's government has no responsibility and no liberty;
only the duties of a slave under compelled performance. By way of contrast, our Father's
form of government is founded upon the principle of total decentralization with complete
individual responsibility and self-government; that is, unfettered liberty with
corresponding responsibilities and duties, but no compelled performance except by
contract. Our Father's government demands complete separation of the races. Satan's
government demands mixing of the races. Satan's government also allows, encourages and
finances the destruction of your children and would-be grand children through abortion.
Think about the contrasts in that. Satan is the destroyer and he persuades you to exercise
your own free will and destroy yourself by going after "strange flesh" and
"evil practices." What is abortion if it isn't ritual murder and child
sacrifice?
The principles of the Father's word demand separation in all things as a prerequisite to
achieving order and harmony. Satan demands the mixing of all things as a prerequisite to
achieving confusion and ultimately your destruction. One of Satan's ancient names is
"the chaos monster."
The name perfectly describes his nature and purpose. But the choice is always yours and it
is always couched in terms of whether you will or will not obey the Father's Law. In other
words, your free will is still intact and the test of it is the willingness of your heart
to adhere to and obey the Father's law as the focal point and guide for your life. For it
is our own disobedience to the Father's Life Law that has allowed the Socialists
Communists to dismantle our Christian Republic. The Socialists/Communists are
accomplishing the implementation of Satan's form of government and all the necessary steps
thereto [listed above] through their understanding and manipulation of Article IV, Section
4, of the Constitution for the United States of America. "The United States shall
guarantee to every state in this Union a REPUBLICAN FORM OF GOVERNMENT, and shall protect
each of them against Invasion; and on Application of the Legislature, or of the Executive
[when the Legislature cannot be convened] against domestic Violence."
Notice that our constitution does not say what kind of "republic" Congress must
guarantee. Obviously that was left to the several states to establish. But our
constitution did organize and establish the government upon the principle of three
co-equal branches thereby indicating that our republics were to be Christian in both form
and function. "Indeed, in a republic, there would seem to be a peculiar propriety in
viewing the Christian religion, as the great basis, on which it must rest for its support
and permanence, if it be, what it has ever been deemed by its truest friends to be, THE
RELIGION OF LIBERTY. Montesquieu has remarked, THE CHRISTIAN RELIGION IS A STRANGER TO
MERE DESPOTIC POWER..." ; "America stands as a model which other nations will
carefully copy, in due time, as they can adapt themselves and change their institutions.
There may be no literal copy or close formal imitation; but there is little doubt that the
spirit and true sense of our Declaration of Independence will finally mould the structure
and control the workings of all governments...
Our people are busy using their liberties and energies, each for his individual benefit,
as is quite right and proper; since the welfare of individuals makes the prosperity of the
community. But a government left to take care of itself {as ours has been} is prone to do
that work only too well. We have done well and wisely in important crises; but a more
intelligent and constant watchfulness over the ordinary course of public affairs would
have been still better.
Knowledge is power, when wisely applied; and a more accurate acquaintance with their
government and its history will enable American Citizens to mould it more wisely still, to
correct all defects of administration, and to speedily reach that minimum of governmental
interference with the efforts and interests of the citizens which shall give them the
fullest liberty consistent with security and surrender the whole round of human life, as
completely as possible to the beneficent action of natural law...
Thus we find the spirit of progress traversing the whole course of human history,
constantly advancing through all the confusion of rising and falling states, of battle,
siege and slaughter, of victory and defeat; through the varying fortunes and ultimate
extinction of monarchy, republic, and empire; through barbaric irruption and desolation,
feudal isolation, spiritual supremacy, the heroic rush and conflict of the Cross and the
Crescent; amid the busy hum of industry, through the marts of trade and behind the gliding
keels of commerce; through the bloody conflicts of commons, nobles, kings and kaisers to
New and Free America. The Englishman, the German, the Frenchman, the Italian, the
Scandinavian, the Asiatic, and the African all meet as equals. There they are free to
speak, to think and to act. They bring the common contributions of character, energy and
activity to the support and enlargement of a common country, and the spread of its
influence and enlightenment through all the lands of their origin."
The Christian foundations of our Republican form of government are further attested to by
the fact that [according to Justice Story and numerous other authorities] the First
Amendment only protects Christianity. "The real object of the amendment was, not to
countenance, much less to advance Mahometanism, or Judaism, or infidelity, by prostrating
Christianity; BUT TO EXCLUDE ALL RIVALRY AMONG CHRISTIAN SECTS, and to prevent any
national ecclesiastical establishment, which should give to an hierarchy the EXCLUSIVE
patronage of the national government." ; "Nor are we bound by any expressions in
the constitution, as some have strangely supposed, either not to punish at all, or to
punish indiscriminately the like attacks upon the religion of Mahomet or of the Grand
Lama, a for this plain reason, that the case assumes that we are a Christian people, and
the morality of the country is deeply ingrafted upon Christianity, and not upon the
doctrines of worship of those imposters."
And to that list of "imposters" you can add the Jews and all their Talmudic
filth and mayhem. Thus, we come to two points. Firstly, in order to claim the protection
of the Amendment, the sect in question had to be Christian. The Amendment extended no
protection whatsoever to any other religion.
Secondly, in order to substantiate the claim to being "Christian," the beliefs
of the sect had to be founded upon acceptance of the divinity of Jesus the Christ, had to
be grounded in both the Old and New Testaments, and had to adhere to the principle of
"three in one." The logical implications of the latter fully presupposed the
first two. Therefore, a professed belief in the Christian principle of A TRIUNE GOD was
the basic test as to religious conviction and the right to hold office. What of the
numerous denominations within Christianity with so many varied tenets and beliefs? How do
we take their measure and ascertain whether or not they may be cloaked with the protective
mantle of the constitution? Let's look at the definition of the word
"denomination:" "A class, society or collection of individuals called
by the same name; as in a denomination of Christians..."
Here is the point: as a matter of constitutional law, the word "Christian" can
only refer to those denominations that hold and adhere to the basic doctrine of one God in
three persons and find the authority for their faith in the Old and New Testaments of the
Holy Bible. Thus, if a sect calls itself "Christian" but does not hold to the
doctrine of the Trinity, then it does not qualify for protection and can claim no
guarantees under the First Article of the Bill of Rights.
IN OTHER WORDS, WITHOUT THE DOCTRINE OF THREE IN ONE, SUCH A SECT IS NOT A CHRISTIAN
DENOMINATION WITHIN THE EYES OF THE LAW BECAUSE THEIR TENETS ARE CONTRARY TO THE
CONSTITUTIONALLY PROFESSED DOCTRINES OF FAITH WHICH ESTABLISHED OUR FORM OF GOVERNMENT AND
GAVE IT LIFE! Of course interpretations of the Bible might vary from denomination to
denomination but they must, in order to be accepted as Christian in terms of
constitutional law, hold to that one fundamental belief and all the implications that
logically flow from it.
Go back and look again at the confession of faith required by Article 22 of the original
Delaware Constitution. Read carefully these words: "...in God the Father, and Jesus
Christ His only Son, and in the Holy Ghost, One God, blessed for evermore..."
This is the testimony of our forefathers as to the path they followed. The evidence of
their faith and discipline is all about us. We need but open our eyes and look. "It
[Christianity] was part of the common law 'so far that any person reviling, subverting or
ridiculing it might be prosecuted at common law,' as Lord Mansfield has declared; because,
in the judgment of our English ancestors and their judicial tribunals, HE WHO REVILED,
SUBVERTED OR RIDICULED CHRISTIANITY, DID AN ACT WHICH STRUCK AT THE FOUNDATION OF THEIR
CIVIL SOCIETY, and tended by its necessary consequences as they believed, to disturb that
common peace of the land of which...the common law was the preserver...To sustain the
soundness of their opinion, their descendants point us to the tears and blood of
revolutionary France during the reign of terror, when infidelity triumphed and the
abrogation of the Christian faith was succeeded by the worship of the goddess of reason,
and they aver that WITHOUT THIS RELIGION NO NATION HAS EVER YET CONTINUED FREE. THEY
INSIST TOO, THAT ALL HISTORY DEMONSTRATES THAT NO NATION WITHOUT THE LIGHT OF THEIR COMMON
LAW, HAS EVER BEEN ABLE TO PRESERVE ANY SYSTEM OF RATIONAL AND WELL REGULATED
LIBERTY."
"It is remarkable how men of comprehensive views, and free from sectarian bias, have
agreed with regard to The Republicanism of Christianity. 'Christianity,' says Montesquieu,
'is a stranger to despotic power.' 'The religion,' says De Tocqueville, '...which declares
that all are equal in the sight of God, will not refuse to acknowledge that all citizens
are equal in the eyes of the law. Religion is the companion of liberty in all its battles
and all its conflicts; the cradle of its infancy and the divine source of its claims.'
'The friends of liberty in France are accustomed to speaking in enthusiastic commendation
of the Republicanism of the Scriptures.' The Abbe' de la Mennais, acknowledge as one of
the most powerful minds in Europe, little as he regards Christianity as a revelation from
God, familiarly speaks of its Author as 'The Great Republican.' Our own De Witt Clinton
said, 'Christianity, in its essence, its doctrines, and its forms, is republican.'...
The tendency of the True Gospel principles is to bring the most absolute despotism under
the limits of law; to imbue limited monarchies more and more with the spirit of popular
institutions; to prepare the people to govern themselves; and finally to establish
everywhere the spirit and the reality, if not the very forms of a republic.
Let us turn once more to the republican features of the churches organized by the
Apostles. These churches had officers, which were to be regarded and observed, in their
proper sphere, as much as the officers of any other republic. But the manner of their
ruling was not to be as 'Lords over God's heritage;' 'Whosoever will be chief among you,'
said the Savior, 'let him be your servant.'
The Apostles themselves gave several striking illustrations of their regard for popular
rights. The first public act of the Church, after our Lord's Ascension, was the choice of
an Apostle in the place of Judas {The Traitor -- The only 'Jew' among them}. Peter stands
up in the midst of the disciples - the number of names together was about one hundred and
twenty - and proposes the matter. The election is made by the body of the Church...
The accurate historian Mosheim thus states the conclusions to which his own mind came
after a most thorough investigation. 'In these primitive times... the highest authority
was in the people, or the whole body of Christians; for even the Apostles themselves
inculcated by their example, that nothing of moment was to be done or determined but with
the knowledge and consent of the brotherhood...The people did everything that is proper
for those in whom the supreme power of the community is vested.'
Neander, the most distinguished ecclesiastical historian of the present day, says, 'Each
individual Church which had a Bishop or Presbyter of its own, assumed to itself the form
and rights of a little distinct republic or commonwealth; and with regard to its internal
concerns, was wholly regulated by a code of laws, that, if they did not originate with,
had at least received the sanction of the people constituting such Church.'"
The Constitution for the United States of America was intended to be read and interpreted
so that it would harmonize with itself. One provision was not to overturn or conflict with
another. Something like "...a house divided cannot stand" seems to be
appropriate to define the principle. The deceiver began to distort the meaning of Article
IV, Section 4, by telling our People that they could establish republics in the states
that were not Christian in form, e.g., governments where the legislature is the
"highest organ of state power." [Note: some of today's state constitutions even
allow the legislature to amend the constitution without a vote of the people].
The key to dispelling the lie about Article IV, Section 4, is to show that historically,
when petitioning for admission to the Union, each state submitted constitutions
establishing the three co-equal branch form of government as a prerequisite to admission.
That is to say, to become a state in the Union, the People thereof submitted constitutions
that by design made each branch equivalent in power, while exercising different functions.
"The mischievous doctrines of Rousseau had found few readers and fewer admirers among
the Americans. The Principles upon which their Revolution was conducted were those of
Sidney and Locke." ; "Locke, in particular, was the authority to whom the
Patriots paid greatest deference. He was the most famous of seventeenth century democratic
theorists, and his ideas had their due weight with the colonists. Almost every writer
seems to have been influenced by him, many quoted his words, and the argument of others
shows the unmistakable imprint of his philosophy.
The first great speech of Otis was wholly based upon Locke's ideas; Samuel Adams, on the
'Rights of the Colonists as Men and as British Subjects,' followed the same model. Many of
the phrases of the Declaration of Independence may be found in Locke's Treatise; there is
hardly any important writer of this time who does not openly refer to Locke, or tacitly
follow the lead he had taken. The argument in regard to the limitations upon Parliament
was taken from Locke's reflections on the 'supreme legislature' and the necessary
restrictions upon its authority.
No one stated more strongly than did he the basis for the doctrine that 'taxation without
representation is tyranny.' No better epitome of the Revolutionary theory could be
found than in John Locke on civil government."
LIMITED SOVEREIGNTY
At the adoption of the United States Constitution, the States and the people vested a very
limited portion of their sovereignty in the newly born United States Government. The
Constitution of the United States was proposed adopted and ratified by "We the
People," which were composed of only free White persons, for our mutual defense, as a
nation [Race]. The assent to the Constitution was necessarily made by those deemed
sovereign, that is to say, by the sovereign body. "We the People of the United
States, in order to...insure... and secure...to ourselves and our posterity, do ordain and
establish this Constitution for the United States of America." ; "When...it
becomes necessary for one People...to assume among the Powers of the Earth, the separate
and equal Station to which the Laws of Nature and of Nature's God entitle them..." ;
"The words 'people of the United States' and 'citizens' are synonymous terms, and
mean the same thing. They both describe the political body who, according to our
Republican institutions, form the sovereignty, and who hold the power and conduct the
Government through their representatives. They are what we familiarly call the 'sovereign
people,' and every citizen is one of this people and a constituent member of this
sovereignty." ; "...at that time [it] was perfectly understood to be confined to
the White Race; and that they alone constituted the sovereignty of the Government." ;
"The period, countrymen, is already come ...This day we are called upon to give a
glorious example of what the wisest and best of men were rejoiced to view, only in
speculation...Immortal spirits of {Abraham, Isaac, Jacob/Israel and all the prophets}
Hampden, Locke and Sidney! Will it not add to your benevolent joys to behold your
posterity rising to the dignity of men, and evincing to the world the reality and
expedience of your systems..." ; "... without liberty and equality, there cannot
exist that tranquility of mind which results form the assurance of every citizen that his
own personal safety and rights are secure. This, I think is a sentiment of the celebrated
Montesquieu, and it is the end and design of all free and lawful governments."
The Preamble people enumerated in the introduction to the Federal Constitution of the
Christian White households living within the various Sovereign States, though it will be
denied by many, more especially the Children of Satan -- who are the Enemies of both
Christ and the United States: THE CONSTITUTION WAS WRITTEN, FOR THE PREAMBLE PEOPLE AND
"THEIR POSTERITY" WHO WERE 99.9% PURE WHITE ANGLO-SAXON, GERMANIC,
SCANDINAVIAN, CELTIC AND KINDRED PEOPLE. THE ORIGINAL GOVERNMENT OF THE UNITED STATES,
AFTER THE BIBLE - THE STANDARD OF EXCELLENCE! FOR EVERYTHING IN AMERICA IN
1789."It is certainly very material that the true doctrines of liberty, as
exemplified in our political systems, should
be inculcated on those who are to sustain and may administer it ...Sidney and Locke are
admirably calculated to impress on young minds the right of nations to establish their own
governments, and to inspire a love of free ones..."
Our political, educational and spiritual institutions were established by the moral-legal
standards of the Great Book of Divine Truth. In 1789, the Lord Jesus Christ was considered
the King of America; the people, for the most part, were Christians; the civil and
Eccleiastical leaders were Christian Men who feared God and revered the Bible.
Most of the governments of the world have preached, but never practiced some of the Ten
Commandments. All have enforced against their citizens laws against theft and murder. But
they have not themselves abided by these ethical principles. All of the ancient and modern
dictatorships; All tyrannical and oppressive governments, even the Communist ones -- have
been based upon a vicious double standard of ethics.
The un-Christian principle that the citizen shall respect the life and license of the
governing despots, but that the governing despots shall not be bound to respect the life
and liberty of its citizens. For a citizen to cheat the government is everywhere a crime
against the state: but where, except under the American Constitution, is it illegal for
the government to confiscate the property or life of the citizen at the will of the
governing elite.
Where except in America do we find the Commandments, "Thou shalt not kill" and
"Thou shalt not steal" recognized and revered as a Higher Law, issuing from a
Divine Lawgiver, with which our human lawmakers may not tamper with or transgress? Even in
England or Canada, man- made law is supreme. Parliament's power is, absolute, even against
common rights and reason. "In every government there are three sorts of power:
1). The legislative;
2). The executive in respect to things dependent on the law of nations; and
3). The executive in regard to matters that depend on the civil law.
By virtue of the first, the prince of magistrate enacts temporary or perpetual laws, and
amends or abrogates those that have already been enacted. By the second, he makes peace or
war, sends or receives embassies, establishes the public security, and provides against
invasions. By the third, he punishes criminals, or determines the disputes that arise
between individuals. The latter we shall call the judiciary power, and the other simply
the executive power of the state. The political liberty of the subject is a tranquility of
mind arising from the opinion each person has of his safety. In order to have this
liberty, it is requisite the government be so constituted as one man need not be afraid of
another. When the legislative and executive powers are united in the same person, or n the
same body of magistrates, there can be no liberty; because apprehensions may arise, lest
the same monarch or senate should enact tyrannical laws, to execute them in a tyrannical
manner.
Again, there is no liberty, if the judiciary power be not separated from the legislative
and executive. Were it joined with the legislative, the life and liberty of the subject
would be exposed to arbitrary control; for the judge would be then the legislator. Were it
joined to the executive power, the judge might behave with violence and oppression.
There would be an end of everything, were the same man or the same body, whether of the
nobles or of the people, to exercise those three powers, that of enacting laws, that of
executing the public resolution, and of trying the causes of individuals..."
THE SENATE
When Moses led the children of Israel out of Egypt it is obvious that they had tribal
leaders. Which were, basically, the equivalent to our present day Senate. Although the
powers they had and the functions they performed are somewhat obscure, Their
qualifications are laid out in Exodus 18:18-22: "Thou wilt surely wear away, both
thou, and this people that is with thee: for this thing is too heavy for thee; thou art
not able to perform it thyself alone. Hearken now unto my voice, I will give thee counsel,
and God shall be with thee: Be thou for the people to Godward, that thou mayest bring the
causes unto God: And thou shalt teach them ordinances and laws, and shalt shew them the
way wherein they must walk, and the work that they must do. Moreover thou shalt provide
out of all the people able men, such as fear God, men of truth, hating covetous-ness; and
place such over them, to be rulers of thousands, and rulers of hundreds, rulers of
fifties, and rulers of tens: And let them judge the people at all seasons: and it shall
be, that every great matter they shall bring unto thee, but every small matter they shall
judge: so shall it be easier for thyself, and they shall bear the burden with thee."
By studying 1 Kings 4:21 we can see that every tribe and every city had its senate of
princes or elders, as well as a more popular assembly, which was the equivalent of our
house of representatives. This it would appear, is essential to every well-balanced free
government. That ancient Israel had a government with its elders [senate] and
representatives [captains or officers] is proven by a study of the following scriptures,
Numbers 11:16; 24-25 and Exodus 24:1, 9. "And the Lord said unto Moses, Gather unto
me seventy men of the elders of Israel, whom thou knowest to be the elders of the people,
and officers over them; and bring them unto the tabernacle of the congregation, that they
may stand there with thee...And Moses went out, and told the people the words of the Lord,
and gathered the seventy men of the elders of the people, and set them round about the
tabernacle. And the Lord came down in a cloud, and spake unto him, and took of the spirit
that was upon him, and gave it unto the seventy elders: and it came to pass, that, when
the spirit rested upon them, they prophesied, and did not cease."; "And he said
unto Moses, Come up unto the Lord, thou, and Aaron, Nadab, and Abihu, and seventy of the
elders of Israel; and worship ye afar off...Then went up Moses, and Aaron, Nadab, and
Abihu, and seventy of the elders of Israel."
These leaders are necessary to check the rashness and undue haste in the actions of the
people. In a study of history, it is found that every free government has always had a
senate of some kind [though such an assembly has been called by many names]; to balance
the power of the people; to attend to matters of public business and to propose measures
of state for action by the more popular branch of government. There is no doubt the
ancient Republic of Israel had such councils of this sort, is made certain by the frequent
references in the scriptures making reference to the princes, officers, captains and
elders of Israel; and the clear distinction between those men and the congregation -- the
general public.
There is very little doubt, this form of leadership was instigated during their stay in
Egypt. Because during the exodus from Egypt, it is apparent there were chiefs of tribes
and heads of the various clans which formed a council of state -- a kind of provisional
senate. They were regarded and addressed as men of authority, and is evident from a
statement made to Moses by a brother Israelite: "who made thee a prince and a judge
over us?" It is, also apparent that these men of authority formed an organized
body since Moses addressed them, not as princes of particular tribes, but as elders of
Israel.
With careful study, we see that when the Israelites left Egypt, they did so in organized
hosts or armies. "And it came to pass at the end of the four hundred and thirty
years, even the selfsame day it came to pass, that all the hosts of the Lord went out from
the land of Egypt...And it came to pass the selfsame day, that the Lord did bring the
children of Israel out of the land of Egypt by their armies."
Thus, it is evident they did not leave as a confused and disorderly rabble, but marched in
battalions, each under its own officers and its own standards or ensigns [flags]. But, we
also, must keep in mind that the Israelites left Egypt in a great haste, and it would have
been impossible for them to go in hosts, or armies; had there not been men previously
known, respected and recognized as their leaders: chosen from among themselves. Otherwise
the Israelites would not have known under what standard they were to march, nor which
particular officers or leaders they were to follow. Obviously, it would not have been
practicable to organize an army of more than two and one-half million people at the time
of departure.
Therefore, it is very clear, as we previously pointed out, the Israelites were yet in
Egypt, the princes of the tribes were acknowledged as leaders of the tribes; the chiefs of
families as sub-ordinate officers. commanding their respective clans. In all likelihood,
it was the same men, who, at the giving of the law, were summoned to go up with Moses and
Aaron, unto the Lord. What places it out of all doubt, that these officers were an
organized body and acted as a council of state or senate, is a law related in Numbers
10:1-4. "And the Lord spake unto Moses, saying, Make thee two trumpets of silver; of
a whole piece shalt thou make them: that thou mayest use them for the calling of the
assembly, and for the journeying of the camps. And when they shall blow with them, all the
assembly shall assemble themselves to thee at the door of the tabernacle of the
congregation. And if they blow but with one trumpet, then the princes, which are heads of
the thousands of Israel, shall gather themselves unto thee."
When both of them were blown, the entire congregation [all of the people] were to
assemble; but when only one of them was blown, the princes and heads of Israel were
to come together for the dispatch of public business. A detailed account of the
organization of the Israelite government is given in Numbers Chapter Eleven. It is from
there we can see where the age limit for men who hold public office came from. The
candidate for senatorial office must be of the people; he must be an elder of the people
and he must have been previously elected or appointed by the people to some public trust.
"No person shall be a Senator who shall not have attained to the age of thirty
years..."
The seventy men of the elders [senate] of the people and officers were to be brought to
the tabernacle of the congregation, that they might stand there with Moses.
In other words they were to be solemnly inaugurated and consecrated to this service, that
they might be a permanent council, to assist Moses in governing the people. Yet these men
were not chosen by God alone. That the people concurred in the election of these men is
evident from the scriptures given above. It is further evident Moses was not charged with
appointing the senate, but only with assembling it. It must, also, be borne in mind, that
the senate was not the government itself; it was only a part of the nation, the
legislative part, of the general population. With that information we can also see that
the people themselves were considered the actual government. And elected representatives
[senate and representatives] to take care of day to day business, just as the people of
America do today. For in all important questions, its decisions were to be submitted to
the congregation, who, by its approbation, enacted them into laws. That this is true, we
have a clear proof related in the Twentieth Chapter of Judges, where the ancient
Israelites are recorded to have called upon the general assembly of the people to
deliberate upon the matter and make their decision.
Even when they demanded a king, they did not wish to change this portion of the laws, so
the king's authority was not to be allowed to be despotic nor arbitrary. The senate, was
composed of the most distinguished members of all the tribes, and served the king as a
council. Much the same as the senate today serves the president.
The king took their advice in all important affairs; and if anything occurred which was of
interest to the entire nation the congregation, that is to say, an assembly of the general
public was called. The senate proposed, the congregation decided, and the king executed.
This is where the authority of our president to be the chief executive officer and the
head of the justice department originated.
REPRESENTATIVES
It is an undisputed fact, that there was a popular branch in the ancient Israeli
government, a house of representatives, if you will. This body has been called by many
different titles: the congregation; the congregation of Israel; all the assembly; all the
children of Israel or the whole congregation of the Lord. As previously stated Moses was
directed to make two silver trumpets and to blow them one or both for different purposes.
In the opinion of Michaleis, the Israelites did not vote as the American people do: But by
known representatives. His presentation in support of his views seem to be conclusive:
"From various passages in the Pentateuch, we find that Moses, at making known
any laws, had to convene the whole congregation of Israel; and in like manner, in the book
of Joshua, we see, that when diets were held, the whole congregation were assembled. If,
on such occasions, every individual had had to give his vote, everything would certainly
have been democratic in the highest degree; but it is scarcely conceivable how, without
very particular regulations made for the purpose, order could not have been preserved in
an assembly of six hundred thousand men, their votes accurately numbered, and acts of
violence prevented.
If, however, we consider that, while Moses is said to have spoken to the whole
congregation, he could not possible be heard by six hundred thousand people all our
fears and difficulties will vanish; for this circumstance alone must convince any one,
that Moses could only have addressed himself to a certain number of persons, deputed to
represent the rest of the Israelites, Accordingly, in Number. 1:16, we find mention of
such men.
In contradistinction to the common Israelites, they are there nominated 'those wont to be
called to the convention.' In the 16th chapter of the same book, verse 2, they are styled
'princes of the assembly, famous in the congregation, men of renown.' I [call your] notice
[to] this passage particularly, because it appears, that two hundred and fifty persons of
this description, who rose up against Moses, and become to him objects of extreme terror;
which they could not have been, if their voices had not been, at the same time, the voices
of their families and tribes. Still more explicit, and to the point, is the passage,
Deuteronomy 29:10, where Moses, in a speech to the whole people, says, 'Ye stand this day
all of you before the Lord your God, your captains of your tribes [chief men of the
tribes] your elders and your officers, with all the men of Israel. Your little ones, your
wives, and thy stranger that is in thy camp, the hewer of thy wood unto the drawer of thy
water.' Now as Moses could not possible speak loud enough to be heard by two and one-half
million people it must be evident, that the first-named men represented the people, to
whom they again repeated the words of Moses. Whether these representatives were on
occasion obliged to collect and declare the sentiments of their constituents, or whether,
like the members of the Congress, they acted in the scope of their own power for the
general good, without taking instructions from their constituents, I find no where
expressly determined; but, methinks, from a perusal of the Bible, I can scarcely doubt,
that the latter was the case. Who these representatives were, may, in some measure, be
understood from Joshua 23:2 and 24:1. They would seem to have been of two sorts. To some,
their office as judges gave them a right to appear in the assembly; and these were not
necessarily of the same family in which they exercised that office. Others again, had a
seat and a voice in the diet, as the heads of families."
The particular construction of the representatives of the Israelite government, as to the
men who comprised it, is really not important. The important part is what function and
power that body of men exercised. These were of a grave and important kind, which was to
show the sovereignty of the people under their form of government. An instance of the
power these representatives had is evident in the story of Saul and Jonathan in 1 Samuel
14:24-25.
It is of interest to note that the people did not rescue Jonathan by force or violence;
the rescue was effected by petition. It was the voice of authority, clear and strong in an
expression of undenied right. Neither was the expression, "there shall not one hair
of his head fall to the ground," an act of mutiny or rebellion, it was simply a
statement of authority. Authority that even the king appears not to wish to oppose.
Therefore, we are left with the conclusion, it was an exercise of rightful authority,
whereby the unconscious offender was pardoned, and the sentence of death was reversed by
the representatives of the tribes of Israel. That it was, indeed, the representatives of
the people is seen by the statement: "Draw ye near hither, all the chief of the
people."
PRESIDENT AND JUDICIARY
Because the president is the chief executive officer, responsible for the enforcement of
the laws passed by the legislative, and to conserve space we are combining these two
functions together. Also, in the early days before Israel had kings the judges were, in
effect, the president of the Israel Republic. Moses did not issue an express law which
unalterably determined what sort of civil officer the executive authority of the
Israelitish state should be lodged with. On the contrary, he provided before hand for a
change in the form of government and the title or prerogatives or exclusive rights or
privileges of its head [President - King] in a manner which would prevent the horror of a
civil war.
Which proved to be the case several hundred years later when the Israelites changed their
form of government, from a Republican form to a regal form; without bloodshed or
commotion. An event unparalled by any other state or country in history. Still, we must
face the fact, Moses was far from being indifferent in regards to the name and powers of
the civil head of the state. His [Moses'] chief magistrate was a republican president, who
had the title of judge, or rather, as Jahn says, governor, who was elected by the people.
Moses also knew Israel would ask for a king. "When thou art come unto the land which
the Lord thy God giveth thee, and shalt possess it, and shalt dwell therein, and shalt
say, I will set a king over me, like as all the nations that are about me; Thou shalt in
any wise set him king over thee, whom the Lord thy God shall choose: one from among thy
brethren shalt thou set king over thee: thou mayest not set a stranger over thee, which is
not thy brother...neither shall he greatly multiply to himself silver and gold. And it
shall be, when he sitteth upon the throne of his kingdom, that he shall write him a copy
of this law in a book out of that which is before the priests the Levites: And it shall be
with him, and he shall read therein all the days of his life: that he may learn to fear
the Lord his God, to keep all the words of this law and these statutes, to do them: That
his heart be not lifted up above his brethren, and that he turn not aside from the
commandment, to the right hand, or to the left: to the end that he may prolong his days in
his kingdom, he, and his children, in the midst of Israel."
During the course of this presentation, you will notice we use the words
"president" and "magistrate" interchangeably. The New World Dictionary
states: "Magistrate: a civil officer empowered to administer the law: the President
of the United States is sometimes called the chief magistrate."
It would appear that Moses knew how difficult it is to control power once handed or
entrusted to the hands of an individual. Moses wanted to develop an executive who would
respond to, and answer to the people, without exercising a despotic power. However, many
writers such as Harrington (Commonwealth of Israel); Fleury (Manners of the Ancient
Israelites); Lewish (Antiquities of the Hebrew Republic); Michaelis (Comment on the Laws
of Moses); Smith (Hebrew People) and Dupin (History of the Canon), believed the judges of
Israel were all extraordinary magistrates, not unlike the dictators of ancient Rome.
Joshua 1:12-15 and 16-18 are the passages that spell out most clearly the power the
children allowed the chief judges to have. In ancient Israel the powers of president and
supreme court justice was combined in one office. And a review of the first two and most
powerful judges over Israel; Moses and Joshua, reveals some interesting facts.
A). Just as our present day federal judges, the judges held their office for life.
B). The office was not hereditary. Which seems to have been what Moses intended, because
he took no steps to perpetuate the office or have the office handed down to his
descendants [and neither are present day judgeships hereditary]. Nor yet to hand the
office down to those within his own tribe. It appears he was only interested in the
qualifications of his successor; that he was fit for the office. That the man be upright,
patriotic, believe and trust in God, zealous and an able chief magistrate. Joshua, the
immediate successor of Moses who was of the tribe of Levi, of Ephraim; Othniel was of
Judah; Ehud of Benjamin; Deborah of Naphtali; Gideon of Manasseh; and Samuel of Levi. The
other judges were of several different tribes and when all died, their children remained
among the common people; and no more is related about them.
C). However, unlike the federal judges of today, which have through the efforts of the
anti-Christs, degenerated into political appointments, the judges of that day were
elected. The approval of God was sought along with the high priest and all the
congregation. This is distinctly recorded to have occurred in respect to Joshua in Numbers
28:19, 22. Jephthah was chosen by popular vote in Judges 11:4-11. Samuel was elected to
office in an assembly of the congregation of Israel in 1 Samuel 7:5-8. Thus we can safely
assume the other judges were chosen for office in the same manor.
D). In ancient Israel the judges exercised the same powers, in regard to the military as
our president, in that they were regarded as the commander-in-chief. There can be no doubt
that Moses and Joshua exercised this authority. God instructed Moses to put some of his
honor upon him, so that the congregation of the children of Israel would obey him.
That the people accepted Joshua is made clear in Joshua 1:12-15; 16-18.
When studying the lives of the judges it is discovered that most were the head of an army
and delivered their country and people from foreign oppression and were elevated to their
office as a reward for their military exploits. However, some were clearly not military
leaders; Samuel and Eli were two of these. Deborah as a judge held court under a palm tree
prior to planning the war against Jabin. It is unclear if Jair, Ibzan, Elon or
Abdon ever held any military command during their tenure in office. The judges are also
mentioned in connection with the high priests, as arbitrators of civil controversies such
as in Deuteronomy 17:9, 12.
E). A resistance to the lawful authority and orders of the judges was considered treason;
punishable by death .
This was consonant to reason and justice because the chief authority, in both military and
civil affairs were vested in him; as a result he represented the entire congregation of
the children of Israel. So rebellion against him was considered as rebellion against the
nation itself. Which has been considered, by all governments, as an act of mutiny
punishable by death. But at the same time, their power was not absolute or unlimited.
Their power was restrained by God Himself. This is clearly evident in the appointment of
Joshua as a judge over Israel. In Numbers 27:21, he is told to stand before Eleazar the
priest, who was to ask counsel of him, after the judgment of Urim before the Lord. Clearly
they were to follow the counsel of a True man of God.
Another limitation to their authority was the law itself. Their power could not, with
impunity, be stretched beyond its legal bounds. This is demonstrated by the address of the
people to Joshua, upon his accession to the position as the judge over Israel. When they
said, in effect, they would be obedient to him, provided he would obey the Law of God .
This was the arrangement of Israel's government as provided by Almighty God through Moses.
For God's hand is clearly shown in a message given by Moses and recorded in Deuteronomy
17:14-20. Which shows that God had told him Israel would someday demand an earthly king.
Thus rejecting God as their king. So Israel was at liberty, whenever it so desired, to go
from a republican form of government to a regal one. The king was to be chosen by the
voice [vote] of the congregation; but they were to seek the counsel of God through the
high priest. The king was to be a native Israelite; he was forbidden the multiplication of
horses; he was forbidden to have many wives; he was not to lead the people out of their
land; he was not to enrich himself.
He was also to write down a copy of the Laws of God in a book from the laws as kept before
the priests and the Levites and he was to study those laws every day of his life, so that
he would learn to fear the Lord. The Law of God was to be the rule of government and upon
following those conditions the throne was to be hereditary in his family.
The qualifications for Present of the United States is found in Article 2, Section 1,
Clause 4; the keeping of records in a book so-to-speak, is found in Article 1, Section 7.
In an effort to limit the President's ability to enrich himself; the heaping to himself of
much silver and gold is provided for in Article 1, Section 7. And the limitations of
Presidential [governmental] powers are spelled out in the Constitution of the United
States of America and the Bill of Rights.
The king was to be gracious and condescending towards his subjects. He was to look upon
his people, not only as equals, but also as brethren. We find, through a study of history,
the best kings and president cherishing these sentiments, and acting upon them. When David
addressed his people, he rose before them, and used this affection form of address:
"Then David the king stood up upon his feet, and said, Hear me, my brethren, and my
people..."
President George Washington replied to Charles Thomson, Secretary of the Congress, who had
been appointed by Congress to carry to Washington the official information of his
unanimous election to the office of President: "I have been accustomed to pay so much
respect to the opinion of my fellow-citizens that the knowledge of their having given
their unanimous suffrages in my favor scarcely leaves me the alternative for an option. I
can not, I believe, give a greater evidence of my sensibility of the honor which they have
done me than by accepting the appointment."
Then in his very first Inaugural Address, Washington stated: "Among the vicissitudes
incident to life no event could have filled me with greater anxieties than that of which
the notification was transmitted by your order, and received on the 14th day of the
present month. On the one hand, I was summoned by my country, whose voice [the peoples'
voice] I can never hear but with veneration and love...Such being the impressions under
which I have, in obedience to the public summons, repaired to the present station, it
would be peculiarly improper to omit in this first official act my fervent supplications
to that ALMIGHTY BEING WHO RULES OVER THE UNIVERSE, WHO PRESIDES IN THE COUNCILS OF
NATIONS, AND WHOSE PROVIDENTIAL AIDS CAN SUPPLY EVERY HUMAN DEFECT, THAT HIS BENEDICTION
MAY CONSECRATE TO THE LIBERTIES AND HAPPINESS OF THE PEOPLE OF THE UNITED STATES
Government instituted by themselves for these essential purposes and may enable every
instrument employed in its administration to execute with success the functions allotted
to His charge. In tendering this homage to THE GREAT AUTHOR OF EVERY PUBLIC AND PRIVATE
GOOD, I assure myself that it expresses your sentiments not less than my own, nor those of
my fellow-citizens at large less than either. No people can be bound to acknowledge and
adore THE INVISIBLE HAND WHICH CONDUCTS THE AFFAIRS OF MEN MORE THAN THOSE OF THE UNITED
STATES.
Every step by which they have advanced to the character of an independent nation seems to
have been distinguished by some token of Providential Agency ...since we ought to be no
less persuaded that the propitious SMILES OF HEAVEN can ever be expected on a nation that
disregards the eternal rules of order and right which HEAVEN ITSELF HAS ORDAINED
[Washington acknowledges his and America's subservience to God's Laws] and since the
preservation of the sacred fire of liberty and the destiny of the republican model of
government are just considered, perhaps, as deeply, as finally, staked on the experiment
intrusted to the hands of the American people...I shall take my present leave; but not
without resorting once more to THE BENIGN PARENT OF THE HUMAN RACE IN HUMBLE SUPPLICATION
THAT, SINCE HE HAS BEEN PLEASED TO FAVOR THE AMERICAN PEOPLE WITH OPPORTUNITIES FOR
DELIBERATING IN PERFECT TRANQUILLITY, AND DISPOSITIONS FOR DECIDING WITH UNPARALLELED
UNANIMITY ON A FORM OF GOVERNMENT FOR THE SECURITY OF THEIR UNION AND THE ADVANCEMENT OF
THEIR HAPPINESS [ownership of land], SO HIS DIVINE BLESSING MAY BE EQUALLY CONSPICUOUS IN
THE ENLARGED VIEWS, the temperate consultations, and the wise measures on which the
success of this Government must depend."
We could go on for hundreds of pages, pointing out different laws or statutes and sections
of the founding documents described and laid out in the scriptures. The efforts of the
anti-God, anti-Christs, anti-Christians, and anti-Americans to conceal this information by
writing one so-called translation of the scriptures after another notwithstanding.
Chapter Four
FOUNDATION GROUNDED
IN CHRISTIANITY
"In the year of our Lord one thousand seven hundred and forty-eight, Montesquieu,
wisest in his age of the reflecting statesmen of France, apprized the cultivated world,
that a free, prosperous and great people was forming in the forests of America, which
England had sent forth her sons to inhabit...The age could have learned, from the school
of Voltaire, to scoff at its past; but the studious and observing Montesquieu discovered
'the title deeds of humanity,' as they lay buried under the rubbish of privileges,
conventional charters, and statutes. His was a generous nature that disdained the
impotence of epicureanism, and found no resting-place in doubt. He saw that society,
notwithstanding all its revolu-tions, must repose on principles that do not change; that
Christianity, which seems to aim only at the happiness of another life, also constitutes
man's blessedness in this. He questioned the laws of every nation to unfold to him the
truth that questioned the laws of every nation to unfold to him the truth that had
inspired them; and behind the confused masses of positive rules, he recognized the
anterior existence and reality of justice." ; "Law as the order of the
universe... when the Supreme Being formed the universe, and created matter out of nothing,
He impressed certain principles upon that matter, from which it can never depart, and
without which it would cease to be. When He put the matter into motion, He established
certain laws of motion, to which all movable bodies must conform. And, to descend from the
greatest operations to the smallest...he establishes at his own pleasure certain arbitrary
laws for its direction...If we further advance, from mere inactive matter to vegetable and
animal life, we shall find them still governed by laws; more numerous indeed, but equally
fixed and invariable. The whole progress of plants, from the seed to the root, and from
thence to the seed again; the method of animal nutrition, digestion, secretion and all
other branches of vital economy; are not left to chance, or the will of the creature
itself, but are performed in a wondrous involuntary manner, and guided by unerring rules
laid down by the Great Creator." ; "The concessions of Magna Carta were wrung
from the King as guaranties against the oppressions and usurpations of his prerogative. It
did not enter into the minds of the barons to provide security against their own body...by
limiting the power of Parliament ...In this country [America] written constitutions were
deemed essential to protect the rights and liberties of the people against the
encroachments of power delegated to their govern-ment...Hence, our people have never been
plagued with 'bills of attainder, ex post facto laws, laws declaring forfeitures of
estates, and other arbitrary acts of legislation which occur so frequently in English
history."
But under the American Constitution, man-made laws may not cross the Commandments against
theft and murder; NO ACT OF CONGRESS OR STATE LEGISLATURE MAY DEPRIVE UNJUSTLY ANY MAN OR
GROUP OF MEN OF LIFE, LIBERTY, OR PROPERTY WITHOUT DUE PROCESS OF LAW!
"Law as a rule of human action. This, then, is the general
signification of law, a rule of action dictated by some superior being; and, in those
creatures that have neither the power to think, nor to will, such laws must be invariably
obeyed, so long as the creature itself subsists, for its existence depends on the
obedience. But laws, in their more confined sense, and in which it is our present business
to consider them, denote the rules, not of action in general, but of human action or
conduct: that is, the precepts by which man, the noblest of all sublunary beings, a
creature endowed with both reason and free will, is commanded to make use of those
faculties in the general regulation of his behavior.
Man, considered as a creature, must necessarily be subject to the
laws of his Creator for he is entirely a dependent being. A being independent of any
other, has no rule to pursue, but such as he prescribes to himself; but a state of
dependence will inevitably oblige the inferior to take the will of him, on whom he
depends, as the rule of his conduct; not indeed in every particular, but in all those
points wherein his dependence consists. This principle, therefore, has more or less extent
and effect, in proportion as the superiority of the one and the dependence of the other is
greater or less, absolute or limited. And consequently, as man depends absolutely upon his
Maker for everything, it is necessary that he should in all points conform to his Maker's
will.
This will of his Maker is called the law of nature. For as God,
when He created matter, and endowed it with a principle of mobility, established certain
rules for the perpetual direction of that motion; so, when He created man, and endowed him
with free will to conduct himself in all parts of life, He laid down certain immutable
laws of human nature, whereby that free will is in some degree regulated and restrained,
and gave him also the faculty of reason to discover the purport of those laws."
When the government for the government for the United States of America was formed and
given power by the Constitution, it [U.S. Gov.] was limited strictly by the grant of power
in the Constitution. And, because the People and the States seriously distrusted the new
government, fearing it might try to centralize all power and sovereignty in its own hands,
provision was made in Article V of the Constitution to make the Bill of Rights a part of
the Constitution, as an additional statement of restrictions on the United States
Government.
"The Conventions of a number of the States, having at the time of their adopting the
Constitution, expressed a desire, in order to prevent misconstruction or abuse of its
powers, that further declaratory and restrictive clauses should be added: And as extending
the ground of public confidence in the Government will best insure the beneficial ends of
its institution." ; "Our popular government lay in embryo on board the
Mayflower, all-environed with its only possible preservatives, popular intelligence and
popular virtue. The idea born there, and embodied in a civil constitution...grew with the
growth of the colonies, gradually expelling from the thoughts and affections of the people
all other theories of civil government, until finally it enthroned itself in the national
mind, and then embodied itself in our national government. ; From the very first the
Founding Fathers asserted this distinctly Christian American principle, and immortalized
in the Constitution, that governing legislative bodies MUST respect and ABIDE by the
DIVINE MORAL LAW. During a discussion of this James Wilson, a signer of the Declaration of
Independence, and who was the foremost lawyer at the Constitutional Convention, later
appointed Justice of the Supreme Court by President Washington in 1789 maintained:
'Parliament may, unquestionably, be controlled by natural or revealed law, proceeding from
divine authority.'"
In this respect, the Colonial courts consistently denied the absolute supremacy of
Parliament or any legislative body:
"That the fundamental law which God and nature have given to the people cannot be
infringed."
William Harper, one of South Carolina's most distinguished Senators, said:
"The Constitution has laid down the fundamental and immutable laws of justice for our
Government."
Because if any Act of Government violates these "fundamental and immutable laws of
justice" then the Constitution provides that it shall be set aside. It is also a
wholly and exclusively Christian application of Christ's teachings, that men should not
yield unto Caesar [Government] the things which are God's. There is a Divine Basis for the
Constitutional provision denying to the government itself supremacy over the souls of men.
And it was on this ground that the Colonists premised their struggle for a government of
"Limited Powers." In a famous decision, Justices Roane, Henry and Tyler said:
"The supposed omnipotence of parliament...is an abominable insult upon the honor and
good sense of our country, as nothing is omnipotent as it relates to us, either religious
or political, BUT THE GOD OF HEAVEN..."
James Otis believed that God Himself ordained limits beyond which Caesar, the powers of
government, should not go; Parliament had no right to go beyond these limits set by Divine
Authority:
"These are bounds, which by God and nature are fixed, hitherto have they a right to
come, and no further...These are the first principles of law and justice..."
PRIMARILY, the Constitution was indended to prevent governmental powers from violating the
principles of eternal justice; from stealing away the God-Given Rights of the people; from
seizing upon the things which belong to God and to God's People! As Harper said:
"The Constitution is made to control the government; it has no other purpose."
The most important Articles of the Bill of Rights, considering the words of the Preamble,
are IX and X, which ensure that the rights and sovereignty remain in the States and the
People in their respective spheres. Furthermore these Articles [IX and X] by their very
wording could only be used, for protection, by the citizens designated and defined in the
Preamble.
BILL OF RIGHTS
When Saul was chosen to be the King of Israel, a writing limiting the kings power, was
prepared by Samuel and deposited in the sanctuary where a reference could be made in the
event of royal usurpation. A similar writing, A Bill of Rights, was drafted for his
successors. Yet, even with these protections, Solomon during the latter years of his
life, reigned as a despot. Which shows that he ignored the writings; and by the fact of
doing so he must have had the consent of the Israel Congress. Much the same as our last
few presidents have ignored the Constitution and Bill of Rights, with the approval of our
Congress. And just as our people are becoming unhappy with these actions, our ancestors
became rebellious against his son Rohoboam when he mounted the throne, Benjamin,
Judah and half of the tribe of Levi were the only tribes to eventually acknowledge him.
The others offered to submit to his authority if he would accept and abide by certain
terms and condition, which were not accepted by him. Then when the king rejected their
terms and conditions, they rejected him and chose Jeroboam as their king, which
established a separate kingdom. These actions show, that even though they submitted to an
earthly kingdom, the people held their rulers to a stern responsibility for the manner in
which they discharged their public trust. All this was the action of the republican spirit
of the nation. A spirit, inspired, cherished and sanctioned by their constitution; the
written documents which had been deposited in the sanctuary. A Bill of Rights.
From the very beginning, the central government began to struggle with the States and the
People to centralize power in its own hands . So, the fears which brought the Bill of
Rights into being were almost immediately realized and proven to be well founded. By these
limitations, the United States Government was prohibited from making legislation in areas
which interfered with the sovereignty of the States or the persons and sovereignty of the
citizens of the States. Again, these citizens were White Persons. The Congress of
the United States had no power then to interfere with, or change the face of the
sovereignty vested in the States and their citizens. As a result the United States
Government had no success in centralizing absolute power in its own hands for the first 90
years of its existence. Any attempt to do so was thwarted, because the States merely
upheld the Bill of Rights against the United States, in the State courts, whenever the
United States without recourse, since the courts of the United States could not overturn
rulings made in accord with the bill of Rights in the State Courts.
And, if the courts of the United States misconstrued the United States Constitution, the
States could use Article V to clarify the Constitution by Amendment, and destroy the
misconstruction. When the Constitution was framed, it was premised on the principle; that
not only does the Constitution recognize and established the Higher Law which no Congress
or legislature can transgress, but it clearly provided that the citizen owes his next
highest allegiance to the Constitution [His first allegiance is to Almighty God and the
Lord Jesus Christ], and when government officials violate the Constitution the citizen is
bound to uphold the Constitution against the officials.
For the Constitution places even the President and Congress under the Moral Principles
which it sets forth; and if they violate these principles, then the Constitutional right
and duty of the citizen is to obey the Divine Law in preference to the man-made enactment
which transgresses it.
As Dr. Frederic Jesup Stimson states:
"...if the President of the United States interferes with your liberty unlawfully,
you may resist by force, in proper cases, and always by suit in the courts; if a soldier
or magistrate arrests you without cause, or a commission seizes your property, or a board
forbids your right to trade, you can disobey him or them without danger, and bring suit as
if he were a private trespasser."
This fundamental principle of the American Constitution that the citizen has all the
rights of the policeman, the soldier, the President, or the Congress itself; this great
principle that rulers, even as citizens must do justly and respect the laws of God and the
rights of their fellowmen; this great principle is one of the most important applications
of the Ten Commandments. The American Constitution says, in effect, to the rulers of the
people, to the President, the Congress, the army, the police:
"You, too, are responsible to your Creator; to obey His laws, and to respect the
rights of His other creatures. If you oppress the people and provoke them to resistance of
your authority, you cannot use the strong arm of the law to seal them up in dungeons; no,
for they can go into the courts, which recognize the Higher Law embedded in the
Constitution, and they can have your oppressive and unjust laws set aside and rendered
void."
Justice Holmes said:
"At the foundation of our civil liberty lies the principle which denies to government
officials an exceptional position before the law and subjects them to the same rules of
conduct that are commands to the citizen."
This central principle of the American Constitution; that no one is above the law, nor
beneath the law; that all citizens are "equal before equal law;" is derived
DIRECTLY FROM THE BIBLE.
"Ye shall do no unrighteousness in judgment: thou shalt not respect the person of the
poor, nor honour the person of the mighty..."
Our Founding Fathers were the first group of men in the history of the world to write into
its foundation, the Constitution, of their nation a confirmation and enforcement of this
Divine Commandment. No other nation, other than Ancient Israel, has ever dared to refuse
to grant that the mightiest government officials, the President [King] and Congress
[Princes] themselves, were above the law.
Even today, no other nation in the world has a written guarantee in its Charter Documents
[Constitution] which insures to every citizen the "equal protection of the
laws," which, as Chief Justice Taft said in the case of Truax vs. Corrigan, means
safeguards "an equality of treatment of all persons." The Divent principle,
"Ye shall not respect persons in judgment," was given its highest human
expression in our American Constitution's provision for a "government of laws and not
of men." This right of every citizen to law and justice on the same terms and in the
same courts as any other man is the greatest affirma-tion of the Christian principles
since Christ lived and preached it. Christ foretold that on the Day of Final Judgment each
man would receive equal and exact justice, many of the last would be first and the first
last, and would be dealt justice on the same terms.
"...without respect of persons judgeth according to every man's work."
Thus the Constitution of the United States provided for a system of earthly justice in
which there was to be no respect of persons, in which justice was to be dealt evenly to
all men "irrespective of rank, office, or station." The very first Article of
the Bill of Rights of the Constitution of the United States is a striking affirmation and
application of the first Commandment. The Founding Fathers were Christians and their first
concern was that the power of government should NEVER be used to force them to pay
tribute, or to "bow down" themselves to serve, any politico-ecclesiastic
organization. They believed in Christianity, the only religion sustained and sanctioned by
the voluntary observance and devotion of the regenerated hearts of free men.
So they provided in our Constitution that no coercive ecclesias-tical system, no religion
based upon compulsion, upon the sword, and riveted upon the souls of men by the brutal
power of irresponsible government; no such religious system shall ever supplant the One
vitalized by the voluntary obedience and observance of the free consciences of free men,
the One breathing the Spirit of Christ. The Founding Fathers were determined to have no
other gods, no religions based on coercion, suppression, and governmental violence and
tyranny, forced upon them; and they guaranteed to the best of their ability that no such
religious system should ever be imposed upon their posterity.
"...the whole purpose and policy of the [Constitutional] law assume that we are a
nation of Christians, and while toleration is the principle in religious matters, the laws
are to recognize the existence of that system of faith, and our institutions are to be
based on that assumption."
As Christians the framers of the Constitution believed in that great principle of
religious tolerance which is the finest fruit of the life and teachings of the Lord Jesus
Christ: the principle that every man shall be permitted to worship God, to seek
righteousness, to pursue salvation according to the dictates of his conscience. They so
profoundly believed in religion founded on freedom that they forever forbade the
establishment on American soil of any of the anti- Christian systems which are based on
government-directed regimentation of men's consciences.
They added to the Constitutional commandment, "Congress shall make no law respecting
an establishment of religion," then they added the clause, "or prohibiting the
free exercise thereof." They were well aware that for seventeen centuries, men had
bled and died to vindicate Christ's teachings that men should be free to seek the kingdom
of God according to their own inner lights; for seventeen centuries men had given their
lives in vain to erect enduring safeguards about Christ's inspired religion founded on
freedom.
All too many of the Colonists had themselves suffered cruel persecutions for their
religious beliefs. And out of their sufferings, some had become so embittered that they
were tempted to resort to the anti-Christian practice of trying to force their beliefs on
others. That had been the history of religion for hundreds of years.
One group would be cruelly persecuted by another for "heresy," for exercising
freedom of conscience; but when this group, these "heretics," would gain power,
out of the bitterness of their sufferings, they would resort to un-Christian persecution
of their persecutors and punishment of "heresy" as relentless as that of their
predecessors.
The Colonists had bought liberty at a dear price, and when they wrote into our
Constitution the provision that they would at all times and under all conditions share
with their every single fellow American their dearly purchased freedom, their freedom of
life and worship, they gave a new application to the Golden Rule! Therefore, Christ's
statement:
"Render therefore unto Caesar the things which are Caesar's; and unto God the things
that are God's."
Is recognized and enforced by the first provision of the Bill of Rights of the
Constitution. The things of the spirit, the "things that are God's," are placed
by the Constitution beyond the power of the government to seize, suppress, control, or
tamper with. They are sacred and secure from Caesar; the government has no power "to
act upon" them in any manner whatsoever, as the great Justice Story stated in the
second volume of his noted work on the Constitution:
"It was under the solemn consciousness of the dangers from ecclesiastical ambition,
the bigotry of spiritual pride, and the intolerance of sects, thus exemplified in our
domestic as well as in foreign annals, that it was deemed advisable to exclude from the
national government all power to act upon the subject (of religion and the 'things that
are God's)."
The Supreme Court emphatically ruled that the Constitution follows Christ's teaching in
denying to the government all power to infringe upon the things belonging to God. Speaking
through Chief Justice Waite, the Court quoted and endorsed the reply of Thomas Jefferson
to an address to him by a committee of the Danbury Baptist Association:
"Believing with you that religion is a matter which lies solely between man and God;
that he owes account to none other for his faith or his worship; that the legislative
powers of the government reach actions only, and not opinions -- I contemplate with
sovereign reverence that act of the whole American people which declared that their
legislature should 'make no law respecting an establishment of religion or prohibiting the
free exercise thereof,' THUS BUILDING A WALL OF SEPARATION BETWEEN CHURCH AND
STATE.'"
Therefore, it is obvious that the Supreme Court's decision stated that this declaration of
Jefferson's "may be accepted almost as an authoritative declaration of the scope and
effect" of the first article of the Bill of Rights.
Christ taught that if men were to be free, in this world and in the next, they must
"know the truth." And without freedom of speech and of the press; without access
to the knowledge and experience of other men both living and dead, few of us could ever
"know the truth." Denial of freedom of speech and press; of the right of every
man to have access to the ethical and religious experience of other men and of earlier
ages, is a denial to the soul of man of its sacred right to pursue happiness [salvation].
Freedom to speak and communicate with other men to know their opinions, discoveries and
experiences; is the very basis of any search for knowledge which has even the potentiality
of arriving at the Truth. Hence, it is clear that freedom of communication is a sacred
principle implied and inherent in Christ's teachings. This is doubly indelible when we
reflect all systematic attempts, ancient and modern; in Soviet Russia today as well as in
the Roman Empire and the Holy Roman Catholic Church for the past two thousand years -- all
pagan and atheistic attempts to crush Christianity have always been based upon a STRINGENT
SUPPRESSION OF FREEDOM OF SPEECH AND PRESS.
When anti-Christian governments set out to dethrone Almighty God and the Lord Jesus Christ
from the hearts of men they first deny to those men the right to speak His Name; the right
to tell the un-regenerate of His Power; the right to spread His Word. Likewise, when the
Christian founders of the American Government established and formed a Constitution which
insured to men the right to follow Christ; to be secure in their observance of religion
based on freedom, to be forever safe from the soul-oppression of religion based on
government-prosecuted coercion such as they had experienced in Europe under the Church of
England and the Roman Catholic Church. Therefore when the Founding Fathers embodied
religious liberty in the Constitution they embodied freedom of speech and press in the
very same article. The First Amendment, the first article of the Bill of Rights, reads:
"Congress shall make no law respecting an establishment of religion, or prohibiting
the free exercise thereof; or abridging the freedom of speech, or of the press..."
In the very same sentence the Constitution guarantees freedom of speech and press on the
same basis as it does freedom of religious observance and belief. It recognizes that free
speech and press are implied and inherent in Christ's teachings of religious freedom.
Christ said that those who experienced salvation, who came to know Him, were under
obligation to Him to go forth into all the world, spreading the glad tidings and preaching
the gospel. And the Constitution guarantees the right of all believers to discharge this
Christian duty within the territorial boundaries of its jurisdiction. Freedom to
communicate one's beliefs is as sacred as freedom to form one's beliefs in accordance with
one's own conscience. They derive their sanctity from the same Source, and are fittingly
protected on an equal footing in the Constitution!
Now let us turn to the "due process of law" clause of the Constitution.
"No person shall be...deprived of life, liberty, or property, without due process of
law; nor shall private property be taken for public use without just compensation."
The "due process of law" clause has truly been called one of the most important
in the whole Constitution: for it looks beyond the ideas of justice of modern lawmakers
and recognizes, in the words of the Supreme Court, "those fundamental principles of
liberty and justice which lie at the base of all our civil and political
institutions." Among these foundation pillars of "all our institutions"
none are so securely safeguarded by the "due process of law" clause of the
Constitution as the Divine Principles that theft and murder are wrong, even when committed
by the government.
The Supreme Court declared that one of the prime purposes of the "due process"
clause was;
"...to protect the rights of individuals and minorities, as well against the power of
numbers as against the violence of public agents transcending the limits of lawful
authority, even when acting in the name and wielding the force of the government."
Chief Justice Hughes, in his book, "The Supreme Court of the United States,"
states that the "due process of law" provision,
"...makes a required minimum of protection of every one's right to life, liberty and
property, which the CONGRESS OR THE LEGISLATURE MAY NOT WITHHOLD."
Plainly, then, this Constitutional provision looks to a Higher Law than that made by
Congress or the State Legislatures. In the case of Hurtado vs. California, the Supreme
Court reaffirmed an earlier decision delivered by Justice Curtis, stating:
"...due process of law must mean something more than the actual existing law of the
land, for otherwise it would be no restraint upon legislative power."
The Court held further:
"It is not every act, legislative in form, that is law. Law is something more than
mere will exerted as an act of power... Arbitrary power, enforcing its edicts to the
injury of the persons and property of its objects, is not law, whether manifested as the
decree of a personal monarch or of an impersonal multitude."
Under the Constitution, an enactment of Congress or an edict of the Executive which
violates the Divine Law against theft and murder is NOT LAW, it is NOT LEGAL, and it is
NOT VALID. The Court, in the previously cited case, quoted and endorsed the statement [In
his famous argument in the Dartmouth College case] of Daniel Webster "acts of
confiscation," even though passed by Congress "under the form of an
enactment," are not and cannot be "the law of the land." The Court
emphatically declared that "acts of confiscation" and all "special,
partial, and arbitrary exertions of power under the forms of legislation" are
"not due process of law." The Constitution also recognizes that it is possible
to kill a man in other ways than by causing his heart to stop beating. His life may be
effectively taken from him by depriving him of liberty. Without liberty, a human being is
half dead. Life is more than being alive; it is also living.
Thomas Jefferson said;
"The God who gave us life gave us liberty at the same time."
The framers of the Constitution believed, neither men nor governments had the right
unjustly to take away what God had given. In the case of Smith against the State of Texas,
the Supreme Court held that deprivation of liberty tended to "extinguish" the
value of life. The Court said:
"Life, liberty, property, and the equal protection of the laws, grouped together in
the Constitution, are so closely related that the deprivation of anyone of these separate
and independent rights may lessen or extinguish the value of the other three. In so far as
a man is deprived of the right to labor, his liberty is restricted, his capacity to earn
wages and acquire property is lessened, and he is denied the protection which the law
affords to those who are permitted to work. Liberty means more than freedom from
servitude; and the Constitutional guaranty is an assurance that the citizen shall be
protected in the right to use his powers of mind and body in any lawful calling."
Liberty is essential to the preservation of the full right to, and value, of life and
property. To deprive a man of liberty is, in effect, to deprive him of valuable elements
of life and property. To strike at liberty is, therefore, to strike at the Ten
Commandments; to diminish one's liberty is to "extinguish" his very life. It is
under Divine sanctions that life and property may not wrongfully be taken from the
individual that the Constitution guards and protects. The sanctity of human life involves
the sanctity and inviolability of all the faculties of the human being. A man is deprived
of his right to live if he is deprived of his right legitimately to use his faculties and
to direct his own destiny. The Court has ruled that liberty as guaranteed in the
Constitution means the right of a person;
"...to be free in the enjoyment of all his faculties; to be free to use them in all
lawful ways; to live and work where he will; to earn his livelihood by any lawful calling;
to pursue any livelihood or vocation; and for that purpose to enter into all contracts
which may be proper, necessary, and essential to his carrying out to a successful
conclusion the purposes above mentioned."
The Constitution of the United States safeguards the right of human beings to life not
only in this world, but it also safeguards their right so to live that they may have life
in the next. The individual liberty guaranteed in the Constitution includes the right to
seek all legitimate material, mental, and spiritual advancement.
In the case of Meyer vs. Nebraska, speaking through Justice McReynolds the Supreme Court
declared that the guaranty of liberty embraced the right of the individual;
"...to engage in any of the common occupations of life, to acquire useful knowledge,
to marry, to establish a home and bring up children, to worship God according to the
dictates of his own conscience, and generally to enjoy those privileges long recognized at
common law as essential to the orderly pursuit of happiness by free men."
To direct his destiny, either here or in the world to come, man must be free to follow his
own calling. This freedom is insured to every American by the Constitution.
"The theory upon which our political institutions rest is, that all men have certain
inalienable rights; that among these are life, liberty, and the pursuit of happiness; and
that in the pursuit of happiness all avocations, all honors, all positions, are alike open
to every one, and that in the protection of these rights all are equal before the
law."
The soul of man is safe, sacred, and inviolate under the Original Constitution. It is free
to "captain its own fate" so to speak and to pursue its own salvation in
whatever direction it wishes. And neither the State, nor any group within the State, has
any more right to crush, imprison, or strangle the souls of men than it has to mar and
mutilate their bodies. The Constitutional protection of human life is as broad and as
pervasive in its scope and sphere as the Commandment to which it gives expression. Under
the Constitution, no soul-stifling government can experiment with plans to force men to
live by bread alone. The soul of the citizen is as safe as his body, his liberty as secure
as his life. He is free to live spiritually and mentally as well as physically.
One of the central teachings of Christ was the principle that the Moral Laws, as given to
Moses and the Prophets and affirmed by Himself, was a statement of Eternal Truth, as
everlasting and unchanging as Almighty God. The Founding Fathers believed that liberty is
of the essence of the Eternal; They believed that God Himself was the "Author of
Liberty." James Otis expressed their sentiments when he said,
"Liberty is the gift of God and cannot be annihilated."
John Adams reflected their attitude when he said that liberty is a moral right;
"...derived from the Legislator of the Universe."
Then at a later period, Abraham Lincoln echoed this conviction with the declaration:
"Liberty is right because Christ said so, and Christ is God."
Liberty, as the gift of God, is for all men, at all time, under all circumstances. And one
of the prime purposes of the Constitution was to "secure" its blessings to every
living American and to its "posterity." The Constitution follows faithfully the
Divine Command,
"...proclaim liberty throughout all the land unto all the inhabitants thereof."
The men who framed the Constitution believed the Moral Law affirmed by Christ was good for
all time. They believed a Constitution based on it and breathed its spirit was, and should
be, "indestructible" and "perpetual." They provided for amendment to
the Constitution to give wider scope and application to these Eternal Moral Principles.
But they did not contemplate, in their wildest imaginations, any amendment at any time
which would violate or invalidate these principals would be brought forward, well alone
passed. They did not contemplate any amendment aimed at LEGALIZING a government-sponsored
violation of the Ten Commandments.
Indeed, the foremost Constitutional authorities agree that an amendment which would
violate the Basic Moral Truths expressed in the Constitution would be itself
unconstitutional; invalid under the spirit of the Constitution, even though technically
permissible under the letter. Yet, this is the very type of amendment most widely
advocated today. Many of our leading "critics" of the Constitution are
condemning not only the Constitution itself, but also the UNDERLYING MORAL PRINCIPLES
WHICH SUSTAIN IT. They are condemning the fundamental proposition that liberty is for all
men at all times, that "Liberty is right because Christ said so," and that
because it is contained in His Word it shall not pass away, even though the earth and
civilization do.
They are condemning the fundamental principle that the majority, the government itself,
must obey and follow the Ten Commandments. They are denying that Divine Law is binding on
"the majority." They are assailing the basic belief expressed in the
Constitution that Moral Truth does not change, that it is the same in one age as in
another. And in so doing they are reaching beyond the Constitution and striking at the
central principles of Christ, which are endorsed and upheld by the Constitution.
While it was under the "Original" United States Constitution, America was
blessed by Almighty God; and prospered as no other nation has in all the history of the
world. In 1789, about 2.5 million White Christian people established themselves as the
COVENANT PEOPLE OF THE BIBLE; God's New Israel [The Great nation promised to Abraham]; and
elected Jesus Christ as their King.
In 1789, and for the next 124 years, we were a Covenant People, living in faithful
obedience to the COVENANT LAW OF THE BIBLE and in a right relationship with Jesus Christ.
For decades, now, so-called smart young professors have been teaching their students that
morals are just "the fashions of the people," that what is right in one age is
wrong in the next. For decades, they have been teaching;
"all morals are man-made and as men change, their morals must change with them."
For decades, they have been teaching that the moral principles of Jesus Christ may have
been good enough for our fathers but they are not good enough for us. A cancer spot of
such vicious teachings has for years festered and putrefied in Columbia University;
another in Harvard.
Is it any wonder, then, that out of these same cesspools of Communism should emerge the
doctrine that, like the morals and religion, the Constitutional system of government of
our fathers is not good enough for us!
Now, almost two hundred years later, the Christian Republic established in 1789, is gone!
Barely a trace of that White Christian Republic remains standing. A new defacto democratic
[Which is nothing less than an Atheistic-Zionist- Communist] government, which is,
ANTI-CHRISTIAN IN EVERY RESPECT; has become the established government of America. We are
no longer the citizens of a Sovereign State! We are now citizens of the United States; a
new form of government, alien to God Almighty, the Lord Jesus Christ, the Holy Bible and
the political beliefs of our founding fathers. Most public officials, as well as most
American citizens, do not realize Supreme Court Justice Brewer [Before the Supreme Court
became the seat of anti-Christ baby murderers], who served from 1890 to 1910, wrote a
lengthy opinion, which presented and established the legal logic: AMERICA IS A CHRISTIAN
NATION -- which I will presently present -- as God Almighty and the Lord Jesus Christ has
ALWAYS led and protected America; reports to the contrary notwithstanding.
"Thus saith the Lord God; In that day when my people of Israel [America] dwelleth
safely, SHALT THOU NOT KNOW IT?"
THE MOST AMAZING NEW
LAW IN 70 YEARS
Public Law 97-280 was passed by the U.S. Congress in October of 1982. It acknowledged,
among other things, that the Bible is "the Word of God" and "our national
need to study and apply the teachings of the Holy Scriptures." This statement is in
Congress's resolution that asks the President to declare 1983 as "the year of the
Bible."
YEAR of the BIBLE, 1983
By the President of the United States of America
A PROCLAMATION
Of the many influences that have shaped the United States of America into a distinctive
Nation and people, none may be said to be more fundamental and enduring than the Bible.
Deep religious beliefs stemming from the Old and New Testaments of the Bible inspired many
of the early settlers of our country providing them with the strength, character,
convictions, and faith necessary to withstand great hardship and danger in this new and
rugged land.
These shared beliefs helped forge a sense of common purpose among the widely dispersed
colonies -- a sense of community which laid the foundation for the spirit of nationhood
that was to develop in later decades. The Bible and its teachings helped form the basis
for the Founding Fathers' abiding belief in the inalienable rights of the individual,
rights which they found implicit in the Bible's teachings of the inherent worth and
dignity of each individual. This same sense of man patterned the convictions of those who
framed the English system of law inherited by our own Nation, as well as the ideals set
forth in the Declaration of Independence and the Constitution.
For centuries the Bible's emphasis on compassion and love for our neighbor has inspired
institutional and governmental expressions of benevolent outreach such as private charity,
the establishment of schools and hospitals, and the abolition of slavery. Many of our
greatest national leaders among them Presidents Washington, Jackson, Lincoln, and Wilson
-- have recognized the influence of the Bible on our country's development. The
plain-spoken Andrew Jackson referred to the Bible as no less than "the rock on which
our Republic rests."
Today our beloved America and, indeed, the world, is facing a decade of enormous
challenge. As a people we may well be tested as we have seldom, if ever, been tested
before. We will need resources of spirit even more than resources of technology,
education, and armaments. There could be no more fitting moment than now to reflect with
gratitude, humility, and urgency upon the wisdom revealed to us in the writing that
Abraham Lincoln called
"the best gift God has ever given to man...But for it we could not know right from
wrong."
The Congress of the United States in recognition of the unique contribution of the Bible
in shaping the history and character of this nation, and so many of its citizens, has by
Senate Joint Resolution 165 authorized, and requested the President to designate the year
1983 as the "Year of the Bible."
NOW, THEREFORE, I, RONALD REAGAN, President of the United States of America, in
recognition of the contributions and influence of the Bible on our Republic and our
people, do hereby proclaim 1983 as the Year of the Bible in the United States. I encourage
all citizens, each in his or her own way, to re-examine and rediscover its priceless and
timeless message.
IN WITNESS WHEREOF, I have hereunto set my hand this third day of February, in the year of
our Lord nineteen hundred and eighty-three, and of the Independence of the United States
of America the two hundred and seventh. Ronald Reagan
PUBLIC LAW 97-280
OCT. 4, 1982 96 STAT. 1211
Public Law 97-280 97th Congress
JOINT RESOLUTION
Authorizing and requesting the President to proclaim 1983 as the "Year of the
Bible." -- Oct, 4, 1982 [S.J. Res 165]
WHEREAS the Bible, the Word of God, has made a unique contribution in shaping
the United States as a distinctive and blessed nation and people;
WHEREAS deeply held religious convictions springing from the Holy Scriptures
led to the early settlement of our Nation;
WHEREAS Biblical teachings inspired concepts of civil government that are
contained in our Declaration of Independence and the Constitution of the
United States;
WHEREAS many of our great national leaders -- among them Presidents Washing,
Jackson, Lincoln and Wilson -- paid tribute to the surpassing
influence of the Bible in our country's development, as in the words of President Jackson
that the Bible is "the rock on which our Republic rests";
WHEREAS the history of our nation clearly illustrates the value of
voluntarily applying the teachings of the Scriptures in the lives of individuals,
families, and societies;
WHEREAS this Nation now faces great challenges that will test this Nation as
it has never been tested before; and
WHEREAS that renewing our knowledge of and faith in God through Holy
Scripture can strengthen us as a nation and a people: Now, therefore, be it
RESOLVED by the Senate and House of Representatives of the United States of
America in Congress assembled, That the President is authorized and
requested to designate 1983 as a national "Year of the Bible" in recognition of
both the formative influence the Bible has been for our Nation, and
our
national need to study and apply the teachings of the Holy Scriptures.
Many Liberals, Anti-Christs and Humanists objected to this law, PL 97-280. The news media
gave it almost no coverage whatsoever. Did you read about this law and the "Year of
the Bible" in your local newspaper; magazines; or hear about it on the radio;
television; or even your church? Probably not. Following are a few other almost unknown or
unmentioned historical events. On May 17, 1776, Congress appointed a day of fasting and
prayer for the Colonies so they might,
"by a sincere repentance and amendment of life, appease God's righteous displeasure,
and through the merits and mediation of Jesus Christ, obtain His pardon and
forgiveness."
On September 11, 1777, because the domestic supply of Bibles was short, the Continental
Congress wrote,
"directing the Committee of Commerce to import (from Europe) 20,000 copies of the
Bible, the great political text book of the patriots..."
The Congress also authorized chaplains in the Continental Army and General Washington
moved to have chaplains appointed in each regiment.
On September 10, 1782, in consequence of the difficulty of importing Bibles, Congress
approved and recommended to the people the edition of the Bible printed by Robert Aiken of
Philadelphia. Congress described it as a "neat edition of the Holy Scriptures for use
in schools."
"WHEREUPON, RESOLVED THAT the United States in Congress assembled...recommend this
edition of the Bible to the inhabitants of the United States, and hereby authorize him to
publish this recommendation in the manner he (Robert Aiken) shall think proper."
Like it or not; Love it or hate it; curse it or praise it; THE UNITED STATES WAS FOUNDED
BY CHRISTIANS AS A CHRISTIAN NATION, and the vast majority of its citizens were Christian.
Our national motto is, "IN GOD WE TRUST"; our national hymn is, "GOD OF OUR
FATHERS." The fathers being Abraham, Isaac and Jacob of the Bible. We pledge
allegiance to the United States of America as "ONE NATION UNDER GOD."
Our Constitution begins with, "We the people of the United States..." Article
Seven mentions, "the Seventeenth Day of September in the Year of our Lord one
thousand seven hundred eighty seven..." Ask yourself, who is "our Lord"
which is mentioned by "we the people?" Few people know, and it is no longer
taught in our public schools, that eleven of the thirteen original colonies gave religious
tests for public office. They required faith in Jesus Christ and the Bible as a basic
qualification for holding public office.
MASSACHUSETTS: Required a declaration that:
"I believe in the Christian religion and have a firm persuasion of its truth."
NEW JERSEY: Declared:
"...that no Protestant inhabitant of this colony shall be denied any civil right
merely on account of his religious principles, but that all persons professing a belief in
the faith of any Protestant sect, who shall demean them-selves peacefully under the
government as hereby established, shall be capable of being elected into any office of
profit or trust, or being a member of either branch of the legislature."
VERMONT'S: Constitution required every member of the House of Representatives
to take this oath:
"I do believe in One God, the creator and governor of the universe, the rewarder of
the good, and the punisher of the wicked, and I do acknowledge the Scriptures of the Old
and New Testament to be given by Divine inspiration..."
VIRGINIA: Denied public office to anyone who denied the,
"Christian religion to be true, or the Holy Scriptures of the Old and New Testament
to be of Divine authority."
The Colonial documents written up in the home country of the colonists who came to North
America and was usually issued by the king of that country. The Charter granted to the
Colonists:
1). Certain lands in the New World;
2). Established the general rules and laws by which the colony would be
guided; and
3). Stated the purpose or purposes for which the colony was being founded.
The first of these Charters was granted by James I of England on April 10, 1606, for the
settlement and possession of Virginia. Now, keep in mind that this is a government
document. This document speaks of the colonists who first erected government institutions
in America as having;
"...desires for the furtherance of so noble a work which may by the providence of
Almighty God, hereafter tend to the glory of His divine Majesty, in the propagating of the
Christian religion to such people as yet live in ignorance of the true knowledge and
worship of God, and may in time bring the infidels and savages, living in those parts, to
human civility, and to a settled and quiet government."
The Charter of Plymouth council granted by James I on November 2, 1620, begins,
"In the name of God, Amen. We, whose names are under-written...having undertaken, for
the glory of God and the advancement of the Christian faith...combine ourselves into a
civil body politic, for our better ordering and preservation, and furtherance of the ends
aforesaid."
The March 4, 1644, Charter, issued by Charles I for the Colony of Massachusetts Bay
mentioned the orderly conduct of the colonists;
"...to the knowledge and obedience of the only true God, and the Savior of mankind,
and the Christian faith."
The Rhode Island Charter directs the civil administration so that the people might:
"...be in the better capacity to defend themselves in their rights and liberties
against all enemies of the Christian faith."
In the Records of the Colony and Plantation of New Haven, it was written on April 3, 1644,
"It was ordered that the judicial laws of God, as they were delivered to Moses...be a
rule to all the courts in this jurisdiction in their proceedings against
offenders..."
There are literally thousands of other documents that could be quoted, but they are almost
never mentioned in our modern anti-Christ classrooms or pulpits. However, the question is:
Was America founded upon Jesus Christ and Christianity, or are the atheists and agnostics
correct in saying America is a pluralist society, not a Christian one? The evidence is
overwhelming that the thoughts about America by both king and commoner were bound up with
a vision of the gospel of the kingdom of Jesus Christ. We do not refer to church or
missionary documents but to civil documents signed by the king or another authorized
people in the government. These are political or governmental documents whose main
purpose, like our Constitution, was to put in writing the order of government and the
purposes of that government. These documents are foundation stones, not of American
churches, not of religious movements, but the foundation stones of the American
government, foundation stones of the United States of America.
The left-wingers and the anti-Christs are not afraid to let you find out that Christians
founded churches or missions; BUT THEY ARE DESPERATELY AFRAID THAT YOU MIGHT FIND OUT THAT
CHRISTIANS ORGANIZED OUR AMERICAN GOVERNMENT AND THAT CHRISTIANS ORGANIZED THAT GOVERNMENT
UPON JESUS CHRIST, THE BIBLE AND BIBLE LAWS!!!
That is why the left-wingers, anti-Christs and humanists defame and ridicule the early
Christian inhabitants of this American/Israel [Not Jewish] Nation. That is why they call
those Christians "bigots," "straight-laced," "blue-noses,"
"puritanicals" and etc.
They are trying desperately to prevent our American-Israel people from finding out that it
was those real Christians, not like the false Judeo-Christians ones of today, who founded
America and its original government. Even America's first schools were founded to give the
young a Christian education so that all who might come to a position of leadership would
be firmly grounded in Christianity. Remember, Congress authorized the Robert Aiken edition
of the Bible "for use in schools."
Kings College, which is now Columbia University, advertised,
"The chief thing that is aimed at in this college is to teach and engage the children
to know God in Jesus Christ, and to live and serve Him, in all sobriety, Godliness, and
Righteousness of life with a perfect heart, and a willing mind."
Amherst, Dartmouth and Yale were established for training in the Christian faith. For the
first century 40 percent of Yales's graduates became ministers of the Gospel. Mr. Harvard,
in founding Harvard University said,
"Let every student be plainly instructed and earnestly pressed to consider well the
main end of his life and studies is, to know God and Jesus Christ which is eternal life,
and therefore to lay Christ in the bottom as the only foundation of all sound knowledge
and learning."
How times have changed. Today, many of our states prohibit reading the Bible in our Public
Schools; which were originally established to teach the reading and the study of the
Bible. Today, the anti-Christ government schools, teach our children, a most horrendous
LIE,
"Oh, yes, there were some Christians who came over here, and they may have made some
Christian statements, and they formed churches, but most came to America for gold or for
land and therefore the government had nothing to do with Christianity."
Don't let them fool you, my fellow White American Countrymen, for their intentions in
deceiving you are as base as their methods for doing so. They have forced upon us all
kinds of non-Christian and anti- Christian laws and practices. Because they wanted a
non-Christian and anti-Christ government here in America. And they knew it never would
have been possible to install such government if America's Christians had really
understood that our original form of government, both local and national; that all of our
original laws came from God's Word, the Bible. In addition to the foregoing, perhaps we
should point out at least one of the many in the body of the Constitution itself. Such as
Article 1, Section 8, Paragraph 5:
"[Money, weights and measure. -- 5.] To coin money, regulate the value thereof, and
of foreign coin, and FIX THE STANDARD OF WEIGHTS AND MEASURES."
This is based upon the Biblical standards as set out in Leviticus and Deuteronomy.
"Just balances, just weights...shall ye have..." ; "Thou shalt not have in
thy bag divers weights, a great and a small. Thou shalt not have in thine house divers
measures, a great and a small. But thou shalt have a perfect and just weight, a perfect
and just measure shalt thou have." ; "A false balance is abomination to the
Lord: but a just weight is his delight." ; "A just weight and balance are the
Lord's." ; "Divers weights, and divers measures, both of them are alike
abomination to the Lord."
About the coinage of money:
"Ye shall have just balances, and a just ephah, and a just bath...And the shekel
shall be twenty gerahs: twenty shekels, five and twenty shekels, fifteen shekels, shall be
your maneh."
To demonstrate how difficult it would have been for them to sweep aside our Christian
laws, if our people had known they were really Christian laws, we will consider a few of
the things they are doing to us today. For example, our nations leaders are making
treaties with non-Christian, or anti-Christian nations; thus they are, in fact, committing
a trespass against God's Laws concerning covenants or treaties with His People's enemies:
"...thou shalt make no covenant with them..."
Not only that but they are committing treason by giving them aid and comfort and helping
them in their anti- Christ activities. Would we, as Christians, accept that and sit by so
silently if we realized such things are in opposition to both God's Law and the principles
of the Christian beliefs of our Founding Fathers.
What about abortion? Have you noticed how the pro- abortionists use the phrase, "We
don't believe you should force your religion upon others?" Notice "they"
identify the opposition to abortions by the term "religion," and of course the
opposition to abortion is the Christian religion. Yet these immoral hypocrites freely try
to impose their murderous standards upon us.
INFANTICIDE:
INCORRECTLY CALLED ABORTION
According to Webster's Dictionary the definition of infanticide is the murder of an
infant. Murder is the unlawful killing of a human being with premeditated malice [the
intentional doing of a wrongful act without just cause of excuses]. The definition of
abortion is,
"The expulsion of the human fetus prematurely, particularly at any time before it is
viable [capable of living on its own]; miscarriage."
Today, infanticidists [ONE WHO MURDERS AN INFANT, per Webster's Dictionary], using a
method called Dilation and Curettage, cutting the squirming and resisting baby's body and
placenta into pieces with a loop-shaped steel knife and suck them into a jar. Because it
is struggling and trying to escape it is apparent that even the baby knows that it is a
human being and is trying to protect its' life. From the jar the baby's body pieces are
reassembled on a table to verify that all the parts have been removed. This is a far cry
from a miscarriage whereby the human body naturally expels the unborn infant.
We are presenting an argument that infanticide [incorrectly called abortion] is actually
the murder of an unborn infant and is NOT a right of privacy due to the mother. It will
also set forth the argument that the changing of the meanings of the words describing the
positions taken by so-called Pro-Lifers and Pro- Deathers are actually distorting what the
issues really are.
We will only address situations where there has not been a pregnancy caused by rape or
incest, or situations where the mother's life would be in danger if the baby's life is not
terminated. Approximately 95% to 98% of all unborn infanticide is for conveniences' sake.
Why is a fetus a person in the sense in which a baby is? Since no sane person would say
that it is lawful to kill a baby, if it is shown that a fetus is in fact a baby, then
killing a fetus would be tantamount to murder! Biblically it can be shown that fetuses in
the womb struggled against each other as evidenced by Genesis 25:22. Here we read (NASB)
"But the children struggled together within her; and she [Rebecca] said, If it is so,
why then am I this way? so she went to inquire of the Lord." Verse 23, "And the
Lord said to her, Two nations are in your womb; And two peoples shall be separated from
your body; And one people shall be stronger than the other; And the older shall serve the
younger."
Obviously in order for one of the fetuses to struggle with the other he had to be
conscious of the fact that the other fetus was also a human being. Why have strife with a
nonentity? It would accomplish nothing. In Psalm 139:13 David states (KJV),
"For Thou has possessed my reins: thou hast COVERED me in my mother's womb."
The word covered in Strong's is #5526. The word is "sakak" and means "prop.
to entwine as a screen; by impl. to fence in, cover over, (fig.) protect." It is the
same word used in Exodus 33:22 which states "and it will come about, while My glory
is passing by, that I will put you [Moses] in the cleft of the rock and COVER you with My
hand until I have passed by." Therefore, it can be seen from this verse that
protection IN THE WOMB is essential.
In Ecclesiastes 11:5 Solomon writes (NASB),
"Just as you do not know the path of the wind and how bones formed in the WOMB of the
pregnant woman, so you do not know the activity of God who makes all things."
The New English Bible adds the words,
"and living spirit in the WOMB" in this verse also.
Luke 1:15 states:
"For he [John] will be great in the sight of the Lord, and he will drink no wine or
liquor; and he will be filled with the Holy Spirit, while yet in his mother's WOMB."
Ecclesiastes 12:7 states (KJV),
"Then shall the dust return to the earth as it was: and the spirit shall return unto
God who gave it."
When is the spirit given to man - at birth or at conception? Without the "breath of
life" man cannot exist. Inside or outside the womb.
Justice Harry Blackmun, speaking for the majority on the U.S. Supreme Court, stated in the
Roe vs. Wade (1973) decision that the pregnancy may be terminated within the first three
months at the mother's discretion [convenience]. If the mother's health has to be
protected, then in the second three months the states may restrict, but NOT prohibit
termination of the pregnancy. In the last three months a state MAY restrict or even
prohibit infanticide to protect the life of the fetus, except when the mother's life is in
danger.
In effect the seven U.S. Supreme Court justices decided to play God by making it lawful to
commit murder. By doing this and in the name of "trying to protect a woman's right to
privacy" they violated the very U.S. Constitution they had sworn to uphold. In fact,
the Jewish Justice Blackmun could not point to a specific constitutional guarantee to
justify the court's ruling.
Instead, he rationalized the decision on the right to privacy protected by the 14th
Amendment's [an Amendment which came straight from Satan's throne] Due Process clause; and
on the medical ethics and standards of another Jew, Dr. Edelstein. It will be shown
further on in this report the fallacy of this kind of thinking because one's right to
privacy can extend only to the point of infringement on someone else's life, liberty and
the pursuit of happiness.
Abortion has become an overt means of child sacrifice which the Jews have instituted under
their de facto laws. Which is simply a covert means of child sacrifice which has been part
of their infamous "ritual murders, which Jews have been accused through the
ages." In this practice, the Jewish abortion doctors and nurses take;
"the blood of the sacrificed Christian (child) is mixed with flour to make the
unleavened bread (known as Haman Ears, Haman Cakes and etc., in remembrance of the
slaughter of thousands of White Israelites as recorded in the book of Esther in the Bible.
The only book in the Bible the name of Yahweh never appears. The only Jewish book in all
of the Bible, the claims of the Jews and their lackeys notwithstanding) eaten at (the
Jewish) Passover."
Thus, we can clearly see that the practice of abortion, which conforms very well with the
Jewish ritual of child sacrifice to idols such as Molech, which is condemned by Almighty
God in the Scriptures as an abomination. However, the Jewish Babylonian Talmud recognizes
such sacrifice as normal: "giving one's seed to Molech is not idolatry."
Molech was a god of the Canaanites and Babylonians, and Babylon is the bedrock of the
Jewish Talmud and Jewish tradition. This deity was the center of child sacrifice. Plus the
fact that THE JEWISH TALMUD TEACHES THAT THE EXTERMINATION OF CHRISTIANS IS A NECESSARY
SACRIFICE TO GOD.
Proof of the above came most unexpectedly in March 1990, when an unprecedented display of
Jewish contrition and humility was witnessed in York, England. There were four days of
religious occasions, including some in York Minster, IN MEMORY OF CHRISTIAN CHILDREN WHO
WERE CRUCIFIED, TORTURED AND BLED TO DEATH ALL OVER EUROPE IN MEDIEVAL TIMES TO SATISFY
JEWISH RELIGIOUS RITUALS!
Justices White and Rehnquist, the two dissenting voters, probably stated it best when they
said
"the majority's judgement was directed by its' own dislikes, not by any
constitutional compass. In the absence of guiding principles, they asserted, the majority
justices simply substituted their views for the view of the state legislatures whose
abortion regulations they invalidated."
These state legislators were elected by a majority in each state to present their
constituents' view of anti-death.
The Declaration of Independence states;
"That all men are created equal; that they are endowed by their Creator with certain
unalienable rights; that among these are life, liberty, and the pursuit of happiness;
that, to secure these rights, governments are instituted among men, deriving their just
powers from the consent of the governed ..."
When are the men that are mentioned in the Declaration of Independence created? The day
the human being leaves the womb or the day of conception? Obviously the human life begins
at conception, because if you do not have conception you will never have the human being.
If the human life begins at conception, then the human life has certain unalienable
rights. These are rights that are incapable of being alienated, surrendered, or
transferred whether or not the individual can speak for himself. Speaking in general terms
the right of one individual's privacy ends where the actual life of another individual
starts. For example, if one's next door neighbor is strangling his three year old son in
his house do we reason to ourselves "that is none of my business; it is his son; and
he has the 'right of privacy' to do whatever he pleases to his son" or do we take
action to prevent the potential murder from occurring, because the "right to
life" is a higher right than the dad's "right to privacy."
DISTORTING WORD MEANINGS
In the abortion [infanticide - the right to Murder a baby] conflict we have two groups
each "for" their particular issue. One is called "Pro-Life" and the
other is called "Pro-Choice." Neither group, as named, is directly opposed to
the other. Defining these two groups in general terms "Pro-Life" is not the
opposite of "Pro-Choice." However, in fact the "Pro-Choice" groups are
actually Pro-Death [Pro-Murder], since they maintain that murder is a "choice."
By calling the Pro-Death group "Pro-Choice" one could get a distorted view of
what the "Pro-Choice" group really represents. WHEN IT COMES TO MURDER THERE ARE
NO-CHOICES. A choice to do wring to another human being is no choice at all! If you are
for something, you are against its opposite. If you are pro-life, then you are against
someone having the "choice" to murder an infant. Since the death is the opposite
of life, the reverse would also be true. If you are pro-death, you would be anti-life [not
"Pro-Choice"].
Speaking in general terms we are all "pro-choice," which is the opposite of
compulsion. Everyone believes that each individual has the right or freedom to do what
they want. However, the freedom of each individual to do what they want extends only to
the point of infringing on someone else's "life, liberty, or pursuit of happiness
[property]." Thus, we see that individuals that are pro-life [opposed to murder] are
also actually pro-choice [opposed to compulsion] to the extent those actions do not
infringe on someone else's "life liberty, or pursuit of happiness [property]."
However, pro-life proponents believe that a choice to do wrong [murder an unborn infant]
is not a choice at all. Infant murder outside the womb or inside the womb is wrong.
Pro-Death proponents are "Pro-Life" when it comes to their life, but cannot
respect the life of others. And they will take your life if you oppose them, and they get
the chance. Make no mistake about it. The U.S. Supreme Court recognized the development
and life of an infant in the womb when they allowed the states the freedom to regulate or
prohibit infanticide in the last six months of pregnancy. Why regulate or prohibit
infanticide in the womb if the infant is not a human being?
Since they have allowed the states to regulate or prohibit infanticide in certain cases we
find that the real question the seven U.S. Supreme Court Justices raised is "WHEN
does the infant become a human being in the womb?" and NOT "IS the infant a
human being in the womb?" If they wanted to ask the question "IS the infant a
human being in the womb?" then they would NOT have regulated the state on the last
two trimesters. So we must conclude that the learned justices recognized the fact that the
fetus IS A HUMAN BEING: therefore, they knew abortion [infanticide] was/is murder but they
gave women the right to do so for a limited period of time if they so desired! Thus the
Justices have been guilty of being an accomplish to the murder of literally millions of
babies since 1973!
Another proposed dilemma in this issue is the question of freedom vs. order. Does the
freedom of a woman to "do what she wants with her body" take priority over
"the killing of unborn babies" [order]? Missing from the dilemma is the issue of
"the freedom of the baby." Most Pro-Death advocates seem to forget that the
woman had the choice of abstaining from sex or using birth control methods to prevent
conception.
These women lost their freedom of having the abortion at the time of conception. As a
result of the seven Supreme Court justices determination that "freedom of the
woman" takes priority over "freedom and life of the baby," we have had,
since 1973, over 26-million innocent unborn babies murdered. This is equivalent to the sum
population of more than 12 U.S. states or approximately 1/10th of the current U.S.
population.
IRRATIONALITY OF SUPREME COURT DECISIONS
John Ankerberg and John Weldon in their book "When Does Life Begin?" pointed out
the irrationality of the Supreme Court's decision. They stated
"Animals are now guaranteed more legal rights and
protections than unborn children...The very same Supreme Court which made possible the
slaughter of tens of millions of unborn human babies stopped the construction of the
$116-million Tellico Dam in Tennessee merely because it might cause a three-inch fish
known as the "snail darter" to become extinct! We can do horrible things to the
pre-born that we are legally prohibited from doing to dogs or even hamsters! Of course the
Queers do not want any harm to come to the hamster, they like to cram them up each others
ass for an exotic thrill! How sick can one get?
Doctors were charged to both save life and to destroy it. All
laws attempting to prohibit abortion after viability have been declared unconstitutional.
But the Supreme Court does all 'that two doctors be present when viable [babies able to
live outside the womb] infants are aborted; one TO KILL THE BABY THROUGH ABORTION
[infanticide] and one to care for the infant should the first doctor FAIL TO MURDER THE
BABY!' Further, if during an abortion procedure the child is killed while in the womb, no
law is broken, but if that same child is removed from the womb and Murdered outside the
woman, the physician is liable to a charge of murder!"
RIGHT TO LIVE DENIED
The other legal rights of the unborn were maintained; only their right to live was denied.
In property and inheritance law Anglo-American jurisprudence has scrupulously maintained
the rights of the unborn, accepting that human lie begins at conception. All of us are
familiar with "wrongful death" lawsuits against persons who accidentally injure
unborn children to the point of their death.
"To this day, the law recognizes unborn children as persons entitled to all these
rights."
In fact, criminals who have assaulted pregnant women have been successfully prosecuted for
murder when the unborn child has been killed. Nevertheless, the law regards the unborn as
a non-person when a mother is willing to destroy it.
In conclusion, we see that regardless of the terminology used by either side the living
being has its life abruptly ended in infanticide. No matter how much it may fight to stay
alive in the womb it is certainly fighting a hopeless battle. Probably not one of the
seven Supreme Court Justices that voted "Pro-Death" realized that if their
mother had made a Pro-Death choice when she was pregnant with them, then they would have
never enjoyed the life they had/have. The same holds true for the doctors, nurses and
mothers who go through the process of infanticide. Someone was gracious enough to give
them the opportunity to live, SO WHY CAN'T THEY ALLOW THE SAME OPPORTUNITY FOR THE UNBORN?
Who has opposed abortion, the murder of the unborn, in America since our beginning as a
few colonies? Who arrested the abortionist [Murderers] and either executed them or put
them in prison? If you would only bother to study history a little you would find that the
vast majority of the abortionists are Jews, of whom Jesus said:
"Woe unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! because ye build the tombs of the
prophets...and say, If we had been in the days of our fathers, we would not have been
partakers with them in the blood of the prophets. Wherefore ye be witnesses unto
yourselves, that ye are the children of them which killed the prophets...Ye serpents, ye
generation (Race) of vipers, how can ye escape the damnation of hell?"
We have presented colonial governmental documents of 200 to 350 years ago, yet we need not
go back that far, we need go back only two generations to find our government enforcing
Christian Laws. What a change! Why do you think the anti-Christs continually cry out the
phrase, "separation of church and state" until its meaning is completely
distorted. It has become a catch-all phrase, by the enemies of Jesus Christ and America,
in an attempt to eliminate all Christian influence upon anything involving state or civil
affairs. THERE IS NO SUCH THING AS "SEPARATION OF CHURCH AND STATE!" BECAUSE ALL
LAWS ARE BASED UPON SOMEONE'S MORALITY! THEY ARE EITHER CHRISTIAN OR THEY ARE
ANTI-CHRISTIAN - THERE ARE NO OTHERS!
CONSTITUTIONS
Very few Christians know that several State Constitutions specifically mention;
(1) Religion;
(2) Christianity, and/or
(3) The Bible
For example:
OHIO: Bill of Rights, Section 7:
"Religion, morality, and knowledge, however, being essential to good government, it
shall be the duty of the general assembly to pass suitable laws to protect every religious
denomination in the peaceful enjoyment of its own mode of public worship, and to encourage
schools and the means of instruction."
The Ohio Constitution was adopted in 1802. Twenty-three years later, in 1825, a tax levy
was passed to set up and support a public school system. Therefore, the schools mentioned
in the Ohio Constitution are private and church schools. Of the first 108 schools, 106
were founded by Christian Churches. As written, the Ohio Constitution required the State
to protect and encourage private church schools.
MASSACHUSETTSES: Declaration of Rights, Article 2:
"And every denomination of Christians...shall be equal under the protection of the
law." (The law was designed to protect Christians).
VERMONT: Declaration of Rights, Article 3:
"(our) opinion shall be regulated by the Word of God (The Bible)...Nevertheless,
every sect or denomination of Christians ought to observe the Sabbath or Lord's day, and
keep up some sort of religious worship, which to them shall seem most agreeable to the
revealed Word of God."
VIRGINIA: Section 18:
"...the rights hereby secured shall not be construed to...exclude or remove the Holy
Bible from use in any public school of this state."
Our government consists of three separate branches: the Executive, the Legislative and the
Judicial. Each branch is "separate" meaning that each is independent from the
other. Even if the words "separation of church and state" were in the
Constitution, would it therefore follow it meant that one is "cut off and cast
away" or would it mean that the Church is independent from the State? Of course it
would mean the church was to be independent from the state!!!
In the Scriptures we never find an instant where a God- anointed priest or prophet took to
himself the function of a civil administrator, nor do we find a case where a man anointed
to serve in civil administration took unto himself the ministry of priest or prophet
without coming under the judgment of God. The Supreme Court has declared that the
United States of America is a Christian Nation.
In addition, a State Court is on record saying,
"By our form of government, the Christian religion is the established religion; and
all sects and denominations are placed on the same equal footing, and are equally entitled
to protection in their religious liberty."
On the other hand, the Constitution of Soviet Russia reads,
"...the state shall be separate from the church, and the church separate from the
school,"
The ninth doctrine listed in the Humanist Manifesto II reads,
"The separation of church and state...are imperatives."
The following is a presentation of selected portions of the Holy Trinity Church vs. United
States 143 U.S. 457 (1892):
"But beyond all these matters no purpose of action against
religion can be imputed to any legislation, state or national, because this is a religious
people...
Even the Constitution of the United States, which is supposed to
touch very little upon the private life of the individual, contains in the First Amendment
a declaration common to the Constitutions of all the states, as follows, 'Congress shall
make no law respecting an establishment of religion, or prohibiting the free exercise
thereof,'...And also provides in Article 7, a provision common to many Constitutions, that
the executive shall have ten days (Sundays excepted) within which to determine whether he
will approve or veto a bill...There is no dissonance in these declarations. There is a
universal language pervading them all, having one meaning; they affirm and reaffirm that
this is a religious nation. These are not individual sayings, declarations of private
persons: they are the organic utterances; they speak the voice of the entire people. While
because of the general recognition of this truth the question has seldom been presented to
the courts, yet we find that in Updegraph vs. The Commonwealth, 11S. & R. 394, 400, it
was declared that, 'Christianity, general Christianity, is and always has been, a part of
the common law of Pennsylvania;...not Christianity with an established church and tithes,
and spiritual courts; but Christianity with a liberty of conscience to all men.' And in
the People vs. Ruggles, 8 Johns. 290, 294, Chancellor Kent, the great commentator on
American law, speaking as Chief Justice of the Supreme Court of New York, said, 'The
people of this state, in common with the people in this country, profess the general
doctrines of Christianity, as a rule of their faith and practice; and to scandalize the
author of these doctrines is not only in a religious point of view extremely impious but
even in respect to the obligations to society, a gross violation of decency and good
order...The free, equal and undisturbed enjoyment of religious opinion, whatever it may
be, and free and decent discussions on any religious subject, is granted and secured; but
to revile, with malicious and blasphemous contempt, the religion professed by the whole
community, is an abuse of that right...Nor are we bound, by any expressions in the
Constitution as some have strangely supposed, either not to punish at all, or to punish
indiscriminately, the like attacks on the religion of Mohammed or of the Grand Lama; and
for this plain reason, that the case assumes that we are a Christian people, and that the
morality of the country is deeply ingrafted upon Christianity, and not upon the doctrines
or worship of these imposters."
In Runkel vs. Winemiller, 4 Harris & McHenry (MD) 429, we
find: "...The Christian religion is the established religion by our form of
government and all denominations are placed on an equal footing and equally entitled to
protection in their religious liberty...
Religion is of general and public concern, and on its support
depend, in great measure, the peace and good order of government, the safety and happiness
of the people. By our form of government, the Christian religion is the established
religion; and all sects and denominations of Christians are placed upon the same equal
footing, and are equally entitled to protection in their religious liberty. The principles
of the Christian religion cannot be diffused, and its doctrines generally propagated,
without places of public worship, and teachers and ministers, to explain the Scriptures to
the people, and to enforce an observance of the precepts of religion by their preaching
and living. And the pastors teachers and ministers, of every denomination of Christians,
are equally entitled to the protection of the law and to the enjoyment of their religious
and temporal rights."
In a speech delivered at Harvard College in 1905, Associate Justice of the United States
David J. Brewer said, in part:
"We classify nations in various ways, as, for instance, by
their form of government. One is a kingdom, another an empire, and still another a
republic. Also by race. Great Britain is an Anglo-Saxon Nation, France a Gaelic, Germany a
Teutonic, Russia a Slav. And still again by religion. One is a Mohammedan nation, others
are heathen, and still others are Christian Nations...
This Republic is classified among the Christian Nations of the
world. It was so formally declared by the Supreme Court of the United States. In the case
of Holy Trinity Church vs. United States, 143 U.S. 471, that Court, after mentioning
various circumstances, added, 'there are many other matters, which might be noticed, and a
volume of unofficial declarations to the mass of organic utterances that this is a
Christian Nation.'
But in what sense can it be called a Christian Nation? Not in the
sense that Christianity is the established religion or that the people are in any manner
compelled to support it. On the Contrary, the Constitution specifically provides that
'Congress shall make no law respecting an establishment of religion, or prohibiting the
free exercise thereof.'
Neither is it Christian in the sense that all its citizens are
either in fact or name Christians. On the contrary, all religions have free scope within
our borders. Numbers of our people profess other religions, and many reject all. Nor is it
Christian in the sense that a profession of Christianity is a condition of holding office
or otherwise engaging in the public service, or essential to recognition either
politically or socially. In fact the government as a legal organization is independent of
all religions. Nevertheless, we constantly speak of this republic as a Christian Nation --
in fact, as the leading Christian Nation of the world. This popular use of the term
certainly has significance. It is not a mere creation of the imagination. It is not a term
of derision but has a substantial basis -- one which justifies its use. Let us analyze a
little and see what is the basis.
Its use has had from the early settlements on our shores and
still has an official foundation. It is only about three centuries since the beginnings of
civilized life within the limits of these United States. And those beginnings were in a
marked and marvelous degree identified with Christianity. The commission from Ferdinand
and Isabella to Columbus recites that 'it is hoped that by God's assistance some of the
continents and islands in the ocean will be discovered.'
The first colonial grant, that made to Sir Walter Raleigh, in
1584, authorized him to enact statutes for the government of the proposed colony, provided
that 'they be not against the true Christian faith now professed in the Church of
England.' The first charter of Virginia, granted by King James I, in 1606, after reciting
the application of certain parties for a charter, commenced the grant in these words: 'We,
greatly commending, and graciously accepting of, their desires for the furtherance of so
noble a work, which may, by the providence of Almighty God, hereafter tend to the glory of
His Divine Majesty, in propagating the Christian religion to such people as yet live in
darkness and miserable ignorance of the true knowledge and worship of God.' And language
of similar import is found in subsequent charters of the same colony, from the same king,
in 1609 and 1611.
The celebrated compact made by the Pilgrims on the Mayflower, in
1620, recites: 'Having undertaken for the glory of God and advancement of the Christian
faith and the honor of our king and country a voyage to plant the first colony in the
northern parts of Virginia.'
The charter of New England, granted by James I, in 1620, after
referring to a petition, declares: 'We, according to our princely inclination, favoring
much their worthy disposition, in hope thereby to advance the enlargement of [the]
Christian religion, to the glory of God Almighty.'
The charter of Massachusetts Bay, granted in 1629 by Charles I,
after several provisions, recites: 'Whereby our said people, inhabitants there, may be so
religiously, peaceably and civilly governed as their good life and orderly conversation
may win and incite the natives of the country to their knowledge and obedience of the only
true God and Saviour of mankind, and the Christian faith, which in our royal intention and
the adventurers free profession, is the principal end of this plantation,' which
declaration was substantially repeated in the charter of Massachusetts Bay granted by
William and Mary in 1691.
The fundamental orders of Connecticut, under which a provisional
government was instituted in 1638-1639, provided: 'Forasmuch as it has pleased the
Almighty God by the wise disposition of His divine providence so to order and dispose of
things that we, the inhabitants and residents of Windsor, Hartford and Wethersfield, are
now cohabitating and dwelling in and upon the River of Connecticut and the lands thereto
adjoining; and well knowing where a people are gathered together the word of God requires
that to maintain the peace and union of such a people there should be an orderly and
decent government established according to God, to order and dispose of the affairs of the
people at all seasons as occasion shall require; do therefore associate and conjoin
ourselves to be as one public state or commonwealth; and do for ourselves and our
successors and such as shall be adjoined to us at any time hereafter enter into
combination and confederation together to maintain and preserve the liberty and purity of
the gospel of our Lord Jesus which we now profess, as also the discipline of the churches,
which according to the truth of the said gospel, is now practices amongst us.'
In the preamble of the Constitution of 1776 it was declared, 'the
free fruition of such liberties and privileges of humanity, civility and Christianity call
for, as is due to every man in his place and proportion, without impeachment and
infringement, hath ever been, and will be the tranquility and stability of churches and
commonwealths; and the denial thereof, the disturbance, if not the ruin of both.'
In 1638 the first settlers in Rhode Island organized a local
government by signing the following agreement: 'We whose names are underwritten do here
solemnly in the presence of Jehovah incorporate ourselves into a Bodie Politick and as He
shall help, will submit our persons, lives and estates unto our Lord Jesus Christ, the
King of Kings and Lord of Lords and to all those perfect and most absolute laws of his
given us in his holy word of truth, to be guided and judged thereby.
"And Moses came and told the people all the words of the Lord, and all the judgments:
and all the people answered with one voice, and said, All the words which the Lord hath
said will we do. And Moses wrote all the words of the Lord, and rose up early in the
morning, and builded an altar under the hill, and twelve pillars, according to the twelve
tribes of Israel." ;
"Speak unto Rehoboam the son of Solomon, king of Judah, and to all Israel in Judah
and Benjamin, saying, Thus saith the Lord, Ye shall not go up, nor fight against your
brethren: return every man to his house: for this thing is done of me. And they obeyed the
words of the Lord, and returned from going against Jeroboam." ; "And Jehoiada
made a covenant between the Lord and the king and the people, that they should be the
Lord's people; between the king also and the people."
The charter granted to Rhode Island, in 1663, naming the
petitioners, speaks of them as 'pursuing, with peaceable and loyal minds, their sober,
serious and religious intentions, of godly edifying themselves and one another in the holy
Christian faith and worship as they were persuaded; together with the gaining over and
conversion of the poor, ignorant Indian natives, in these parts of America, to the sincere
profession and obedience of the same faith and worship.'
The charter of Carolina, granted in 1663 by Charles II, recites
that the petitioners, 'being excited with a laudable and pious zeal for the propagation of
the Christian faith.'
In the preface of the frame of government prepared in 1682 by
William Penn, for Pennsylvania, it is said: 'They weakly err, that think there is no other
use of government than correction, which is the coarsest part of it; daily experience
tells us that the care and regulation of many other affairs, more soft, and daily
necessary, make up much of the greatest part of government; and which must have followed
the peopling of the world, had Adam never fell, and will continue among men, on earth,
under the highest attainments they may arrive at, by the coming of the blessed second
Adam, the Lord from heaven.' And with the laws prepared to go with the frame of
government, it was further provided 'that according to the good example of the primitive
Christians, and the ease of the creation, every first day of the week, called the Lord's
Day, people shall abstain from their common daily labor that they may the better dispose
themselves to worship God according to their understandings.' In the charter of privileges
granted, in 1701, by William Penn to the province of Pennsylvania and territories
thereunto belonging (such territories afterwards constituting the State of Delaware), it
is recited: 'Because no people can be truly happy, though under the greatest enjoyment of
civil liberties, if abridged of the freedom of their consciences as to their religious
profession and worship; and Almighty God being the only Lord of Conscience, Father of
Lights and Spirits, and the author as well as object of all divine knowledge, faith and
worship, who only doth enlighten the minds and persuade and convince the understandings of
the people, I do hereby grant and declare.'
The Constitution of Vermont, of 1777, granting the free exercise
of religious worship, added, 'Nevertheless, every sect or denomination of people ought to
observe the Sabbath, or the Lord's Day, and keep up and support some sort of religious
worship, which to them shall seem most agreeable to the revealed will of God.' And this
was repeated in the Constitution of 1786.
In the Constitution of South Carolina, of 1778, it was declared
that 'the Christian Protestant religion shall be deemed and is hereby constituted and
declared to be the established religion of this State.' And further, that no agreement or
union of en upon pretense of religion should be entitled to become incorporated and
regarded as a church of the established religion of the State, without agreeing and
subscribing to a book of five articles, the third and fourth of which were 'that the
Christian religion is the true religion; that the holy scriptures of the Old and New
Testament are of divine inspiration, and are the rule of faith and practice.' Passing
beyond these declarations which are found in the organic instruments of the colonies, the
following are well known historical facts: Lord Baltimore secured the charter for a
Maryland colony in order that he and his associates might continue their Catholic worship
free from Protestant persecution. Roger Williams, exiled from Massachusetts because of his
religious views, established an independent colony in Rhode Island. The Huguenots, driven
from France by the Edict of Nantes, sought in the more southern colonies a place where
they could live in the enjoyment of their Huguenot faith. It is not exaggeration to say
that Christianity in some of its creeds was the principal cause of the settlement of many
of the colonies, and cooperated with business hopes and purposes in the settlement of the
others. Beginning in this way and under these influences it is not strange that the
colonial life had an emphatic Christian tone. From the very first efforts were made,
largely it must be conceded by Catholics, to bring the Indians under the influence of
Christianity. Who can read without emotion the story of Marquette, and others like him,
enduring all perils and dangers and toiling through the forests of the west in their
efforts to tell the story of Jesus to the savages of North America? Within less than one
hundred years from the landing at Jamestown three colleges were established in the
colonies; Harvard in Massachusetts, William and Mary in Virginia and Yale in Connecticut.
The first seal used by Harvard College had as a motto, 'In Christi Gloriam,' and the
charter granted by Massachusetts Bay contained this recital: 'Whereas, through the good
hand of God many well devoted persons have been and daily are moved and stirred up to give
and bestow sundry gifts ...that may conduce to the education of the English and Indian
youth of this country, in knowledge and Godliness.'
The charter of William and Mary, reciting that the proposal was
'to the end that the Church of Virginia may be furnished with a seminary of ministers of
the gospel, and that the youth may be piously educated in good letters and manners, and
that the Christian faith may be propagated amongst the western Indians, to the glory of
Almighty god' made the grant 'for propagating the pure gospel of Christ, our only
Mediator, to the praise and honor of Almighty God.' The charter of Yale declared as its
purpose to fit 'young men for public employment both in church and civil state,' and it
provided that the trustees should be Congregational ministers living in the colony. In
some of the colonies, particularly in New England, the support of the church was a matter
of public charge, even as the common schools are today. Thus the Constitution of
Massachusetts, of 1780, Part I, Article 3, provided that 'the legislature shall, from time
to time, authorize and require, the several towns, parishes, precincts, and other bodies
politic or religious societies to make suitable provision at their own expense for the
institution of the public worship of God and for the support and maintenance of Protestant
teachers of piety, religion and morality in all cases where such provision shall not be
made voluntarily.' Article 6 of the Bill of Rights of the Constitution of New Hampshire,
of 1784, repeated in the Constitution of 1792, empowered 'the legislature to authorize
from time to time, the several towns, parishes, bodies corporate, or religious societies
within this State, to make adequate provision at their own expense for the support and
maintenance of public Protestant teachers of piety, religion and morality.'
In the fundamental Constitutions of 1769, prepared for the
Carolinas, by the celebrated John Locke, Article 96 reads: 'As the country comes to be
sufficiently planted and distributed into fit divisions, it shall belong to the parliament
to take care for the building of churches, and the public maintenance of divines to be
employed in the exercise of religion according to the Church of England, which being the
only true and orthodox and the national religion of all the king's dominations, is so also
of Carolina, and, therefore, it alone shall be allowed to receive public maintenance by
grant of parliament.'
In Maryland, by the Constitution of 1776, it was provided that
'the legislature may, in their discretion, lay a general and equal tax, for the support of
the Christian religion.' In several colonies and states a profession of the Christian
faith was made an indispensable condition to holding office. In the frame of government
for Pennsylvania, prepared by William Penn, in 1683, it was provided that 'all treasurers,
judges...and other officers...and all members elected to serve in provincial council and
general assembly, and all that have right to elect such members, shall be such as profess
faith in Jesus Christ.' And in the charter of privileges for that colony, given in 1701 by
William Penn and approved by the colonial assembly it was provided 'that all persons who
also profess to believe in Jesus Christ, the Saviour of the World, shall capable...to
serve this government in any capacity, both legislatively and executively.'
In Delaware, by the Constitution of 1776, every officeholder was
required to make and subscribe the following declaration: 'I, A.B., do profess faith in
God the Father, and in Jesus Christ His Only Son, and in the Holy Ghost, one God, blessed
forevermore; and I do acknowledge the Holy Scriptures of the Old and New Testament to be
given by divine inspiration.'
New Hampshire, in the Constitutions of 1784 and 1792, required
that senators and representatives should be of the 'Protestant religion,' and this
provision remained in force until 1877. The fundamental Constitutions of the Carolinas
declared: 'No man shall be permitted to be a freeman of Carolina, or to have any estate or
habitation within it that doth not acknowledge a God, and that God is publicly and
solemnly to be worshiped.'
The Constitution of North Carolina, of 1776, provided: 'That no
person who shall deny the being of God or the truth of the Protestant religion, or the
divine authority either of the Old or New Testaments, or who shall hold religious
principles incompatible with the freedom and safety of the State, shall be capable of
holding any office or place of trust or profit in the civil department within this State.'
And this remained in force until 1835, when it was amended by changing the word
'Protestant' to 'Christian,' and as so amended remained in force until the Constitution of
1868. And in that Constitution among the persons disqualified for office were 'all persons
who shall deny the being of Almighty God.'
New Jersey, by the Constitution of 1776, declared 'that no
Protestant inhabitant of this colony shall be denied the enjoyment of any civil right
merely on account of his religious principles, but that all persons professing a belief in
the faith of any Protestant sect, who shall demean themselves peaceably under the
government as hereby established, shall be capable of being elected into any office of
profit or trust, or being a member of ether branch of the legislature.' The Constitution
of South Carolina, of 1776, provided that no person should be eligible to the Senate or
House of Representatives 'unless he be of the Protestant religion.'
Massachusetts, in its Constitution of 1780, required from
governor, lieutenant-governor, counselor, senator and representative before proceeding to
execute the duties of his place or office a declaration that 'I believe the Christian
religion, and have a firm persuasion of its truth.'
By the fundamental orders of Connecticut the governor was
directed to take an oath to 'further the execution of justice according to the rule of
God's word; so help me God, in the name of the Lord Jesus Christ.'
The Vermont Constitution of 1777 required of every member of the
house of Representatives that he takes this oath: 'I do believe in one God, the creator
and governor of the universe, the rewarder of the good and punisher of the wicked, and I
do acknowledge the scriptures of the Old and New Testaments to be given by divine
inspiration, and own and profess the Protestant religion.' A similar requirement was
provided by the Constitution of 1786.
In Maryland, by the Constitution of 1776, every person appointed
to any office of profit or trust was not only to take an official oath of allegiance to
the State, but also to 'subscribe a declaration of his belief in the Christian religion.'
In the same State, in the Constitution of 1851, it was declared that no other test or
qualification for admission to any office of trust or profit shall be required than the
official oath 'and a declaration of belief in the Christian religion; and if the party
shall profess to be a Jew the declaration shall be of his belief in a future state of
rewards and punishments.' As late as 1864 the same State in its Constitution had a similar
provision, the change being one merely of phraseology, the provision reading, 'a
declaration of belief in the Christian religion, or of the existence of God, and in a
future state of rewards and punishments.'
Mississippi, by the Constitution of 1817, provided that 'no
person who denies the being of God or a future state of rewards and punishments shall hold
any office in the civil department of the State.'
Another significant matter is the recognition of Sunday. That day
is the Christian Sabbath, a day peculiar to that faith, and known to no other. It would be
impossible within the limits of a lecture to point out all the ways in which that day is
recognized. The following illustrations must suffice: By the United States Constitution
the President is required to approved all bills passed by Congress. If he disapproves he
returns it with his veto. And then specifically it is provided that if not returned by him
within ten days, 'Sundays excepted,' Louisiana is one of the nine States in whose present
[1905] Constitution the expression, 'Sundays excepted,' is not found. Four earlier
Constitutions of that State (those of 1812, 1845, 1852 and 1864) contained [it], while the
three latter ones, 1868, 1879 and 1881 omit those words.
In State ex rel. vs. Secretary of State, a case arising under the
last Constitution, decided by the Supreme Court of Louisiana (52 La. An. 936), the
question was presented as to the effect of a governor's veto which was returned within
time if a Sunday intervening between the day of presentation of the bill and the return of
the veto was excluded, and too late if it was included; the burden of the contention on
the one side being that the change in the phraseology of the later Constitutions in
omitting the words 'Sundays excepted' indicated a change in the meaning of the
constitutional provision in respect to the time of a veto. The court unanimously held that
the Sunday was to be excluded. In the course of its opinion it said (p. 944): 'In law
Sundays are generally excluded as days upon which the performance of any act demanded by
the law is not required. They are held to be dies non juridici. And in the Christian world
Sunday is regarded as the 'Lord's Day,' and a holiday -- a day of cessation from labor. By
statute, enacted as far back as 1838, this day is made in Louisiana one of 'public rest.'
Rev. Stat., Sec. 522; Code of Practice, 207, 763. This is the policy of the State of long
standing and the framers of the Constitution are to be considered as intending to conform
to the same.' By express command of Congress studies are not pursued at the military or
naval academies, and distilleries are prohibited from operation on Sundays, while
chaplains are required to hold religious services once at least on that day.
By the English statute of 29 Charles II no tradesman, artificer,
workman, laborer, or other person was permitted to do or exercise any worldly labor,
business or work of ordinary calling upon the Lord's Day, or any part thereof, works of
necessity or charity only excepted. That statute, with some variations, has been adopted
by most if not all the States of the Union. In Massachusetts it was held that one injured
while traveling in the cars on Sunday, except in case of necessity or charity, was guilty
of contributory negligence and could recover nothing from the railroad company for the
injury he sustained. And this decision was affirmed by the Supreme Court of the United
States. A statute of the State of Georgia, making the running of freight trains on Sunday
a misdemeanor, was also upheld by that court.
By decisions in many States a contract made on Sunday is invalid
and cannot be enforced. By the general course of decision no judicial proceedings can be
held on Sunday. All legislative bodies, whether municipal, state or national, abstain from
work on that day. Indeed, the vast volume of official action, legislative and judicial,
recognizes Sunday as a day separate and apart from the others, a day devoted not to the
ordinary pursuits of life. It is true in many of the decisions of this separation of the
day is said to be authorized by the police power of the State and exercised for purposes
of health. At the same time, through a large majority of them, there runs the thought of
its being a religious day, consecrated by the Commandment, 'Six days shalt thou labor, and
do all thy work: but the seventh day is the Sabbath of the Lord thy God: in it thou shalt
not do any work, thou, nor thy son, nor thy daughter, thy man servant, nor thy maid
servant, nor thy cattle, nor the stranger that is within thy gates.'
While the word 'God' is not infrequently used both in the
singular and plural to denote any supreme being or beings, yet when used alone and in the
singular number it generally refers to that Supreme Being spoken of in the Old and New
Testaments and worshiped by the Christian. In that sense the word is used in constitution,
statute and instrument.
In many State Constitutions we find in the preamble a declaration
like this: 'Grateful to Almighty God.' In whom he who denied the being of God was
disqualified from holding office. It is again and again declared in constitution and
statute that official oaths shall close with an appeal, 'So help me, God.' When, upon
inauguration, the President-elect each four years consecrates himself to the great
responsibilities of Chief Executive of the republic, his vow of consecration in the
presence of the vast throng filling the Capitol grounds will end with the solemn words,
'So help me, God.' In all our courts witnesses in like manner vouch for the truthfulness
of their testimony. The common commencement of wills is 'In the name of God, Amen.' Every
foreigner attests his renunciation of allegiance to his former sovereign and his
acceptance of citizenship in this republic by an appeal to God. These various declarations
in charters, constitutions and statutes indicate the general thought and purpose. If it be
said that similar declarations are not found in all the charters or in all the
constitutions, it will be borne in mind that the omission oftentimes was because they were
deemed unnecessary, as shown by the quotation just made from the opinion of the Supreme
Court of Louisiana, as well as those hereafter taken from the opinions of other courts.
And further, it is of still more significance that there are no contrary declarations. In
no charter or constitution is there anything to even suggest that any other than the
Christian is the religion of his country. In none of them is Mohammed or Confucius or
Buddha in any manner noticed. In none of them is Judaism recognized other than by way of
toleration of its special creed. While the separation of church and state is often
affirmed, there is nowhere a repudiation of Christianity as one of the institutions as
well as benedictions of society. In short, there is no charter or constitution that is
either infidel, agnostic or anti-Christian. Wherever there is a declaration in favor of
any religion it is of the Christian. In view of the multitude of expressions in its favor,
the avowed separation between church and states is a most satisfactory testimonial that it
is the religion of this country, for a peculiar thought of Christianity is of a personal
relation between man and his Maker, uncontrolled by and independent of human government.
Notice also the matter of chaplains. These are appointed for the army and navy, named as
officials of legislative assemblies, and universally they belong to one or other of the
Christian denominations. [You see no so-called Jewish chaplains were allowed in he
military of the United States until after 1905 - thus the cries of the ministers of Baal
from the pulpits of America about America being a Judeo-Christian nation is nothing more
than a lie fostered upon the American people by the antichrist Jews]. Their whole range of
service, whether in prayer or preaching, is an official recognition of Christianity. If it
be not so, why do we have chaplains?
If we consult the decisions of the courts, although the formal
question has seldom been presented because of a general recognition of its truth, yet in
The People vs. Ruggles, 8 John, 290, 294, 295, Chancellor Kent, the great commentator on
American law, speaking as Chief Justice of the Supreme Court of New York, said: 'The
people of this State, in common with the people of this country, profess the general
doctrines of Christianity, as the rule of their faith and practice.' And in the famous
case of Vidal vs. Girard's Executors, 2 How. 127, 198, the Supreme Court of the United
States, while sustaining the will of Mr. Girard, with its provision for the creation of a
college into which no minister should be permitted to enter, observed: 'It is also said,
and truly that the Christian religion is a part of the common law of Pennsylvania.'
The New York Supreme Court, in Lindenmuller vs. The People, 33
Barbour, 561 held that: 'Christianity is not the legal religion of the State, as
established by law. If it were, it would be a civil or political institution, which it is
not; but this is not inconsistent with the idea that it is in fact, and ever has been, the
religion of the people. This fact is everywhere prominent in all our civil and political
history, and has been, from the first, recognized and acted upon by the people, as well as
by constitutional conventions, by legislatures and by courts of justice.'
The South Carolina Supreme Court, in State vs. Chandler, 2
Harrington, 555, citing many cases, said: 'It appears to have been long perfectly settled
by the common law that blasphemy against the Deity in general, or a malicious and wanton
attack against the Christian religion individually, for the purpose of exposing its
doctrines to contempt and ridicule, is indictable and punishable as a temporal offense.'
And again, in City Council vs. Benjamin, 2 Strobhart, 521: 'On that day we rest, and to us
it is the Sabbath of the Lord -- its decent observance in a Christian community is that
which ought to be expected. it is not perhaps necessary for the purposes of this case to
rule and hold that the Christian religion is part of the common law of South Carolina.
Still it may be useful to show that it lies at the foundation of even the article of the
Constitution under consideration, and that upon it rest many of the principles and usages,
constantly acknowledged and enforced, in the courts of justice.'
The Pennsylvania Supreme Court, in Updegraph vs. The
Commonwealth, 11 Sergeant and Rawle, 400, made this declaration.: 'Christianity, general
Christianity, is, and always has been, a great part of the common law of Pennsylvania;
Christianity, without the spiritual artillery of European countries; of this Christianity
was one of the considerations of the royal charter, and the very basis of its great
founder, William Penn; not Christianity founded on any particular religious tenets; not
Christianity with an established church, and tithes, and spiritual courts; but
Christianity with liberty of conscience to all men.'
And subsequently, in Johnson vs. The Commonwealth, 10
Harris, III. 'It is not our business to discuss the obligations of Sunday any further than
they enter into and are recognized by the law of the land. The common law adopted it,
along with Christianity, of which it is one of the bulwarks.'
In Arkansas, Shover vs. The State, 10 English, 263, the Supreme
Court said: 'Sunday or the Sabbath is properly and emphatically called the Lord's Day, and
is one amongst the first and most sacred institutions of the Christian religion. This
system of religion is recognized as constituting a part and parcel of the common law, and
as such all of the institutions growing out of it, or, in any way, connected with it, in
case they shall not be found to interfere with the rights of conscience, are entitled to
the most profound respect, and can rightfully claim the protection of the law-making power
of the State.'
The Supreme Court of Maryland, in Judefind vs. The State, 78
Maryland, 514, declared: 'The Sabbath is emphatically the day of rest, and the day of rest
here is the Lord's Day or Christian's Sunday. Ours is a Christian community, and a day set
apart as the day of rest is the day consecrated by the resurrection of our Saviour, and
embraces the twenty-four hours next ensuing the midnight of Sunday...But it would scarcely
be asked of a court, in what professes to be a Christian land, to declare a law
unconstitutional because it requires rest from bodily labor on Sunday (except works of
necessity and charity) and thereby promotes the cause of Christianity.'
If now we pass from the domain of official action and recognition
to that of individual acceptance we enter a field of boundless extent, and I can only
point out a few of the prominent facts: Notice our educational institutions. I have
already called your attention to the provisions of the charters of the first three
colleges. Think of the vast number of academies, colleges and universities scattered
through the land. Some of them, it is true, are under secular control, but there is yet to
be established in this country one of those institutions founded on the religions of
Confucius, Buddha or Mohammed, while an over-whelming majority are under the special
direction and control of Christian teachers. Notice also the avowed and pronounced
Christian forces of the country, and here I must refer to the census of 1890, for the
statistics of the census of 1900 in these matters have not been compiled: The population
was 62,622,000. There were 165,000 Christian church organizations, owning 142,000
buildings, in which were sittings for 40,625,000 people. The communicants in these
churches numbered 20,476,000, and the value of the church property amounted to
$669,876,000. In other words, about one-third of the entire population were directly
connected with Christian organizations. Nearly two-thirds would find seats in our
churches. If to the members we add the children and others in their families more or less
connected with them, it is obvious that a large majority were attached to the various
church organizations. I am aware that the relationship between many members and their
churches is formal, and that church relations do not constitute active and paramount
forces in their lives, and yet it is clear that there is an identification of the great
mass of American citizens with the Christian church.
It is undoubtedly true that there is no little complain of the
falling off in church attendance, and of a lukewarmness on the part of many, and on the
other hand there is a diversion of religious force along the lines of the Young Men's
Christian Association, the Christian Endeavor Society and the Epworth League.
All these, of course, are matters to be noticed, but they do not
avoid the fact of a formal adhesion of the great majority of our people to the Christian
faith; and while creeds and dogmas and denominations are in a certain sense losing their
power, and certainly their antagonisms, yet as a vital force in the land, Christianity is
still the mighty factor. Connection with the denominations are large missionary bodies
constantly busy in extending [the] Christian faith through this nation and through the
world. No other religious organization has anything of a foothold or is engaged in active
work unless it be upon so small a scale as scarcely to be noticed in the great volume of
American life. Again, the Bible is the Christian's book. No other book has so wide a
circulation, or is so universally found in the households of the land. During their
century of existence the English and American Bible Societies have published and
circulated two hundred and fifty million copies, and this represents but a fraction of its
circulation. And then think of the multitude of volumes published in exposition,
explanation and illustration of that book, or some portion of it. You will have noticed
that I have presented no doubtful facts. Nothing has been stated which is debatable. The
quotations from charters are in the archives of the several States; the laws are on the
statute books; judicial opinions are taken from the census publications. In short, no
evidence has been presented which is open to question.
I could easily enter upon another line of examination. I could
point out the general trend of public opinion, the disclosures of purposes and beliefs to
be found in letters, papers, books and unofficial declarations.
I could show how largely our laws and customs are based upon the
laws of Moses and the teachings of Christ: how constantly the Bible is appealed to as the
guide of life and the authority in questions of morals; how the Christian doctrines are
accepted as the great comfort in times of sorrow and affliction, and fill with the light
of hope the services of the dead. On every hilltop towers the steeple of some Christian
church, while from the marble witnesses in God's acre comes the universal but silent
testimony to the common faith in the Christian doctrine of the resurrection and the life
hereafter.
But I must not weary you. I could go on indefinitely, point out
further illustrations both official and non-official, public and private; such as the
annual Thanksgiving proclamations, with their following days of worship and feasting;
announcements of days of fasting and prayer; the universal celebration of Christmas; the
gathering of millions of our children in Sunday Schools, and the countless volumes of
Christian literature, both prose and poetry.
But I have said enough to show that Christianity came to this
country with the first colonists; has been powerfully identified with its rapid
development, colonial and national, and today exists as a might factor in the life of the
republic. This is a Christian Nation, and we can all rejoice as truthfully we repeat the
words of Leonard Bacon:
"'O God, beneath thy guiding hand
Our exiled fathers crossed the sea,
And when they trod the wintry strand,
With prayer and psalm they worshiped Thee.
Thou heardst, well pleased, the song, the prayer
Thy blessing came; and still its power
Shall onward through all ages bear
The memory of that holy hour.
Laws, freedom, truth, and faith in God
Came with those exiles o'er the waves,
And where their pilgrim feet have trod,
The God they trusted guards their graves.
And here Thy name, O God of love,
Their children's children shall adore,
Till these eternal hills remove,
And spring adorns the earth no more.'"
Justice Brewer, the next day speaking of his speech the night before stated:
"I considered last night the proposition that the Unites
States of America is a Christian nation. I pointed out that Christianity was a primary
cause of the first settlement on our shores; that the organic instruments, charters and
constitutions of the colonies were filled with abundant recognitions of it as a
controlling factor in the life of the people; that in one at least of them it was in terms
declared the established religion, while in several the furthering of Christianity was
stated to be one of the purposes of the government; in many faith in it was a condition of
holding office; in some, authority was given to the legislature to make its support a
public charge; in nearly all the constitutions there has been an express recognition of
the sanctity of the Christian Sunday; the God of the Bible is appealed to again and again.
Sunday laws have been enacted and enforced in most of the colonies and States. About
one-third of the population are avowedly Christian and communicants in some Christian
organization; there are sitting accommodations in the churches for nearly two-thirds;
educational institutions are largely under the control of Christian denominations, and
even in those which, in obedience to the rule of separation between church and state, are
secular in their organization, the principles of Christianity are uniformly recognized. By
these and other evidences I claim to have shown that the calling of this Republic a
Christian Nation is not a mere pretence but a recognition of an historical, legal and
social truth. I came this evening to consider the consequences of this fact and the duties
it imposes upon all our citizens.
And first let it be noticed that there is no incompatibility
between Christianity and Patriotism. The declaration of the Master, 'Render therefore unto
Caesar, the things which are Caesar's; and unto God the things that are God's,' is not a
declaration of antagonism between the two, but an affirmation of duty to each. Indeed,
devotion to one generally goes hand in hand with loyalty to the other...
But we need not go elsewhere. In our own land, from the very
first, Christianity and patriotism have worked together. When the Pilgrim Fathers touched
New England's shores their first service was one of thanksgiving and praise to that
Infinite One who had, as they believed, guided them to their new home. In the long
struggles of the early colonists with their Indian foes, the building on the hill was both
church and fort. They fell on their knees and then on the aborigines, was the old satire,
to which now is added, they fall on the Chinese. In the convention that framed the
Constitution, when doubt and uncertainty hovered over the result, at Franklin's instance
prayer was offered for the success of their efforts. In the dark days at Valley Forge the
great leader sought strength and inspiration in prayer. When the nation stood aghast at
the assassination of Abraham Lincoln , the clarion voice of Garfield rang out above the
darkness and the tumult, 'God reigns, and the government at Washington still lives.' And
so I might go on with illustration after illustration showing how the faith of the
Christian has stood in times of trial and trouble as the rock [Jesus Christ] upon which
the nation has rested. Again, Christianity is entitled to the tribute of respect. I do not
of course mean that all individuals, nominally Christian, deserve trust, confidence, or
even respect, for the contrary is too often the case. Too often men hold religion as they
do property, in their wives' names. Nor is Christianity beyond the reach of criticism and
opposition. It is not lifted up as something too sacred to be spoken of save in terms and
tones of reverence. This an iconoclastic and scientific age. We are destroying many
beliefs and traditions. William Tell is a myth.
The long hairs of Pocahontas never dropped in protecting folds
over the body of John Smith. The Arabs never destroyed the great library at Alexandria,
though if some wandering Arabs would destroy all the law books in the land they would
bless the courts and help the cause of justice. We challenge the truthfulness of every
assertion of fact, every demand upon our faith and confidence; and Christianity must stand
like all other institutions, to be challenged, criticized, weighed and its merits and
demerits determined. The time has passed in the history of the world when anything is too
sacred to be touched, when anything is beyond the reach of the inquiring and scientific
spear. But while conceding all this I insist that Christianity has been so wrought into
the history of this republic, so identified with its growth and prosperity, has been and
is so dear to the hearts of the great body of our citizens, that it ought not to be spoken
of contemptuously or treated with ridicule. Religion of any form is a sacred matter.
It involves the relation of the individual to some Being believed
to be infinitely supreme. It involves not merely character and life here, but destiny
hereafter, and as such is not to be spoken of lightly or flippantly. And we who are
citizens of this republic -- recognizing the identification of Christianity with its life,
the general belief that Christianity is the best of all religions, that it passed into the
lives of our father and is taken into the lives of our brethren as something of sacred
power -- ought, even if not agreeing with all that is claimed for it, to at least accord
to respect.
I once listened to a conversation which illustrates my thought.
It was between two young men returning after the close of a summer's vacation to the
college at which both were students. The principal talker was, as I discovered in the
course of the afternoon, an only son. On his upper lip was the first dark shadow of a
coming mustache. He possessed that peculiar wisdom which belongs in this world to only the
college sophomore. He was expressing to his companion his views on the Bible and religion.
[And] said he knew too much to believe in either; admitted that his mother believed in
both and read her Bible every day; said that that might do for women and children, but not
for any scientific knowledge.
You would have thought that Darwin and Huxle and Lord Kelvin had
studied at his feet and that he was the Gamaliel of the present day. It is impossible to
reproduce in language the self-sufficient sneering tone in which he spoke of the Bible,
classing it with nursery rhymes, the story of Jack and the Beanstalk and the like, and the
complacement pity with which he referred to those who were foolish enough to regard it as
a sacred book . It is to be hoped that the budding sophomore lived long enough to learn
that no gentleman speaks sneeringly of that which has been the life-long faith and comfort
of his mother.
AMERICAN FLAG
From the standpoint of citizenship the treatment of Christianity
may be regarded as in some respects similar to that which is accorded and is due to the
national flag. Who looks upon that as a mere piece of cloth costing but a trifle,
something to be derided or trampled upon at will? A particular banner may not have cost
much. It may be cheap to him who sees only the material and work which have passed into
it, but to every patriot it is the symbol of patriotism. Its history is a record of glory.
A century ago the Barbary pirates, who had defied the flags of Europe, saw it waving over
Decatur's vessels and bowed in submission.
Commodore Perry sailed beneath it into the unknown harbors of
Japan, opened that nation to the nineteenth century, and today her civilization and power
command universal respect and admiration [How we have fallen as a nation and a people in
just 85 years]. The oppressed Cuban appealed to it for deliverance, and in response
thereto Manila and Santiago de Cuba introduced a new sister into the family of nations:
'Wherever man has dared to go,
His brightness on unbroken snow,
'Mid tropic heat or polar snow,
Where icy pillars tower to heaven
On sandy plain or lofty crag,
Pale sentinels to nature given,
Has waved our country's starry flag.
To watch the only spot she can
In that far North where ceaseless cold
Withhold from grasping hand of man,
Has built its alabaster hold,
There Kane unfurled this banner bright,
And where the sun disdains to show
Resplendent with auroral light.'
Today it waves at the masthead of American vessels in every water of
the globe, and commands the world's respect [That was in 1905, when America still held to
God's Laws, today the American flag is spat upon and despised in every nation in the
world. Thanks to the antichrists in our midst]! An insult to it every citizen feels is an
insult to himself, and all insist that it shall be accorded due respect. We remember how,
in the early days of our great civil struggle, the loyal heart was stirred with the
thrilling words of Secretary Dix, 'IF ANY MAN ATTEMPTS TO HAUL DOWN THE AMERICAN FLAG,
SHOOT HIM ON THE SPOT.' We honor Stonewall Jackson, who, seeing Barbara Frietchie waving
this banner from the window of her home in Frederick, and the threatening guns of his
soldiers, called out:
'Who touches a hair of yon gray head
Dies like a dog. March on;' he said.'
We rejoice that now it floats in peace and triumph over all our
fair land. We love to watch its fold swing out to the breeze on every patriotic day, to
see it decorate the walls where gather our great conventions. We glory in every tribute
that is paid to it in any part of the globe. It tells the story of conflicts, of defeats
and victories. It has waved over many a field of battle, the blood of our noblest and best
has been shed in its defense. It is eloquent of all the sufferings and trials of days gone
by, of all the great achievements of the American people, and as we swing it to the breeze
we do so with undoubting faith that it will wave over grander things in the future of this
Republic.
Christianity has entered into and become part of the life of this
Republic; it came with its beginnings and prompted them; has been identified with its
toils and trials, shared in its victories, cheered in the hour of darkness and gloom, and
stand today prophetic of untold blessings in the future. And shall it be said that it
alone of all our benedictions has forfeited a claim to receive from every American citizen
the tribute of respect? Respect for Christianity implies respectful treatment of its
institutions and ordinances. This does not require that every one must conform his life to
those institutions and ordinances. That is something which each one has a right to settle
for himself. Take, for instance, the matter of church services. No one is in duty bound as
a citizen to attend a particular church service, or indeed any church service. The freedom
of conscience, the liberty of the individual, gives to every individual the right to
attend or stay away. At the same time there is an obligation not to unnecessarily
interfere with or disturb those services. This is something more than the duty which rests
upon one attending those services to avoid the ungentlemanly and unseemly act of
disturbing the exercises.
That is only a part of the common courtesy of all going into a
gathering assembled for any lawful purpose. They who call the meeting and who are engaged
in service of any legitimate character have a right to be free from annoyance and
interference.
But beyond that the citizen who does not attend, does not even
share in the belief of those who do, ought ever to bear in mind the noble part
Christianity has taken in the history of the republic, the great share it has had in her
wonderful development and its contribution to her present glory, and by reason thereof
take pains to secure to those who do believe in it and do attend its services freedom from
all disturbance of their peaceful gathering. The American Christian is entitled to his
quiet hour.
THE LORD'S DAY
Take another illustration, -- Sunday. Its separation from the
other days as a day of rest is enforced by the legislation of nearly all if not all the
States of the Union. Beyond that it is to the Christian a sacred day. It does not follow
that it is the duty of every individual to observe the Sabbath as Christians do. Indeed,
there is no unanimity of view among the latter as to the manner in which it should be
observed. We have gone far away from the Puritan Sabbath and the austere, severe
observance of it which prevailed in the early days of [the] New England colonies, and
which made the day a terror to children as well as burdensome to adults. I believe it is
conceded that notwithstanding the fabled blue laws of New England, a man may without
impropriety kiss his wife on Sunday and possibly if he have a chance some other sweet-
faced woman. That old-time terror has been superseded by gentler and kindlier modes of
observance, which tend to make the day welcome to all, both young and old, one in which is
not merely rest from the ordinary toils of the week, but one in which the companionship of
friends the sweet influences of nature, and lessons from the higher forms of music and
other arts are recognized as among its benedictions. While the latter modes, though very
likely more helpful, more really Christian, are a great departure from the former, yet it
still remains true that it is a day consecrated of old, a day separated by law and
religion as well as by the custom of the church for ages, and ought not to be turned into
a day of public frivolity and gayety. While it may be true that all are not under
obligations to conform to the higher and better uses of the day, yet at least they owe
that respect to Christianity to pursue their frivolities and gaieties in such a way as not
to offend those who believe in its sacredness. I recognize the fact that it is not always
easy t draw the line and that freedom implies not merely the freedom of those who would
keep the day sacred, but also the freedom of those who do not so regard it.
Again it deserve the attention and study of every citizen. You
are all patriots, you love your country, are proud of its past and mean to so live and act
that you can help it to the best possible future. Now, as I have pointed out, Christianity
was a principal cause of the settlements on these western shores. It has been identified
with the growth and development of those settlements into the United States of America,
has so largely shaped and molded it that today of all the nations in the world it is most
justly called a Christian nation. In order to determine what we ought to do for the future
of the republic we must review its history, inquire into the causes which have made its
growth and influenced its life, ascertained which have been the most controlling and which
have helped on the better side of its development, and why they have been so influential.
I have shown that Christianity has been a great factor, and the student of our history
will find that it has been a helpful and uplifting factor. Making full allowance for all
the imperfections and mistakes which have attended it, as they attend all human
institution, I am sure that the student will be convinced that its general influence upon
our national life has been for the better.
It has always stood for purity of the home, and who doubts that
our homes have been the centers of the holiest living. It is Judaism, Mormonism,
Mohammedanism and heathenism and not Christianity which have proclaimed polygamy and
debased woman from the sacred place of wife to the lower level of concubine. It is not
Christianity which has sustained the social evil. All through our history, colonial and
national, the hope and ambition of every young man and woman have been for a home of their
own, into which one husband and one wife shall enter, 'that they twain shall be one
flesh.' One of the sad features of city life today is the crowding into apartments, where
the janitor is master of the house and the independence of the home life is only partially
secured. The barracks around our great manufacturing establishments are freighted with
equally sad significance. While admitting the temporary departure we rejoice that this has
been pre-eminently a land of homes, whether in the city, or village, or country. And the
power which has ever stood in the land for the purity of home life has been a crown of
glory to the republic.
It has stood for business honesty and integrity. Its proclamation
has been the golden rule. Do unto others as you would they should do unto you, is a
summons to honesty and fair dealing in all business as well as other relations in life.
The Master never suggested that ability to keep outside the penitentiary was a sufficient
test of honesty.
It has stood for liberty and the rights of man. In the great
revolutionary struggle the trusted counselors of the people were the preachers. While they
may not be known in history as the leaders, were not the lawyers to draft the statutes and
the constitution, nor the military heroes to command the armies, yet the local centers of
influence were the Christian churches, and the Christian preachers were the men who kept
the mass of the people loyal to the leadership of Washington and his associates. And in
the later struggle for human liberty Christianity was always on the advance line. Those of
us who remember the ante-Bellum days recalled the bitter flings that were made against
preachers in politics. That was significant of the recognized truth that they were leading
the great mass of the loyal people on in that most wonderful civil war of all the ages.
That struggle, as every one knows commenced on the plains of Kansas, and the New England
emigrant crossed those plains, singing the song of Whittier:
'We go to plant our common schools
Upbearing like the ark of old,
On distant prairie swells,
The Bible in our van,
And give the Sabbaths of the wild
We go to test the truth of God
The music of her bells.
Against the fraud of man.'
And all during the terrible days of the great war, from every
Union camp and company rolled up the majestic music of the battle hymn of the republic:
'In the beauty of the lilies Christ was born across the sea,
With a glory in his bosom that transfigures you and me:
As He died to make men holy, let us die to make men free,
While God is marching on.'
EDUCATION
It has stood for education. I have already called your attention
to this matter in proof of the Christian character of the nation. It may be added that
outside of the institutions with direct State support nearly every academy, college and
university was founded by and is under the control of some one of the several Christian
denominations. Indeed, a frequent criticism of many is that they are too much under such
control. Certain is it that they would never have come into being but for the
denominations back of them. Up to a recent date the rule was that the presidents and an
exceedingly large majority of the faculty of all these institutions be ministers.
It was a national surprise when first a layman was elected a
college president. In the common schools the Bible has been as much a text-book as the New
England primer. It is only within very late years that any objection has been raised to
its daily use, and that objection has sprung as much from differences between the Catholic
and Protestant denominations concerning the version to be used as from opposition to the
book itself. It has stood for the great charities and benevolences of the land. What
single organization has done more for the orphan than the Christian Church? What one
through hospital and asylum, more for the sick and afflicted? If you were to select a
single face and form as the typical expression of the great thought of charity and
kindness, whose would you select other than the face and form of a sister of Charity? In
times when epidemics rage, when death seems to haunt every city home, who are the devoted
ones to risk their lives in caring for the sick and paying the last offices to the dead?
Surely as the vision of this rises in your mind you see the
presence and form of those whose faith is in the Man of Galilee.
It has stood for peace. I need not content myself by referring to
that Christian denomination, one of whose distinguishing tenets is unqualified opposition
to all wars. I can with safety point to the great body of those who in days gone by have
been the champions of the cause of peace; to the memorials which have been presented to
the two Houses of Congress in favor of arbitration; to those who are at the head of the
various peace societies, and who are always found upon the platforms at their gatherings,
and whose voices are most constant and potent in its behalf. Indeed, strike from the
history of this country all that the Christian Church has done in the interest and to
further the cause of peace and there is not as much life left as was found in the barren
fig tree.
It has stood for temperance. Not that it has stood alone, but it
has been a leader. The foremost advocates of the cause have been pronounced Christians.
Frances Willard was president of the Woman's Christian Temperance Union, not of the
Woman's Mohammedan Temperance Union, and the White Ribboners are not disciples of
Confucius or Buddha. The churches have been the palaces of the great gatherings of the
friends of temperance. Indeed, when you survey the efforts made to further that cause you
will find that running through them all Christianity has been distinctively present.
In short, it has sought to write into the history of this nation
the glowing words of the apostle: 'Love, joy, peace, long-suffering, gentleness, goodness,
faith, meekness, temperance; against such there is no law.'
It has stood for all these things because they represent its
thought and purpose. So he who studies the history of the country, finding this to be the
lesson of its influence upon our history, can but be led to the conclusion not merely that
it has been a potent factor in the life of the nation, but also that it has been a
healthful and helpful factor. When one who loves his country realizes this fact, does
there not open before him a clear vision of his duty to further its influence. If in the
past it has done so much and so well for the country is there any reason to doubt that
strengthened and extended it will continue the same healthful and helpful influence? It
has been often said that Christian Nations are either civilized nations, and as often that
the most thoroughly Christian are the most highly civilized. Is this a mere coincidence?
Study well the history of Christianity in its relation to the nation and it will be found
that it is something more than a mere coincidence, that there is between the two relation
of cause and effect, and that the more thoroughly the principles of Christianity reach
into and influence the life of the nation the more certainly will that nation advance in
civilization.
It is the duty of every patriot, finding that it has been such a
factor in our life, to inquire whether it does stand to its civilization in the relation
of cause and effect, and it would be in the highest degree unphilosophical to assume that
there has been only a coincidence, and therefore that its presence in the nation is a
matter of indifference. If found that it has been both a potent and helpful factor in the
development of our civilization, then it is a patriot's duty to uphold it and extend its
influence. This is in line with the general obligation which rests upon all to help
everything which tends to the bettering of the life of the republic..."
The Christian concept derived directly from the Hebrew Holy Writ was the next ingredient
added to the monotheistic governing process and this is where the Theocratic
Constitutional Republic form of limited government of the people, by the people, and for
the people originated from., Creating the United States of America.
The original charters, compacts, contracts, and constitutions, all had their origin in the
Bible. All the laws, rules, and regulations concerning civil, religious, and hygiene were
taken from the Bible and patterned after the Christian Faith. All of the Common Law of the
United States of America came directly out of the Old Testament books of the Holy Bible,
namely, the original source of our Common Law was the books of Leviticus and Deuteronomy.
The Christian system of government as established in the United States of America had its
origin predominantly as follows:
MAGNA CHARTA OF 1215 A.D.
John, by the grace of God, King of England, Lord of Ireland, Duke of Normandy, Aquitaine,
and Count of Anjou, to his Archbishops, Bishops, Abbots, Earls, Barons, Justiciaries,
Foresters...and his faithful subjects, greeting. Know ye, that we, in the presence of God,
and for the salvation of our soul, and the souls of all our ancestors and heirs, and unto
the honor of God and the advancement of Holy Church, and amendment of our Realm...have, in
the first place, granted to God, and by this our present Charter confirmed, for us and our
heirs for ever:
"That the Church of England shall be free, and have her
whole rights, and her liberties...We also have granted to all the freemen of our kingdom
for us and our heirs for ever, all the underwritten liberties to be hand and holden by
them and their heirs, of us and our heirs for ever...No scutage or aid shall be imposed in
our kingdom, unless by the general council of our kingdom; except for ransoming our
person, making our eldest son a knight, and once for marrying our eldest daughter; and for
these there shall be paid no more than a reasonable aid. In like manner it shall be
concerning the aids of the City of London.
And the City of London shall have its ancient liberties and free
customs, as well by land as by water: furthermore, we will and grant that all other cities
and boroughs, and towns and ports, shall have all their liberties and free customs.
And for holding the general council of the kingdom concerning the
assessment of aids, except in the three cases aforesaid, and for the assessing of scutages
we shall cause to be summoned the archbishops, bishops, abbots, earls, and greater barons
of the realm, singly by our letters. And furthermore, we shall cause to be summoned
generally, by our sheriffs and bailiffs, all others who hold us in chief, for a certain
day. That is to say, forty days before their meeting at least, and to a certain place; and
in all letters of such summons we will declare the cause of such summons. And summons
being thus made, the business shall proceed on the day appointed, according to the advice
of such as shall be present, although all that were summoned came not...
A freeman shall not be amerced for a small offence, but only
according to the degree of the offence; and for a great crime according to the heinousness
of it, saving to him his contentment; and after the same manner a merchant, saving to him
his merchandise. And a villain shall be amerced after the same manner, saving to him his
wainage, if he falls under our mercy; and none of the aforesaid americaments shall be
assessed but by the oath of honest men in the neighborhood.
Earls and barons shall not be amerced but by their peers, after
the degree of the offence...
No constable or bailiff of ours shall take corn or other chattels
of any man unless he presently give him money for it, or hath respite of payment by the
good-will of the seller.
No constable shall distrain any knight to give money for
castle-guard, if he himself will do it in his person, or by another able man, in case he
cannot do it through any reasonable cause...No sheriff or bailiff of ours, or any other,
shall take horses or carts of any freeman for carriage, without the assent of the said
freeman.
Neither shall we nor our bailiffs take any man's timber for our
castles or other uses, unless by the consent of the owner of the timber...
If one who has borrowed from the Jews any sum, great or small,
die before that loan be repaid, the debt shall not bear interest while the heir is under
age, of whomsoever he may hold; and if the debt falls into our hands, we will not take
anything except the principal sum contained in the bond.
And if any one die indebted to the Jews, his wife shall have her
dower and pay nothing of that debt; and if any children of the deceased are left under
age, necessaries shall be provided for them in keeping with holding of the deceased; and
out of the residue the debt shall be paid, reserving, however, service due to feudal
lords; in like manner let it be done touching debts due to others than Jews.
Nothing from henceforth shall be given or taken for a writ of
inquisition of life or limb, but it shall be grated freely, and not denied...No freeman
shall be taken or imprisoned, or disseised, or outlawed, or banished, or any ways
destroyed, nor will we pass upon him, nor will we send upon him, unless by the lawful
judgment of his peers, or by the law of the land.
We will sell to no man, we will not deny to any man, either
justice or right...
If any one has been dispossessed or deprived by us, without the
lawful judgment of his peers, of his lands, castles, liberties, or right, we will
forthwith restore them to him; and if any dispute arise upon his head, let the matter be
decided by the five-and-twenty barons hereafter mentioned, for the preservation of the
peace...All unjust and illegal fines made by us, and all americaments imposed unjustly and
contrary to the law of the land, shall be entirely given up, or else be left to the
decision of the five-and-twenty barons hereafter mentioned for the preservation of the
peace, or of the major part of the, together with the aforesaid Stephen, Archbishop of
Canterbury, if he can be present, and others whom we shall think fit to invite...All the
aforesaid customes and liberties, which we have grated to be holden in our kingdom, as
much as it belongs to us, all people in our kingdom, as well clergy as laity, shall
observe, as far as they are concerned, towards their dependents.
And whereas, for the honor of God and the amendment of our
kingdom, and for the better quieting the discord that has arisen between us and our
barons, we have granted all these things aforesaid; willing to render them firm and
lasting, we do give and grant our subjects the underwritten security, namely that the
barons may choose five-and-twenty barons of the kingdom whom they think convenient, and
cause to be observed, the peace and liberties we have granted them, and by this our
present Charter confirmed in this manner...Given under our hand, in the presence of the
witnesses above named, and many others, in the meadow called Riningmede, between Windsor
and Staines, the 15th day of June, in the 17th year of our reign.
In the New England area, artifacts such as grave headstones have
been found, all with Ogam script in Gaelic script. To this date no one has found the
remains of the bodies because of the acid soil which destroys all remains within 100 years
or less. Additionally, our early American settlers removed the headstones from the burial
sites and placed them in hedgerows along the sides of the fields and so the headstones are
not now located near the actual graves.
The Celts with the Gaelic dialect came from the highlands of
Scotland. According to the Scottish Declaration of Independence written by Robert Bruce
and his noblemen, the Scotland people came from ancient Israel through the Rhineland area
of France and Germany and then through Iberia or Spain."
THE SCOTTISH DECLARATION OF INDEPENDENCE
"To the Most Holy Father in Christ and Lord, the Lord John,
by divine providence Supreme Pontiff of the Holy Roman and Universal Church, his humble
and devout sons Duncan, Earl of Fife, Thomas Randolph, Earl of Moray, Lord of Man and of
Annandale, Patrick Dunbar, Earl of March, Malise, Earl of Strathearn, Macolm, Earl of
Lennos, William Earl of Ross, Magnus, Earl of Caithness and Orkney, and William, Earl of
Sutherland; Walter, Stewart of Scotland, William Soules, Butler of Scotland, James, Lord
of Douglas, Roger Mowbray, David, Lord of Brechin, David Graham, Ingram Umfraville, John
Menteith, Guardian of the Earldom of Menteith, Alexander Fraser, Gilbert Hay, Constable of
Scotland, Robert Keith, Marischal of Scotland, Henry St. Clair, John Graham, David
Lindsay, William Oliphant, Patrick Graham, John Fenton, William Abernathy, David Wemyss,
William Mushet, Fergus of Ardrossan, Eustace Maxwell, William Ramsay, William Mowat, Alan
Murray, Donald Campbell, John Cameron, Reginald Cheyne, Alexander Seton, Andrew Leslie,
and Alexander Straiton, and the other barons and freeholders and the whole community of
the realm of Scotland send all manner of filial reverence, with devout kisses of his
blessed feet.
Most Holy Father and Lord, we know and from the chronicles and
books of the ancients we find that among other famous nations our own, the Scots, has been
graced with widespread renown. THEY JOURNEYED FROM GREATER SCYTHIA BY WAY OF THE
TYRRHENIAN SEA AND THE PILLARS OF HERCULES, AND DWELT FOR A LONG COURSE OF TIME IN SPAIN
AMONG THE MOST SAVAGE TRIBES, BUT NOWHERE COULD THEY BE SUBDUED BY ANY RACE, HOWEVER
BARBAROUS. THENCE THEY CAME, TWELVE HUNDRED YEARS AFTER THE PEOPLE OF ISRAEL CROSSED THE
RED SEA, TO THEIR HOME IN THE WEST WHERE THEY STILL LIVE TODAY. The Britons they first
drove out, the Picts they utterly destroyed, and even though very often assailed by the
Norwegians, the Danes and the English, they took possession of that home with many
victories and untold efforts; and, as the historians of old time bear witness, they have
held it free of all bondage ever since. In their kingdom there have reigned one hundred
and thirteen kings of their own royal stock, the line unbroken by a single foreigner.
THE HIGH QUALITIES AND DESERTS OF THESE PEOPLE, WERE THEY NOT
OTHERWISE MANIFEST, GAIN GLORY ENOUGH FROM THIS: THAT THE KING OF KINGS AND LORD OF LORDS,
OUR LORD JESUS CHRIST, AFTER HIS PASSION AND RESURRECTION, CALLED THEM, EVEN THOUGH
SETTLED IN THE UTTERMOST PARTS OF THE EARTH, ALMOST THE FIRST TO HIS MOST HOLY FAITH.
Nor would He have them confirmed in that faith by merely anyone
but by the first of His Apostles by calling - through second or third in rank - the most
gentle Saint Andrew, the Blessed Peter's brother, and desired him to keep them under his
protection as their patron for ever.
The Most Holy Fathers your predecessors gave careful heed to
these things and bestowed many favors and numerous privileges on this same kingdom and
people, as being the special charge of the Blessed Peter's brother. Thus our nation under
their protection did indeed live in freedom and peace up to the time when that mighty
prince the King of the English, Edward, the father of the one who reigns today, when our
kingdom had no head and our people harbored no malice or treachery and were then unused to
wars or invasions, came in the guise of a friend and ally to harass them as an enemy. The
deeds of cruelty, massacre, violence, pillage, arson, imprisoning prelates, burning down
monasteries, robbing and killing monks and nuns, and yet other outrages without number
which he committed against our people, sparing neither age nor sex, religion nor rank, no
one could describe nor fully imagine unless he had seen them with his own eyes.
But from these countless evils we have been set free, by the help
of Him who though He afflicts yet heals and restores, by our most tireless Prince, King
and Lord, the Lord Robert. He, that his people and his heritage might be delivered out of
the hands of our enemies, met toil and fatigue, hunger and peril, like another Maccabaeus
or Joshua, and bore them cheerfully. Him, too, divine providence, his right of succession
according to our laws and customs which we shall maintain to the death, and the due
consent and assent of us all have made our Prince and King. To him, as to the man by whom
salvation has been wrought unto our people, we are bound both by law and by his merits
that our freedom may be still maintained, and by him, come what may, we mean to stand. Yet
if he should give up what he has begun, and agree to make us or our kingdom subject to the
King of England or the English, we should exert ourselves at once to drive him out as our
enemy and a subverter of his own rights and ours, and make some other man who was able to
defend us our King; for, as long as but a hundred of us remain alive, never will we on any
conditions be brought under English rule. It is in truth not for glory, nor riches, nor
honors that we are fighting, but for freedom - for that alone, which no honest man gives
up but with life itself. Therefore it is, Reverend Father and Lord, that we beseech your
Holiness with our most earnest prayers and suppliant hearts, inasmuch as you will in your
sincerity and goodness consider all this, that, since with Him Whose vice-regent on earth
you are there is neither weighing nor distinction of Jew and Greek, Scotsman or
Englishman, you will look with the eyes of a father on the troubles and privations brought
by the English upon us and upon the Church of God.
May it please you to admonish and exhort the King of the English,
who ought be satisfied with what belongs to him since England used once to be enough for
seven kings or more, to leave us Scots in peace, who live in this poor little Scotland,
beyond which there is no dwelling-place at all, and covet nothing but our own. We are
sincerely willing to do anything for him, having regard to our condition, that we can, to
win peace for ourselves.
This truly concerns you, Holy Father, since you see the savagery
of the heathen raging the Christians, as the sins of Christians have indeed deserved, and
the frontiers of Christendom being pressed inward every day; and how much it will tarnish
your holiness's memory if (which god forbid) the Church suffers eclipse or scandal in any
branch of it during your time, you must perceive. Then rouse the Christian princes who for
false reasons pretend that they cannot go to the help of the Holy Land because of wars
they have on hand with their neighbors. The real reason that prevents them is that in
making war on their smaller neighbors they find quicker profit and weaker resistance. But
how cheerfully our Lord the King and we too would go there if the King of the English
would leave us in peace. He from Whom nothing is hidden well knows; and we profess and
declare it to you as the Vicar of Christ and to all Christendom. But if your Holiness puts
too much faith in the tales the English tell and will not give sincere belief to all this,
nor refrain from favoring them to our prejudice, then the slaughter of bodies, the
perdition of souls, and all the other misfortunes that will follow, inflicted by them on
us and by us on them, will, we believe, be surely laid by the most High to your charge. To
conclude, we are and shall ever be, as far as duty calls us, ready to do your will in all
things, as obedient sons to you as His Vicar; and to Him as the Supreme King and Judge, we
commit the maintenance of our cause, casting our cares upon Him and firmly trusting that
He will inspire us with courage and bring our enemies to nought. May the Most High
preserve you to His Holy Church in holiness and health and grant you length of days. Given
at the monastery of Arbroath in Scotland on the sixth day of the month of April in the
year of grace thirteen hundred and twenty and the fifteenth year of the reign of our King
aforesaid."
THE PETITION OF RIGHT OF 1628
"On June 5, 1628, the House of Commons presented the most
extraordinary spectacle, perhaps in all of history. The famous Petition of Right had been
passed by both Houses, and the royal answer had just been received. Its tone was that of
gracious assent, but it omitted the necessary legal formalities, and the Commons well knew
what that meant. They were to be tricked with sweet words, and the petition was not to
acquire the force of a statute. How was it possible to deal with such a slippery creature?
There was but one way of saving the dignity of the throne without sacrificing the liberty
of the people, and that was to hold the king's ministers responsible to Parliament, in
anticipation of modern methods. It was accordingly proposed to impeach the Duke of
Buckingham before the House of Lords. The Speaker now 'brought an imperious message from
the king...warning them that he would not tolerate any aspersion upon his ministers.'
Nothing daunted by this, Sir John Eliot arose to lead the debate, when the Speaker called
him to order in view of the king's message. 'Amid a deadly stillness' Eliot sat down and
burst into tears. For a moment the House was overcome with despair.
Deprived of all constitutional methods of redress, they suddenly
saw yawning before them the direful alternative - slavery or civil war. Since the day of
Bosworth a hundred and fifty years had passed without fighting worthy of mention on
English soil, such an era of peace as had hardly ever before been seen on the earth; now
half the Nation was to be pitied against the other half, families were to be divided
against themselves, as in the dreadful days of the Roses, and with what consequences no
one could foresee. 'Let us sit in silence,' quoth Sir Dudley Digges, 'we are miserable, we
know not what to do!' Nay, cried Sir Nathaniel Rich, 'we must now speak, or forever hold
our peace.' Then did grim Mr. Prynne and Sir Edward Coke mingle their words with sobs,
while there were few dry eyes in the House. Presently they found their voices, and used
them in a way that rung from the startled king his formal assent to the Petition of Right.
Humbly show unto our Sovereign Lord the King, the Lords,
Spiritual and Temporal, and Commons in Parliament assembled, that whereas it is declared
and enacted by a statute made in the time of the reign of King Edward the First, commonly
called Statutum de tallagio non concedendo, that no tallage or aid shall be laid or levied
by the King of his heirs in this realm, without the good will and assent of the
Archbishops, Bishops, Earls, Barons, Knight, Burgesses, and other freemen of the
commonalty of this realm: and by authority of Parliament holden in the five and twentieth
year of the reign of King Edward the Third, it is declared and enacted, that from
thenceforth no person shall be compelled to make any loans to the King against his will,
because such loans were against reason and the franchise of the land; and by other laws of
this realm it is provided, that none should be charged by any charge or imposition, called
a Benevolence, nor by such like charge: by which, the statutes before-mentioned, and other
the good laws and statutes of this realm, your subjects have inherited this freedom, that
they should not be compelled to contribute to any tax, tallage, aid, or other like charge,
not set by common consent in Parliament ...'The Great Charter of the Liberties of
England,' it is declared and enacted, that no freeman may be taken or imprisoned or be
disseised of his freehold or liberties, or his free customs, or be outlawed or exiled, or
in any manner destroyed, but by the lawful judgment of his peers, or by the law of the
land.
And in the eight and twentieth year of the reign or King Edward
the Third, it was declared and enacted by authority of Parliament, that no man or what
estate or condition that he be, should be put out of his lands or tenements, nor taken,
nor imprisoned, nor disherited, nor put to death, without being brought to answer by due
process of law...And whereas of large great companies of soldiers and mariners have been
dispersed into divers countries of the realm, and the inhabitants against their wills have
been compelled to receive them into their houses, and there to suffer them to sojourn,
against the laws and customs of this realm, and to the great grievance and vexation of the
people.
And whereas also by authority of Parliament, in the 25th year of
the reign of King Edward the Third, it is declared and enacted, that no man shall be
forejudged or life or limb against the form of the Great Charter, and the law of the land;
and by the said Great Charter and other the laws and statutes of this your realm, no man
ought to be adjudged to death, but by the laws established in this your realm, either by
the customs of the same realm or by Acts of Parliament...They do therefore humbly pray
your Most Excellent Majesty, that no man hereafter be compelled to make or yield any gift,
loan, benevolence, tax, or such like charge, without common consent by Act of Parliament;
and that none be called to make answer, or take such oath, or to give attendance, or be
confined, or otherwise molested or disquieted concerning the same, or for refusal thereof;
and that no freeman, in any such manner as is before-mentioned, be imprisoned or detained;
and that your Majesty will be pleased to remove the said soldiers and mariners, and that
your people may not be so burdened in time to come; and that the aforesaid commissions for
proceeding by martial law, may be revoked and annulled; and that hereafter no commissions
of like nature may issue forth to any person or persons whatsoever, to be executed as
aforesaid, lest by colour of them any of your Majesty's subjects be destroyed or put to
death, contrary to the laws and franchise of the land.
All which they most humbly pray of your Most Excellent Majesty,
as their rights and liberties according to the laws and statutes of this realm: and that
your Majesty would also vouchsafe to declare, that the awards, doings, and proceedings to
the prejudice of your people, in any of the premises, shall not be drawn hereafter into
consequence or example: and that your Majesty would be also graciously pleased, for the
further comfort and safety of your people, to declare your royal will and pleasure, that
in the things aforesaid all your officers and ministers shall serve you, according to the
laws and statutes of this realm, as they tender the honour of your Majesty, and the
prosperity of this kingdom."
BILL OF RIGHTS OF 1689
"Whereas the lords spiritual and temporal and commons
assembled at Westminster lawfully, fully and freely representing all the estates of the
people of this realm, did upon the thirteenth day of February in the year of our Lord one
thousand six hundred eighty-eight, present unto Their Majesties, then called and known by
the names and style of William and Mary, prince and princess of Orange, being present in
their proper persons, a certain declaration in writing made by the said lords and commons
in the words following: 'Whereas the late king James the Second by the assistance of
divers evil counsellors, judges and ministers employed by him did endeavour to subvert and
extirpate the Protestant religion and the laws and liberties of this kingdom.
By assuming and exercising a power of dispensing with and
suspending of laws, and the execution of laws, without consent of parliament. By
committing and prosecuting divers worthy prelates for humbly petitioning to be excused
from concurring to the said assumed power.
By issuing and causing to be executed a commission under the
great seal for erecting a court, called the court of commissioners for ecclesiastical
causes. By levying money for and to the use of the crown, by pretence of prerogative, for
other time and in other manner than the same was granted by parliament.
By raising and keeping a standing army within this kingdom in
time of peace, without consent of parliament, and quartering of soldiers contrary to law.
By causing several good subjects being Protestants to be disarmed at the same time when
papists were both armed and employed, contrary to law. By violating the freedom of
election of members to serve in parliament.
By prosecutions in the court of King's bench for matters and
causes cognizable only in parliament, and by divers other arbitrary and illegal courses.
And whereas of late years partial, corrupt and unqualified persons have been returned and
served on juries in trials, and particularly divers jurors in trials for high treason,
which were not freeholders.
And excessive bail hath been required of persons committed in
criminal cases, to elude the benefit of the laws made for the liberty of the subjects.
And excessive fines have been imposed.
And illegal and cruel punishments have been inflicted.
And several grants and promises made of fines and forfeitures
before any conviction or judgment against the persons upon whom the same were to be
levied.
All which are utterly and directly contrary to the known laws and
statutes and freedom of this realm...
And thereupon the said lords spiritual and temporal and commons
pursuant to their respective letters and elections being now assembled in a full and free
representative of this nation, taking into their most serious consideration the best means
for attaining the ends aforesaid, do in the first place (as their ancestors in like case
have usually done) for the vindicating and asserting their ancient rights and liberties,
declare:
That the pretended power of suspending of laws or the execution
of laws by regal authority without consent of parliament is illegal.
That the pretended power of dispensing with laws or the execution
of laws by regal authority as it hath been assumed and exercised of late is illegal.
That the commission for erecting the late court of commissioners
for ecclesiastical causes and all other commissions and courts of like nature are illegal
and pernicious.
That the levying money for or to the use of the crown by pretence
of prerogative without grant of parliament for a longer time or in other manner than the
same is or shall be granted is illegal.
That it is the right of the subjects to petition the king and all
commitments and prosecutions for such petitioning are illegal. That the raising or keeping
a standing army within the kingdom in time of peace unless it be with consent of
parliament is against law.
That the subjects which are Protestants may have arms for their
defence suitable to their conditions and as allowed by law.
That election of members of parliament ought to be free.
That the freedom of speech and debates or proceedings in
parliament ought not to be impeached or questioned in any court or place out of
parliament.
That excessive bail ought not to be required nor excessive fines
imposed nor cruel and unusual punishments inflicted.
That jurors ought to be duly impanelled and returned and jurors
which pass upon men in trials for high treason ought to be freeholders. That all grants
and promises of fines and forfeitures of particular persons before conviction are illegal
and void. And that for redress of all grievances and for the amending, strengthening and
preserving of the laws parliaments ought to be held frequently. And they do claim, demand
and insist upon all and singular the premises as their undoubted rights and liberties and
that no declarations, judgments, doings or proceedings to the prejudice of the people in
any of the said premises ought in any wise to be drawn hereafter into consequence or
example."
Sir William Blackstone (1723-1780), the famous English authority on jurisprudence, gives
the following definition of Divine Law as it applies to human or man- made laws:
"Disobedience to any one of the Divine Commandments throws the whole structure of
national life out of harmony with universal law."
He also said:
"On account of the blindness and imperfection of human reasoning, God has given a
Divine and direct revelation of His natural laws...to be found in the Scriptures THESE
LAWS ARE SUPERIOR IN OBLIGATION and NO HUMAN LAWS HAVE ANY VALIDITY IF CONTRARY TO GOD'S
LAWS."
One thing students of history seem to overlook is that American Law is the product of
American origin, which in turn was based upon the Laws of God as handed down in the Holy
Scriptures. Some American common law was, without a doubt, adapted from the common law of
England, but most of the common law was developed in the United States where the custom of
the Anglo- Saxon, Germanic, Scandinavian, Celtic and kindred peoples through their customs
handed down through the centuries, established by their citizen juries which adhering to
the Christian Bible for their guide, for both Federal and State Governments.
"The distinguished commentator on the laws of England informs us, that upon the
foundations of the law of nature and the law of revelation, all human law depends, 1
Blackstone Commentaries 42. The municipal law looks to something more than merely the
protection of lives, the liberty, and the property of our people. Regarding Christianity
as part of the law of the land, it respects and protects its institutions; and assumes
likewise to regulate the public morals and decency of the community."
America, in the very beginning, as we have previously shown, established its national
character under the various formation documents, as listed before, upon Christian
principles and became known as a CHRISTIAN NATION!
"It is conceded that this inhibition apples exclusively to the state. But that term
presents a complex idea. A state is a sort of trinity; it exists, acts, and speaks in
three capacities: legislative, executive, and judicial. What is forbidden to it in each
and all. It may not infringe this article by legislation, but it may equally do so by its
courts or its executive authorities."
And the court system of the United States were obliged to follow the Christian doctrine in
all of its courts' decisions.
"No position can be more clear than that all the federal judges are bound by the
solemn obligation of religion to regulate their decisions agreeably to the Constitution of
the United States, and that it is the standard of their determination in all cases that
come before them."
The Constitution of the United States of America followed, almost exactly, the republican
form of government handed down from the mount to Moses at Mt. Siani when God took Israel
for his wife. Hence the name "Israel" which means ruling with God.
"The Constitution emanated from the people, and was not the
act of sovereign and independent states. The convention which framed the Constitution was
indeed elected by the state legislatures. But the instrument, when it came from their
hands, was a mere proposal, without obligation, or pretensions to it. It was reported to
the then existing Congress of the United States, with a request that it might 'be
submitted to a convention of delegates, chosen in each state by the people thereof, under
the recommendation of its legislature, for their assent and ratification.'
This mode of the proceeding was adopted; and by the convention,
by Congress, and by the state legislatures, the instrument was submitted to the people .
They acted upon it in the only manner in which they can act safely, effectively, and
wisely, on such a subject, by assembling in convention. From these conventions the
Constitution derives its whole authority. The government proceeds directly from the
people; is 'ordained and established' in the name of the people; and is declared to be
ordained, 'in order to form a more perfect union, establish justice, insure domestic
tranquility, and secure the blessing of liberty to themselves and to their posterity.' The
assent of the states, in their sovereign capacity, is implied in calling a convention, and
thus submitting that instrument to the people [Just as Moses did in Exodus 19]. But the
people were at perfect liberty to accept or reject it; and their act was final. It
required not the affirmation of, and could not be negatived by, the state governments [a
shadow of which the elders of Israel represented]. The Constitution, when thus adopted,
was of complete obligation, and bound the state sovereignties."
One other point we would like to make is that the states, when they joined the union, they
were no longer considered separate nations in their own right. Some of their power was, by
the mandate of the people, transferred to the Federal Government in order that a single
government could come into being.
"The Constitution of the United States was ordained and
established not by the states in their sovereign capacities, but emphatically, as the
preamble of the Constitution declares, by 'the people of the United States.'
There can be no doubt that it was competent to the people to
invest the general government with all the powers which they might deem proper and
necessary; to extend or restrain these powers according to their own good pleasure, and to
give them a paramount and supreme authority.
As little doubt can there be that the people had a right to
prohibit to the states the exercise of any powers which were, in their judgment,
incompatible with the objects of the general compact; to make the powers of the state
governments, in given cases, subordinate to those of the nation, or to reserve to
themselves those sovereign authorities which they might not choose to delegate to either.
The Constitution was not, therefore, necessarily carved out of existing state
sovereignties, nor a surrender of powers already existing in state institutions, for the
powers of the states depend on their own constitutions; and the people of every state had
the right to modify and restrain them, according to their own views of policy or
principle. On the other hand, it is perfectly clear that the sovereign powers vested in
the state governments, by their respective constitutions, remained unaltered and
unimpaired, except so far as they were granted to the government of the United
States."
"Here we see the people acting as sovereigns of the whole
country; and in the language of sovereignty, establishing a constitution by which it was
their will that the state governments should be bound, and to which the state
constitutions should be made to conform. Every state constitution is a compact made by and
between the citizens of a state to govern themselves in a certain manner; and the
Constitution of the United States is likewise a compact made by the people of the United
States to govern themselves as to general objects, in a certain manner."
CHRISTIAN HOLIDAYS
Christianity can be seen in the holidays the American people celebrate.
PALM SUNDAY: It is observed the Sunday before Easter to commemorate the entry
of Jesus into Jerusalem.
FEAST OF UNLEAVENED BREAD: Commonly known as the First Day of Passover which
commemorates the deliverance of our Israel People [The
Anglo-Saxon, Germanic, Scandinavian, Celtic and Kindred people] from Egyptian bondage.
PASSOVER: One of the most sacred events to be observed by the ancient
Israelites and today's Christians.
GOOD FRIDAY: It is observed as the day of Crucifixion [Which actually was on
Wednesday] of the Lord Jesus Christ.
EASTER SUNDAY: It is observed in all Christian Churches and is celebrated on
the first Sunday after the full moon which occurs on or next after
March 2 and is therefore celebrated between March 22 and April 25 inclusive.
ASCENSION DAY: Observed on May 15, as the day Jesus Ascended into heaven in
the presence of His Apostles 40 days after the Resurrection of
Christ.
PENTECOST: This day is celebrated as the day the Holy Ghost descended upon
the Apostles 50 days after the Resurrection of the Lord Jesus Christ.
THANKSGIVING: Observed nationally on the fourth Thursday in November by Act
of Congress. Most Americans believe that the holiday dates back to
the day of thanks ordered by Governor Bradford of Plymouth Colony in New England in 1621,
but scholars point out that the day of thanks
stem from ancient Israel and is the day of First Fruits.
CHRISTMAS: Observed as the anniversary of the birth of Jesus Christ our Lord
and Savior.
"Separation of church and state" is a non-constitutional battle-cry in the war
against Christianity. It is used to frighten Godly Americans out of the polls, out of
government, and back to the pews. The cry of "Separation of church and state" is
a blatant distortion of the intent of the framers of the First Amendment.
Are the wicked afraid Christianity and government are somehow going to unite in the
future? NO! They are fearful that the American People will become aware, Christianity and
government are ALREADY united here in America. And it is THAT CONNECTION between
Christianity and government that must be destroyed if the enemies of Christ, Christianity
and America are to take absolute control over America and its Israel People [And I don't
mean the Jews: WHOM CHRIST CALLED HIS ENEMIES]!
To sever the connection between Christianity and government, they have to separate us from
the knowledge of our Christian history and heritage. They must keep us ignorant of the
truth that the American Government was Christian from its very beginning. Most patriots
realize the Communist left-wing and the Jewish anti-Christs wish to destroy Christianity.
Marx, Lenin, Stalin and all the other Communist leaders have made that very plain in a
thousand different ways.
Well, if it is Christianity they are against, then why don't they just try to change our
religion? The answer is obvious; they do, but they also realize the Christian religion
could not be destroy until the American Government can be stopped from upholding and
protecting it. It is not an accident that an Alexander the Great or a Napoleon has never
gone forth from our shores in wars of aggression to fasten the chains of military
despotism upon the people of other lands. Because the Constitution protects the liberties
of our own people against all ambitious rulers; and no dictator can terrorize other
peoples until he had first tyrannized over his own people.
All wars against the liberty of others are fought by men who have lost their own liberty.
That is a law of nature, a law of compensation. And in providing that our own people
should forever be free, the Constitution went a long way toward insuring the freedom of
other peoples from the encroachment at the hands of American Presidents. Liberty comes
from God and was incorporated into the Constitution in affirmation of Leviticus 25:10:
"...and proclaim liberty throughout all the land unto all the inhabitants
thereof..."
The Founding Fathers wrote into the Constitution a philosophy of peace and international
relations which few American people have come to understand because of the rewriting of
the history books. They were, in truth, at least 500 years ahead of their time. They
enunciated the great American principle, which we are just beginning to appreciate, that
we should defend our nation against invasion by not engaging in wars of aggression abroad.
MILITARY
The constitution of ancient Israel did not provide for a standing army, but it was to have
a militia as well as a national guard. No aggressive wars were to be allowed.
They could not be involved in an aggressive war in a foreign country, because, all the men
were to go the capital three times each year. They provided in the Constitution that the
liberties of Americans should never be sacrificed on the altar of any cause except that of
preserving American liberty. They further provided that no single American citizen should
be sacrificed to promote the militaristic ambitions of an administration bent on conquest
abroad:
"The privilege of the writ of habeas corpus shall not be suspended, unless when in
cases of rebellion or invasion the public safety may require it."
In the Milligan case, the Supreme Court held that all the Constitutional "securities
for personal liberty" are equally safeguarded against seizure or sacrifice in the
furtherance of militaristic ends. The Constitution wisely does not forbid Congress from
declaring war against foreign nations or sending our soldiers abroad in defense of the
United States. No government can enjoy the respect of nations without this right. But it
does forbid the scrapping of our liberties in the advancement of any war aiming at
aggression. And the Constitution defines wars of aggression in a way which all can
understand.
The framers of the Constitution were well acquainted with the device of dictators whereby
they embroil their people in an offensive war, and then call it a "defensive"
war and use it as an excuse to sweep away the people's liberties. Hence, they provided in
the Constitution that only actual invasion can warrant the abridgment of our liberties;
the placing of our people under martial law.
In the Milligan case the Court said:
"Martial rule cannot arise from a threatened invasion. The necessity must be actual
and present; the invasion real, such as effectually closes the courts and deposes the
civil administration."
The Court went further and said that martial rule could only apply to the "theater of
active military operations, where war really prevails." Hence, during the Civil War,
the Court held that martial law could not be established in Indiana, merely because there
was insurrection in neighboring states:
"It follows, from what has been said on this subject, that there are occasions when
martial rule can be properly applied. If, in foreign invasion or civil war, the courts are
actually closed, and it is impossible to administer criminal justice according to law,
then, on the theater of active military operations, where war really prevails, there is a
necessity to furnish a substitute for the civil authority, thus overthrown, to preserve
the safety of the army and society; and as no power is left but the military, it is
allowed to govern by martial rule until the laws can have their free course."
It is a political reality, that no government ever did injustice abroad before it first
did injustice at home. Christ taught that peace and justice among nations could only come
through the salvation of individual souls, the regeneration of individual heart. The
Constitution of the United States recognizes His Divine Principle that peace cannot
prevail throughout the world unless it first prevails in the individual heart and will of
man: it recognizes that a government cannot be free unless its citizens are free; that the
liberty of peoples is based upon the liberty of individuals; that the destruction of the
liberty of peoples issues from the destruction of the liberty of individuals. To safeguard
those rights and liberties "which grow out of the essential nature of all free
government," to prohibit assaults upon liberty sanctioned by even a majority, the
Constitution made the cause of peace and liberty paramount to the ambitions of any class,
however numerous, as well as of any individual, within the nation.
Most of the republics of the world have fallen, most of the dictators of the world have
risen to power, because clever demagogues have been able to delude and mislead a nominal
majority into standing still while the shackles of slavery were riveted upon them and they
were marched off to war to fasten shackles upon other peoples.
The Constitution guarded against this: it made human life and liberty sacred, inviolate;
it placed life and liberty upon twin pedestals, beyond the power of any governing group to
touch or tamper with. In so doing it showed the way to peace; it built a wall against
militarism, exemplifying the way to end that mass destruction of life and liberty known as
war. The original plan to destroy the Christian religion has been going on for almost 2000
years but it really went into high gear in the twenties when anti-Christ
"sophisticated," subversive professors in our schools of higher learning began
teaching, in earnest: "The Bible deserves no reverence; the Ten Commandments no
obedience except in so far as they conform to 'modern science.'" In conjunction with
this they also taught:
"The Constitution deserves no respect, and no obedience, except in so far as it
conforms to modern theories of, and experiments in, government."
The present day assault on the Constitution is the natural and inevitable upshot of the
concerted attack on the Bible and the Ten commandments launched so many years ago. Those
who think we have outgrown the teachings of the Bible would not be consistent without
holding that we have also outgrown a Constitution founded upon them.
Our Founding Fathers believed that in the teachings of Jesus they found the Absolute and
Eternal Moral Principles upon which all good government must be based. The Constitution
recognizes the validity of the Declaration of Independence. And the Declaration of
Independence recognized the supreme validity of Christ's teachings when it declared that
"all men are created equal." Which was recognition of the supreme validity of
Christ's teachings of the Fatherhood of God when it declared that all men are equally
"endowed by their Creator with certain inalienable rights" including "life,
liberty, and the pursuit of happiness."
Christ taught that the Will of His Father in heaven was a Higher Law than that made by
man; than that ordained by the majority; and that if the law of man transgressed this
Higher Law of God, the law of man MUST be set aside and disregarded. Christ denied the
so-called "modern" theory that "the majority has a right to do anything it
wishes to." He upheld the doctrine, which was enshrined in the Constitution, that the
individual has "inalienable rights" which no majority has a right to take from
him.
The United States is the only nation on earth which has a Constitution which protects
every individual against offense committed by men wielding the strong arm of government.
The mere fact that the government itself has embarked upon a great experiment to insure
"the greatest good to the greatest number," but that does not excuse an offense
done to one single individual; does not justify invasion of the rights of that individual.
Under the "Original" American Constitution, Christ's teachings were upheld and
every home and person and every child were safe and sacred. Even Congress itself was
powerless to commit an offense against them, because the Constitution protected each
individual form taking his "inalienable rights" of "life, liberty and the
pursuit of happiness."
The Declaration of Independence and the Constitution recognized that the "laws of
nature and of nature's God" entitled men to those certain inalienable rights and the
Constitution provided that when man-made laws crossed the "laws of nature and of
nature's God" in such way as to deprive an individual of his God-given rights, then
those man-made laws MUST be set aside; declared invalid. The Supreme Court was established
as an instrument to enforce that principle under which the Court was to function as
protection against the will of the majority should Congress attempt to abolish entirely,
the individual rights guaranteed by the "laws of nature."
Chrysostom said, "The laws of nature are the will of God." Christ said that we
should be obedient first to the Will of God; that His Laws were superior to all others.
Which principle was upheld by the "Original" Constitution of the United States.
Much is being said on television today, about our Constitution, much of which is false.
Just one of the many false ideas being presented to Americans and to our children I will
endeavor to explain so that you may understand the true greatness of our Founding Fathers.
Thomas Jefferson observed we "are endowed by our Creator with certain unalienable
Rights, that among these are Life, Liberty and the Pursuit of Happiness." I contend
that there is not one in ten-thousands of Americans who has the faintest idea what
Jefferson was saying!
THE SABBATH
For many years most States had laws called Blue Laws. Which forbade most from doing
business on Sundays, but few Americans ever really knew why.
The answer is found in part:
"Remember the sabbath day, to keep it holy. Six days shalt thou labour, and do all
thy work: But the seventh day is the sabbath of the Lord thy God: in it thou shalt not do
any work, thou, nor thy son, nor thy daughter, thy manservant, nor thy maidservant, nor
thy cattle, nor thy stranger that is within thy gates." ; "Wherefore the
children of Israel shall keep the sabbath, to observe the sabbath throughout their
generations, for a perpetual covenant."
THE WEEKLY SABBATH
When the Israelites of old were in Egyptian bondage, God Almighty told the prophet Moses
to have the Israelites kill their passover lambs at a specific time on a particular day.
Besides the witness of Moses, what other Biblical character could provide an absolutely
factual testimony as to that exact day and hour?
Now consider this: A very special guest is coming to your home for dinner. You have
decided to serve a whole roasted lamb. To be assured that the lamb will be fresh, you have
decided not to have it killed until the last minute. At what time should you have the lamb
killed so that you can serve your special dinner guest the roast lamb at 6 p.m.? The
answers to these questions are found in the Holy Writ and are critical elements in
determining which day of the week is the Sabbath and at what time of day the Sabbath
begins.
Part One: From When to When?
"Six days may work be done; but in the seventh is the Sabbath of rest, holy to the
Lord: whosoever doeth any work in the Sabbath day, he shall surely be put to death. It is
a sign between me and the children of Israel for ever: for in six days the Lord made
heaven and earth, and on the seventh day he rested, and was refreshed."
The purpose of Part I of this study is to establish solely from the Holy Bible - which we
believe to be the inspired Word of God - the time of day for the beginning and ending of
each weekly Sabbath.
Part II will deal with which day of the week is the Sabbath.
Part III will answer some potential objections to these conclusions. The Holy Bible gives
us many examples and warnings that we are to follow and apply in our lives today.
In Matthew 15:9 - Christ told us: "...in vain do they worship me, teachings for
doctrines the commandments of men."
In Matthew 15:1-9 - Christ calls the Pharisees hypocrites. In verse 6 he tells them that
they have, "...made the commandments of God of none effect by your tradition."
{which are the traditions of men}.
In Titus 1:10-16 - The Apostle Paul tells that there are: "...deceivers, specially of
the circumcision: whose mouths must be stopped..."
Paul went on to tell us in verse 14 not to listen to or follow: "...Jewish fables,
and COMMANDMENTS OF MEN, that turn from the truth..."
Those same teachings of "Phariseeism" which Christ and Paul warned us about are
being taught today by the "deceivers of the circumcision" who worship in
"synagogues" and teach the "traditions of men" and call those
traditions "the commandments of God." Make no mistake about it those deceivers
are spreading their "Jewish fables" and are "turning from the truth"
millions of people in regards to the true Sabbath of Scripture and are causing people to
follow their "Jewish traditions," thereby profaning God's true and holy Sabbath.
In this study we will learn from the Scripture when God's true weekly Sabbath begins and
ends.
DEFINITIONS
To start this portion of the study, we must first define the meanings of words and of the
idioms and expressions used by the people in Bible times, not in todays language. We must
also learn of the warnings of the Scripture which applied to the people in those days as
well as to now, so that we will be able to properly understand what we are being told in
the Bible.
DAY: First let us establish what is meant by the word
"day." There are two primary periods of time that are called "day."
There is the 24 hour period
of time
that it takes for the earth to make one complete rotation of the sun. "And the
evening and the morning were the fourth day." Notice that the
evening comes first,
and morning came second. This is consistent throughout all the Genesis One accounts.
Secondly, there is that period of time when the sun lights any given face of the earth,
which we call daytime. "Jesus answered, are there not twelve hours in a day?"
"...as Jonas was three days and three nights in the whale's belly; so shall the Son
of man be three days and three nights in the heart of the earth."
In these passages, Christ is clarifying the fact that there are two separate and distinct
periods of a 24 hour day; light, which is called "day" and "darkness,"
which is called "night."
EVENING AND MORNING: There are two other periods of time in a 24
hour day whose duration never changes; they always remain a 12 hour
period. These 12 hour periods are called "evening" and "morning." The
Bible tells us: "The evening and the morning were the fifth day."
"Evening" is the 12 hour period that starts when the sun is at its highest
point, which is called the "apex" or "meridian." Colloquially,
people often say "high noon" or "12 o'clock noon." Immediately after
that point, the sun starts its decline or descent (which in the
Scripture is called "the going down of the sun") and ends 12 hours later at the
time that we call "midnight."
"Morning" is the corresponding 12 hour period that starts at 12 o'clock midnight
and ends at 12 o'clock noon; i.e., when the sun again reaches its meridian.
Therefore the 12 hour period that is called "evening" is referred to as
"p.m." which means "post meridiem" (afternoon) and the 12 hour period
that is called "morning" is referred to as "a.m." which means
"ante meridiem" (before noon).
Webster's 1828 Dictionary defines the following:
"even" (as a noun): "1). The decline of the sun...";
"decline" (verb intransitive): "To lean downward; to bring down; 2). To
bend to one side; to move from a fixed point or right line."
Here we see Webster defining "even" as "the decline of the sun:" the
time when it moves from a fixed point directly perpendicular to the earth, which is called
a "right line" or "right angle" and "bends down" toward the
earth.
Webster's 1828 Dictionary defines: "even" (the adverb): 2). "noting
equality or sameness of time..."
Here we see an "equal" period of time before and after "even." When
the sun is at its apex, which is at 12:00 o'clock noon, the daylight portion of a day is
divided into two "even" parts. The time from sunrise to noon is equal to the
time from noon to sunset. We hear the following expressions almost daily:
"At 2 o'clock this morning, I heard a strange noise outside, so I got out of bed to
see what it was."
"Wake me at 3:30 in the morning so we can get an early start on our trip."
"The next time my son stays out until 1:00 in the morning, he will be punished
severely."
"Will you meet me at 11 o'clock this morning for an early lunch?"
"Please wake me at 6:30 this morning so I won't be late for work."
"Will you pick me up at 5 o'clock this evening (or this afternoon)?"
"Dinner will be served at 7:30 this evening; don't be late."
Today, in the Deep South of the United States many people still say: "Have a good
evening" any time they greet someone after 12 noon. To properly understand the Bible,
it is vitally important that we recognize that the periods of time that are called
"day," "night," "evening," and "morning" are four
separate and distinct periods of time, and that they refer to four separate portion of the
24 hour day.
To properly understand the Bible, it is even more important that we understand and realize
that the 24 hour period that we call a "day" starts at 12 o'clock noon, and that
the daylight portion that is called "day," (as opposed to "night")
starts at sunrise. You will find there is a DAY portion of EVENING and a NIGHT portion of
EVENING; also that there is a NIGHT portion of MORNING and a DAY portion of MORNING which
are separate and distinct portions of the 24 hour day. Notice in that "Day"
(which is referring to the daylight portion) is divided into two equal or even parts (high
noon) and this division is often referred to in the Bible as "even." We see this
in the following verses:
"...David said unto Jonathan...let me go that I may hide myself in the field unto the
third day AT EVEN...It came to pass IN THE MORNING, that Jonathan went out into the field
at the time appointed with David..." ; "...the children of Israel...kept the
passover...AT EVEN..." [even: #6153] ; "...Israel shall kill [the passover] IN
THE EVENING." [evening: #6153]. ; "...there thou salt sacrifice the passover AT
EVEN, at the going down of the sun..."
Equinox: Day and night are of equal length. March 21st & September 23rd - Webster's
1828 Dictionary. John 11:9 - Christ said:
"Are there not twelve hours in the day?"
Matthew 12:40 - Christ said:
"For as Jonahs was three days and three nights in the whale's belly; so shall the son
of man be three days and nights in the heart of the earth."
We see by the Scriptural verses that Jesus Christ recognized that there is night and that
there is day, and also that there are twelve hours in the day. If there are 24 hours from
sun to sun and if there are, as Christ said,
"...twelve hours in the day" then we know that there are also twelve hours in
the night. Technically, this only applies to two days out of the year: spring and fall
'equinox,' when day and night are of equal duration. We all know that in the summer the
daylight portion is much longer than the dark portion of the day and that the reverse is
the case in the winter."
We see also in John 11:9 and Matthew 12:40 that Christ was saying that He was going to
spend three days of 12 hours each for a subtotal of 36 daylight hours in the grave and
three nights of 12 hours each for an additional 36 hours, not Friday night to Sunday
morning as most preachers teach from their pulpits.
"...in the morning, when it is day, we shall kill him." ; "...David said
unto Jonathan...Let me go that I may hide myself in the field unto the third day at
even." ; "Wherefore now rise up early in the morning with thy master's servants
that are come with thee; and as soon as ye be up early in the morning, and have light,
depart." ; "...the priests...killed the passover...and they roasted the passover
with fire according to the ordinance...and divided them speedily among all the
people...the priests... were busied in offering of burnt offerings and the fat until
night...so all the service of the Lord was prepared the same day..." ; "...in
the morning, rising up a great while before day, [Jesus] went out, and departed into a
solitary place, and there prayed." ; "...as soon as the morning was light, the
men were sent away..." ; "...when the morning is light, they practice
[iniquity]..." ; "...they abused her all night until the morning: and when the
day began to spring [#5927; to ascend], they let her go."
Even and Evening: The reason that there is so much confusion about the words
"even" and "evening" as they are translated in the Bible is because
there are over 40 different Hebrew, Chaldee and Greek words which are all translated as
"even" or "evening," {six of which refer to a time of day} and some of
these words are translated as both "even" and "evening" which further
adds to the confusion. Therefore, we must look at the words "even" and
"evening" EACH AND EVERY TIME IT IS USED and then check the original word to see
what is meant and HOW IT APPLIES IN THE CONTEXT of that particular Scriptural passage.
Days: God gave us the lights of the heavens; the sun, moon and stars to help
us to determine seasons, DAYS and years. We are told in Genesis 1:14-19 that:
"...God said let there be lights in the firmament of heaven to divide the day from
the night; and let them be for signs, and for SEASONS, and for days, and years...and it
was so..."
In Psalms 104:19 we learn that God "...appointed the moon for seasons..."
Astronomers determine YEARS by the position of the stars; SEASONS by the moon; and DAYS by
the sun.
God gave us the sun to tell us when our 24 hour day is to begin. Astronomers around the
world use the sun, when it is at its "meridian," which is what we call
"high noon," to set the clocks of the world. Why do they always use high noon?
Because high noon never changes. No matter where you are on the face of the earth, on any
and every day of the year, the sun always reaches its "apex" or
"meridian" at 12 o'clock noon. Everyone can tell when it is noon by observing
the sun, and thereby knowing that a new 24 hour day has begun.
Even: The going down of the sun: In figure #4 you will see that at sunrise the sun is in
its ascent or is climbing. It continues to climb until it reaches high noon, at which time
it starts its descent or starts going down. This descent is often referred to in Scripture
as "even, the going down of the sun." Examples are:
"...there thou shalt sacrifice the passover at EVEN, AT THE GOING DOWN OF THE
SUN." ; "...[King Ahab] died at EVEN...and there went out a proclamation...about
THE GOING DOWN OF THE SUN..." ; "...the king of Israel stayed...up in his
chariot...until EVEN; and about the time of the SUN GOING DOWN he died."
The sun starts going down at about 12:01, just after noon. More examples are as follows:
"And when the sun WAS GOING DOWN, a deep sleep fell upon Abram; and, lo, an horror of
great darkness fell upon him." ; "...there thou shalt sacrifice the passover AT
EVEN [Strong's 6153], at the GOING DOWN OF THE SUN...and thou shalt turn in the morning,
and go unto thy tents." ; "...it came to pass, that when the gates of Jerusalem
began to be dark [i.e., shaded] before [i.e., at the front of] the Sabbath, I commanded
that the gates should be shut, and charged that they should not be opened till after the
Sabbath..." ; "And it came to pass at the time of THE GOING DOWN OF THE
SUN...they took off of the trees... And that day Joshua took Makkedah, and smote it with
the edge of the sword, and the king...he...destroyed..."
We have often been misled into thinking that the "going down of the sun" ALWAYS
means "sunset," because some Hebrew and Chaldee words that DO mean
"sunset" have been translated "going down of the sun." But in all the
above cited cases it is a different Hebrew word, and it means "noon." In the
Hebrew lexicon of Strong's Concordance under word #6153, "evening," we find:
"The Pharisees...and the Rabinists considered the time WHEN THE SUN BEGAN TO DESCEND
to be called first EVENING...and the second evening to be the real sunset..."
From this we can clearly see that the word "evening" can and is used to indicate
both high noon and also sunset.
Definition Conclusions: We now come to the point where we can capsulize our definitions.
DAY: A 24 hour period of time; also, sunrise to sunset.
1). A 24 hour period of time starting at 12
o'clock noon and ending at 12 o'clock noon the following day.
2). The daylight portion of a 24 hour period of
time starting at sunrise and ending at sunset.
NIGHT: Sunset to sunrise. The dark portion of a 24 hour period of time
starting at sunset and ending at sunrise.
EVENING: 12:00 noon to 12:00 midnight. The ever constant 12 hour period of
time that starts at 12 o'clock noon (the beginning of the Biblical day)
and ends at 12 o'clock midnight.
MORNING: 12:00 midnight to 12:00 noon. The ever constant 12 hour period of
time that starts at 12 o'clock midnight and ends at 12 o'clock noon (the
end
of the Biblical day).
EVEN: 12:00 noon. The point in time of a 24 hour day when the daylight
portion of that day is divided into two equal or even parts: thus the term
"even." This equal division always occurs at 12:00 noon at any place
throughout the world.
THE GOING DOWN OF THE SUN: At even; 12 o'clock noon. The point in time when
the sun reaches its apex, its highest point; immediately after which it then starts its
decline or when it starts going down.
Warnings for Christians against the Doctrine of men and Jewish Fables: It is a good thing
that Christ, Paul and the other apostles warned us about wolves in sheep's clothing and
FALSE TEACHERS that would come into our midst and even spring up from our own church
bodies to lead people away from the truth. There is a group of people today who follow the
doctrine of teachings of men; people who practice the teachings of ancient Phariseeism,
the Phariseeism that Christ accused the Scribes and Pharisees of his day of practicing:
"...[Jesus] answered and said unto [the Scribes and Pharisees], why do ye also
transgress the commandments of God by your tradition?...Ye made the commandment of God of
none effect by your tradition...in vain they do worship me teaching for doctrines the
commandments of men."
This modern day PHARISEEISM is called "talmudism" because these people use the
TALMUD: the writings of those whom they call "the learned elders of Zion," as
their bible. The Talmud is the foundation of their Babylonian religion. These writings
called the Talmud are bound in approximately 63 volumes. In the book, The Pharisees,
written by Louis Finkelstein, the Provost and Solomon Schecter Professor of Theology at
the Jewish Theological Seminary of America, wrote in the Forward to his first edition on
page xxi:
"Phariseeism became Talmudism, then became Medieval Rabbinism, and Medieval Rabbinism
became modern Rabbinism. But throughout these changes of name...the spirit of the ancient
Pharisee survives unaltered. When the Jew... studies the Talmud, he is actually repeating
the arguments used in the Palestinian academies."
These modern day Pharisees, who follow the teachings of Talmudism, say that they are
"God's Chosen People." They call their religion "Judaism" and call
themselves "Jews" (Judahites), but they do lie and are of the "synagogue of
Satan" as Christ told John in the Book of Revelation:
"...I know the blasphemy of them which say they are Jews [Judahites], and are not,
but are the synagogue of Satan." ; "Behold, I will make them of the synagogue of
Satan, which say they are Jews [Judahites], and are not, but do lie; behold, I will make
them to come and worship before thy feet, and to know that I have loved thee."
These people who call themselves "God's Chosen People," but do lie, begin their
day at sundown and have deceived millions and millions of people in Christendom to follow
their traditions and "commandments of men." Christ warned us about these people
when He told us:
"...beware of the leaven [doctrine] of the Pharisees and of the Sadducees."
Christ also said of these people:
"...ye are of your father the devil...he...abode not in the truth, because there is
no truth in him."
The Apostle Paul warned us in Titus 1:14 not to give,
"...heed to Jewish fables and commandments of men, that turn from the truth."
Again Christ warned us:
"...they shall deceive the very elect."
Starting the weekly Sabbath at sundown is following a "Jewish fable," a
tradition of Judaism, which is taught in the Talmud, the bible of Judaism. This Jewish
fable has deceived millions of people and has led them away from the truth of God's true
Sabbath.
Confusion:
"...God is not the author of confusion..."
To say that the day begins at sundown is confusion. Consider the fact that no other day of
the week starts at sundown. Consider also that sundown changes daily at any given location
on earth. On some days of the year the sun rises very early and sets very late, making the
daylight hour as long as 16 to 23 hours. At other times of the year, the sun rises very
late and sets very early, making the daylight hours as short as one to eight hours. The
time of sunset is always changing. Not only is sunset changing daily but sunset can be at
a different time of the same day between communities as close as five to ten miles apart,
particularly in mountainous regions; thereby causing neighbors to start their days at
different times; this is certainly confusion. Attempts have been made to hide this
confusion by picking a time, such as 6 p.m. as the time to start the Sabbath, knowing full
well that time is not really sundown. This is just another one of those commandments of
men; the commandment of God is still being ignored.
In Revelation 18:4 we are told to come out of Babylon (which means "confusion").
When we use sunset (which is constantly changing) to determine when our day is to begin,
we find ourselves in confusion (Babylon). Isn't it wonderful that God gave us a time of
day that never changes which can be determined by everyone, even the uneducated? Yes, high
noon is always the same, because God gave us the sun to determine when our day is to begin
. A Look at Scripture: Now let us take a look at some Scriptural commands in regards to
observing certain days, commands given to us from God Himself.
In Deuteronomy 16:1-8 we are told when to kill the passover, how to cook it and when to
return home:
"...thou shalt sacrifice the passover at EVEN, AT THE GOING DOWN OF THE SUN...thou
shalt roast it...and thou shalt turn in the morning, and go unto thy tents."
In Exodus 12:1-51 we have the detailed account of the first passover and its detailed
instructions:
"...take...a lamb...without blemish, a male of the first year...from the sheep, or
from the goats...Israel shall kill it IN THE EVENING [Strong's #6153, this is the same
word translated 'even in Deuteronomy 16:6 above]... they shall eat the flesh in the night,
roast with fire...eat not of it raw, nor sodden at all with water, but roast with fire;
his head with his legs, and with the purtenance thereof. And ye shall let nothing of it
remain until the morning; and that which remaineth of it until the morning ye shall burn
with fire...in one house shall it be eaten: thou shalt no carry forth ought of the flesh
abroad out of the house; neither shall ye break a bone thereof."
Exodus 34:25 tells us:
"...neither shall the sacrifice of the feast of passover be left until the
morning."
We are also told in Exodus 12:29 that,
"...it came to pass, that at midnight the Lord smote all the firstborn in the
land."
In the above passages we can see that a fair amount of time will have elapsed from the
time of killing the passover at "even," at the going down of the sun, (12 Noon)
and the burning of the leftovers, which must be completed before midnight. Why must the
left-overs be burned before midnight? Because God had commanded them to return to their
tents "in the morning" (which commences at midnight. .
Midnight is the time when the Lord smote all the firstborn of Egypt. Israelites were to be
in their houses with the blood of the lamb smeared on the doorposts and lintel.
Let's take a look at what must be done and the approximate length of time it would take to
do it.
1). They must kill, skin and clean the lamb. (Estimate: one hour).
2). They must roast it until it is completely done, not raw. Today if you
roast a turkey that weighs 20 to 25 pounds in a modern oven, it will take
between six to eight hours to roast. We have no idea how much longer it took in their
ovens or fire pits. (Estimate: 6-8 hours).
3). They are not to eat it. (Estimate: 1/2-1 hour).
4). They are now to burn with fire everything that is left over. (Estimate:
1/2-1 hour). Total elapsed time: 8-11 hours. After looking at the things that are
required to observe the passover, it
becomes quite clear that it could not have been accomplished if it had been begun at
sundown.
The day before the Day of Atonement: In Leviticus 23:32 we are commanded:
"It shall be unto you a Sabbath of rest, and ye shall afflict your souls: in the
ninth day of the month AT EVEN, FROM EVEN UNTO EVEN, shall ye celebrate your
Sabbath."
In this passage, all three of the words that were translated as "even" are
Strong's #6153, the same as in Deut. 16:6, and means "noon."
At the time of Nehemiah: A few Israelites of old were carried off to Babylonian captivity,
and after 70 years God allowed about 50,000 of those who wanted to, to return to Jerusalem
to rebuild the walls and the city. After the walls were rebuilt, the Israelites started to
profane the Sabbath as their fathers had done before them. This was the main reason for
their captivity in the first place. The prophet Nehemiah became very angry when he learned
what the Israelites had been doing in his absence and he upbraided them severely, as
recorded in Nehemiah 13:15-22. In verse 19, we learn that:
"...it came to pass that when the gates of Jerusalem began to be dark [shaded] before
[at the front of] the Sabbath, I commanded that the gates should be shut, and charged that
they should not be opened till after the Sabbath."
In this passage the word that is translated "dark" is Strong's #6751. it is used
only twice in scripture, and it means "to shade." The main gate in Jerusalem
faces east, and just after the sun reached the apex (noon), a shadow was cast on the main
gate. It was at that time that Nehemiah ordered that the gates were to be shut to commence
the Sabbath.
Saul is King of Israel: During King Saul's reign over Israel, he became jealous of David
and sought ways to kill him. Saul's son, Jonathan, was David's faithful friend who warned
him of Saul's plans to kill David. In 1 Samuel 20:5 we learn;
"...David said unto Jonathan...let me go, that I may hide myself in the field unto
the third day at EVEN."
Later on in 1 Samuel 20:35, we find that Jonathan went out IN THE MORNING and met David at
the TIME APPOINTED, which was at noon, or "even."
"...it came to pass in THE MORNING, that Jonathan went out into the field at THE TIME
APPOINTED with David..."
In the first passages we see that David appointed a time to meet, which the Bible calls
"EVEN," on the third day. In the second passage we see that they met at the
"APPOINTED TIME" which was "even." When we look closely, we see that
Jonathan went out into the field in the "MORNING." That means he went out
sometime between "midnight" and "noon," and met him at the APPOINTED
TIME, which it now becomes obvious was noon or shortly thereafter.
Morning: In the gospel of Mark, chapter one, verse 35, we read that Christ got up "a
great while" BEFORE DAYLIGHT to pray, but it was already "morning" when he
got up:
"...IN THE MORNING, rising up a great while BEFORE DAY, he went out, and departed
into a solitary place, and there prayed."
Translators Inconsistent: The above example clearly illustrate that there are times, as
recorded in Scripture, when the words "even," "evening" and "the
going down of the sun" mean 12 noon. There are many other times when this is the
case. There are also numerous times that the same words (even, evening, going down of the
sun) do NOT mean 12 noon. Therefore, we must always, as we have stated before, check the
context of each passage where those words occur. We must not blindly assume that if it
means "noon" in one verse that it always means "noon," or if it means
"sunset," in a particular verse, that it always means "sunset." I
repeat: ALWAYS CHECK THE CONTEXT.
Secular History Findings: We found it quite interesting to learn that the secular world
also started and ended the day at 12 o'clock noon. In the third edition of Van Nostrand's
Scientific Encyclopedia we find (pp. 1691-1692) under the heading "Time," the
following:
"From the earliest recorded history the...sun has been adopted as the clock for
regulating human affairs, and the apparent [visible to the eye; obvious] solar day is the
interval of time between successive passages of the true sun across a local meridian. For
many centuries upper culmination, or apparent noon, marked the beginning of an apparent
day and local apparent time was the HOUR ANGEL of the true sun. In 1925, to bring the
apparent day into synchronism with that used in civil life, the beginning of the apparent
day was transferred to lower culmination, or midnight, and the local apparent time defined
as the hour angle of the true sun plus 12 hours...Prior to 1925 the mean solar day began
at upper culmination (mean noon) and the civil day began at midnight."
In the New English Dictionary under the word "day," we are told:
"The solar day is the fundamental unity of time...being determined by observations of
the sun [day], is taken to begin with the passage of the mean sun over the meridian...at
high noon...while the civil day begins at midnight."
In the United States Department of Agriculture book "A Walk Through Time," we
find:
"During Saxon times, simple sundial forms place above the doorways were used to
identify MIDDAY..."
This way the early Saxons - our Israelite ancestors, knew when to stat their day.
According to the archaeologists, the Umbri of Italy are the direct descendants of the
Israelites of Scripture. We found in the "Encyclopedia of English Law," under
the title "day," the following:
"...the Umbri in Italy began [the day] at midday...the Egyptians and Romans at
midnight..."
In the United States Constitution one will find under Article XX:
"Section 1. The terms of the President and Vice President shall end at NOON on the
20th day of January, and the terms of Senators and Representatives at NOON on the 3rd of
January..."
"Section 2. The Congress shall assemble at least once in every year, and such
meetings shall begin at NOON..."
Conclusion - Part I: After a thorough search of the Holy Scriptures and then checking
secular history to see what actually took place, we have come to the conclusion that the
"weekly Sabbath" of Scripture starts at 12 o'clock noon at the end of the sixth
day and continues until 12 o'clock noon at the end of the seventh day.
This changing of times is nothing but fulfillment of the prophecy of Daniel 7:25:
"...he [the fourth beast] shall wear out the saints of the Most High, and think to
change times and laws..."
Part II: The Weekly Sabbath - Which Day of the Week?
"...it shall come to pass, if thou shalt hearken diligently unto the voice of the
Lord thy God, to observe and to do all His commandments which I command thee this day,
that the Lord thy God will set thee on high above all nations of the earth: and all these
blessings shall come on thee, and overtake thee, if thou shalt hearken unto the voice of
the Lord thy god...the Lord shall establish thee an holy people unto himself, as he hath
sworn unto thee, if thou shalt keep the commandments of the Lord thy God, and walk in his
ways. And all the people of the earth shall see that thou art called by the name of the
Lord; and they shall be afraid of thee."
It is the purpose of Part II of this study to determine on which day of the week the
Sabbath begins. Since Scripture does not tell us directly which day is the Sabbath we must
look to prophecy and its fulfillment to determine the specific day that is the Sabbath
day.
Shortly before his death, Moses, the prophet of God, told the Israelites the blessings and
the curses that Almighty God had assigned to His people, the sons and daughters of
Jacob/Israel. You can read about them in Deuteronomy, chapters 28 through 34. There you
will learn to whom they apply, and in 28:46 you will learn how long those blessing and
curses will be in effect:
"...they shall be upon thee for a sign and a wonder, and upon thy seed for
ever."
You might be wondering at this point; what has all this to do with which day of the week
is the Sabbath. Our answer is "Everything!" As you read on, you will be seeing
the fulfillment of this prophecy right up to the present day. Moses made this prophecy
before the Israelites entered into Canaan land. As we read the books of Samuel, Kings,
Chronicles, Ezra and Nehemiah and all the other prophets, we find that whenever the
Israelites obeyed God's commandments, which includes keeping His Sabbath, that none of
their enemies could stand before them, and their prosperity was beyond comprehension to
the nations around them. The most famous account, of course, was that of King Solomon, of
whom it is written:
"...King Solomon exceeded all the kings of the earth for riches and wisdom. And all
the earth sought to Solomon, to hear his wisdom, which God had put in his heart."
As you read the history of Israel in the Bible, you will see that as long as Israel obeyed
God's laws, and kept His Sabbaths, they prospered; but when they disobeyed and violated
His Sabbaths and went a-whoring after other gods, then the curses of Deuteronomy 28 were
again showered upon them and they prospered. This was no accident, but only God fulfilling
His promises. This up and down, roller-coaster prosperity that followed the Israelites has
been going on now for over 3,000 years. This might seem like a long time, but when you
re-read the prophecy you will notice that the blessings and the curses will follow the
Israelites and be "...upon thy seed for ever."
Prophecy Fulfilled In America: Sometime around 1611 A.D., a group of Israelites left the
shores of Europe and headed west. Their written and expressed intentions and beliefs were
that they were the blood/genetic descendants of Jacob. Israel and that they were going to
the NEW CANAANLAND that God had told King David that He would ordain for them, a place
from which they would never have to move again.
"Moreover I [God] will appoint A PLACE FOR MY PEOPLE ISRAEL, and will plant them,
THAT THEY MAY DWELL IN A PLACE OF THEIR OWN, AND MOVE NO MORE; neither shall the children
of wickedness afflict them any more, as beforetime." ; "Also I [God] will ordain
A PLACE FOR MY PEOPLE ISRAEL, and will plant them, and THEY SHALL DWELL IN THEIR PLACE,
AND SHALL BE MOVED NO MORE: neither shall the children of wickedness waste them any more,
as at the beginning."
Can you not see, God told David, while he was in his home in Jerusalem, in the Promised
land that He [God] would move the Israelites to another place, which would be their home
forever. They arrived at a place they called "Plymouth," and there set up their
community; they covenanted together to abide by the laws of God. They kept His Sabbaths;
they punished or executed those persons who disobeyed God's laws. Other Israelites came
from all parts of Europe and from around the world: Anglo-Saxons, Germans, Scandinavians,
Celts and other kindred people WHO ARE THE BLOOD DESCENDANTS OF JACOB/ISRAEL TODAY.
They built the greatest nation on earth; in the history of the world; they prospered
beyond any nation in history. They were the most loved, respected and feared nation in the
world. Their might and power were unmatched throughout the world. Why? That question is
probably best answered by the statement of a French philosopher who came to America to
find out why America was so great. After searching out the country's industry, commerce,
agriculture, etc., yet he could not find the answer. The he visited America's churches and
across the land he heard ministers on every Sabbath preaching obedience to God's laws. He
returned to France and wrote:
"...America is great because America is good, but when America ceases to be good, she
will cease to be great..."
This is just another indication of the blessings of Deuteronomy 28 that God put upon the
"seed of Israel" according to His promise. The Sabbath Observed in America: For
centuries, until 1925, the United States and most of the rest of the world started and
ended their day at 12 noon. On Saturday at noon businesses closed, the post office shut
down, all government offices closed until Monday morning. This included the military.
The people stopped their work and began their Sabbath rest. They took their Saturday night
bath; they attended church services the following morning. After church services were over
and the Sabbath was at an end, they would go home or visit friends for their Sunday
dinner. After dinner they relaxed or played games or sports for their recreation
(re-creation and rejuvenation). They could also water and feed their animals without
breaking Gods Sabbath, thus bringing down the death penalty upon themselves.
This is how the weekly Sabbath was observed, in general, throughout the United States. It
was during this era - while the Israelites of this country were obeying God's laws and
keeping His Sabbaths - that our country was blessed and prospered to become the mighty
nation that it was - still another example of God keeping His promises of Deuteronomy 28.
The Curses: Just like their fathers of old, these modern Israelites just couldn't stand
all that prosperity; so, like their fathers of old, they started whoring after other gods;
the god of money, the god of materialism, the god of sex and fornication, the god of baby
sacrifice in the abrotitoriums, the god of sodomy and lesbianism - need I go on? Now, mind
you, it didn't all happen at once. No, it was very gradual and very subtle. Most preachers
today will tell you it was the work of the devil, but Scripture tells us it is the evil
lusts of our own hearts
It started out by ignoring some little laws. That didn't seem too bad, so a few more laws
were ignored. We changed the time of starting the day and gradually drifted away from
observing God's true Sabbath, and started profaning it by letting stores stay open on
Saturday afternoon. We stopped executing the death penalty for crimes worthy of death. We
then allowed businesses to stay open seven days a week, and we Christians patronized them.
We allowed freedom of choice for those who wished to kill their unborn babies. We accepted
the sodomite life style as an alternative in our government employees as well as in
private life. The alleged Christian churches condoned sodomy and they ordained sodomites
into the ministry.
Today, the highest office in the land, the presidency of the United States, is held by a
male who, along with his wife, promote this detestable, degenerate, abominable life style.
And what has happened to our nation's wealth, its might, respect, morals, etc.? They have
reached their lowest point in history, in direct proportion to our disobedience to God's
laws.
The worst part of it all is that we have professing Christians who have been deceived into
believing that God doesn't mind if we start His Sabbath on just any day of the week, or on
a Wednesday, or Friday night, or Sunday morning. they expect God to pour out His promised
blessings upon us. They just can't understand why God doesn't bless them as He did before.
Not Till We Obey: No, ladies and gentlemen, brothers and sisters in Christ, fellow
Israelites, don't expect our heavenly Father to honor His part of the covenant in regards
to His blessings, until we do our part by keeping His weekly Sabbath as we did in days
gone by: from 12 o'clock noon, the beginning of the seventh day; which we call Saturday
noon, 12 o'clock noon the following day, which we call Sunday noon. Then we need to study
God's laws diligently and see how there were very few laws that were done away with by
Christ's death (the blood ordinances and Levitical rituals, etc.). Then we must put those
laws into practice. Then, and only then, will God look upon our affliction, see that we
have repented, and start again to pour out His blessings upon us, and start to heal our
land as He promised in 2 Chronicles 7:14:
"If my people, which are called by my name, shall humble themselves, and pray, and
seek my face, and turn from their wicked ways; then will I hear from heaven, and will
forgive their sin, and will heal their land."
The Bottom Line: Most of you who have read this study:
1). Love and worship the only true God.
2). Don't have any idols you bow down to and worship.
3). You don't take God's name in vain.
4).
5). You honor your fathers and mothers.
6). You don't commit murder.
7). You don't commit adultery.
8). You don't steal.
9). You don't bear false witness against your neighbor.
10). You don't covet your neighbors wife or goods.
How about #4, the one that says "keep the Sabbath day to sanctify it, as the Lord thy
God hath commanded thee?" God set aside a specific 24 hour period each week, that He
wants us to set aside out of our work week to keep holy unto him. You now know that 12
o'clock noon is when God says we are to begin our 24 hour day. You now know that God's
weekly Sabbath begins at 12 o'clock noon on the day that we call Saturday, and it ends at
12 o'clock noon on the day that we call Sunday. The final question is, WILL YOU "keep
the Sabbath day to sanctify it, as the Lord thy God hath commanded thee?"
Part III: Yes, But What About...?
Right now, many of you may be saying:
"This all sounds pretty convincing, but I know of a passage or several passages that
appear to contradict the belief that the Bible Sabbath starts at 12 o'clock noon on
Saturday and ends at 12:00 o'clock noon on Sunday."
Matthew 28:1: One of the most common passages that seems to be contradictory is found in
the gospel of Matthew chapter 28, verse 1, which states:
"IN the end of the Sabbath, as it began to dawn TOWARD the first day of the week,
came Mary Magdalene and the other Mary to see the sepulchre."
Let us start with the very first word: "In." "In" is word #1722 in
Strong's Exhaustive Concordance, it is: "A primary preposition, denoting a fixed
position in time ..." This word (#1722 has been translated as 35 different words,
which means it can have many different meanings, depending on the context in which it is
being used. It has been translated as: "toward" and "before" on at
least four occasions. We believe that either "toward" or "before"
would have been a more correct translation because the context of the passage so
indicates. It says further on in this passage: "...As it began to dawn TOWARD the
first day of the week..." The word "toward" here very clearly tells us that
it was not yet the first day of the week, but that that time was soon coming. Consider
this: It is just beginning "to dawn;" it is "before" "the end of
the Sabbath."
The time of the year is shortly after the "spring Equinox" when daylight and
dark hours are nearly equal, therefore "dawn" is around 6:00 a.m. There are
still six more hours to go before 12:00 o'clock noon, (when the first day of the week will
begin). This is the hour that the two Marys went to Christ's sepulchre. The Sabbath has
nearly ended and the first day of the week is near. We believe this will clear up the
confusion brought about by the old English style of writing found in the King James Bible.
Exodus 16:19: In Exodus, chapter 16, we learn that God gives the Israelites
"manna" to take the place of grain for their main staple of food. Moses told the
people not to leave any of the "manna" till the morning. We find this in Exodus
16:19: "And Moses said, Let no man leave of it till morning." We learned in Part
I that morning begins at midnight, so we see here that Moses is telling the people not to
keep the manna overnight. Each morning they were to gather as much manna as they would
need to eat for their meals that day, but they were not to try to save any overnight,
except on the sixth day, when they were to gather twice as much, which was to last them
through the Sabbath, since there would be none to be gathered on the Sabbath. The day
starts as 12:00 noon. Midnight comes 12 hours later. Sunrise comes at about the 18th hour
of the 24 hour day. Noon comes at the 24th hour and another day begins.
When Moses told the Israelites to gather a double portion of manna on the sixth day, he
was referring to the 18th hour of the sixth day. This double portion would then provide
them with the anna that they would normally have gathered on the seventh day, around the
18th hour. By the 18th hour of the FIRST DAY of the week, they would again find manna in
the fields.
The Last Supper: Many people say that the last supper of Christ which was the Israelite
Passover does not support the "noon to noon" belief. Let's go to the Scripture
and see if that statement is true or not. We don't believe that anyone will deny the fact
that Christ knew when the Passover was to be killed and eaten; nor is it likely that
anyone will deny that Christ and His apostles kept the Passover according to the law given
to Moses for the Israelites.
We will start by reading the pertinent facts of the "last supper," starting in
the Gospel of Mark, Chapter 14, verse 12:
"...The first day of unleavened bread, when they killed the Passover, [Christ's]
disciples said unto him, Where wilt thou that we go and prepare that thou mayest eat the
Passover? [13] And he sendeth forth two of his disciples...[16] And they made ready the
Passover. [17] And in THE EVENING he cometh with the twelve. [18] And...they sat and did
eat..."
Here we see in verses 12 through 16, that the two apostles prepared the Passover. To
prepare the Passover they had to get a lamb; they had to kill the lamb and drain the
blood; they then had to skin it. Next they had to roast it with fire until it was
completely cooked because the law forbade them to eat it raw. All this takes AT LEAST five
to six hours. In verse 17 we learn that Christ and His apostles came and sat down to eat
the Passover "in the EVENING." This word "evening" is the Greek word
#3798 in Strong's Exhaustive Concordance and it means: "Late afternoon or
nightfall." The Israelite Passover comes two weeks after the "Spring
Equinox." That is the time of the year when nightfall comes around 6:00 o'clock p.m.
Now remember, the "two apostles" didn't "prepare" the Passover at 6:00
p.m.; they ate the Passover with Christ at 6:00 p.m. Simple arithmetic will tell anyone
that if they ate the Passover at 6:00 p.m., and if it takes about six hours to make all
the preparations for the Passover to be eaten, then we must realize that the "two
apostles" started the preparations around 12:00 o'clock noon: which was the start of
the Israelite Passover day.
Christ: Our Passover Lamb: Numerous Scriptures tell us that Christ is our Passover Lamb.
Some people say that Christ's death does not coincide with the "noon to
noon" belief. We will now go to the Gospel of Matthew, Chapter 27, and Mark, Chapter
15, to see if the above statement is true or not. Matthew 27:1-2 tells us:
"When the MORNING was come, all the chief priests and elders of the people took
counsel against Jesus to put him to death: [2] And when they had bound him, they led him
away, and delivered him to Pontius Pilate the governor."
The above-stated "morning" is the morning after Christ had eaten the Passover;
prayed in the garden; was arrested and taken before Caiaphas and falsely judged by him.
Now we will go to the Gospel of Mark, Chapter 15. Here we learn in verses 15 through 37;
the sentence by Pilate; the hour when Christ was nailed to the stake; the hours of
darkness and the hour of His death.
"...Pilate...delivered Jesus, and when he had scourged him, to be crucified...[25] It
was the third hour, and they crucified him...[33] And when the sixth hour was come, there
was darkness over the land until the ninth hour. [34] And at the ninth hour Jesus cried
with a loud voice...[37) Jesus cried with a loud voice, and gave up the ghost."
To understand what we are being told in the above passages we must first understand that
at the time of Christ's crucifixion, the Israelites were under Roman rule, and the
Pharisees were in charge over Israel on a local level. At that point of time in history
the Pharisees had already changed the time when a day was to begin. Instead of having the
day start at noon, the Pharisees changed it to start at sunset. Because sunset is always
changing, they settled on 6:00 p.m. as the start of their day.
The Jews divided their day into two 12 hour periods. The first 12 hour period started at
sunset and went to sunrise and was called the "first" through the
"twelfth" hour. At sunrise they start their second 12 hour period. This second
half of the Pharisees' official day started at 6:00 o'clock in the morning. Therefore,
7:00 o'clock was their "first hour," 8:00 o'clock was their "second
hour." 9:00 o'clock was their "third hour," and so on. Therefore the terms;
third hour, sixth hour and ninth hour were terms used in the gospel accounts.
In verse 25 above, we are told that Christ was actually nailed to the stake at 9:00 a.m.,
which was their third hour. Christ then hung on the cross from 9:00 a.m. until 12:00 noon.
Verse 33 tells us that from 12:00 noon until 3:00 p.m. "...There was darkness over
the whole land until the ninth hour." [3:00 p.m.] It was during this period of time
that the prophecy of Isaiah 53:8 was fulfilled:
"He was taken from prison and from judgment...for he was cut off out of the land of
the living: for the transgression of my people was he stricken."
At 3:00 p.m. Christ cried with a loud voice, gave up the ghost and died. We find in verse
34 and 37:
[34] "And at the ninth hour Jesus cried with a loud voice...[37] Jesus cried with a
loud voice and gave up the ghost."
We can plainly see by the above passages that Christ was killed shortly after 12:00 noon,
(which in the Old Testament is often referred to as: "even, the going down of the
sun") which is in keeping with the law as spelled out in Deuteronomy 16:6:
"...Thou shalt sacrifice the passover at EVEN, at the going down of the sun..."
There were other ways that Christ could have been executed, but to fulfill prophecy,
Christ had to die by crucifixion, which is a slow and very painful death. It was finally
completed by 3:00 p.m., not at sunset as the modern day Jews (Pharisees) would have us
believe.
The High Sabbath of John 10:31: Many people read John 19:31 and say: "See, it is very
clear that the Sabbath was to begin at sundown." Those people are absolutely correct.
As we pointed out earlier in Part III: the Pharisees - under Roman rule - were in charge
of the Israelites. Also, we pointed out that the day began at sunset for the Pharisees
(the Jews): "Among the Jews the day began at sunset..." Therefore the high
Sabbath day which followed Christ's crucifixion was to begin at sunset, because it was the
Jews' (Pharisees') time to start their day. I repeat: SUNDOWN IS THE BEGINNING OF THE
PHARISEES' DAY AND THE BEGINNING OF THE PHARISEES' SABBATH AND IT WAS THE "PHARISEES'
SABBATH" that John was recording in this verse. This is what John 19:31 says:
"The Jews therefore, because it was the preparation, that the bodies should not
remain on the cross on the Sabbath day, (for THAT SABBATH DAY WAS AN HIGH DAY), besought
Pilate that their legs might be broken and that they might be taken away."
This Sabbath day, which was the Pharisees' "high day" was another of the
Pharisees' perversion of God's law: specifically the law which is recorded in Exodus,
Chapter 12, which was given to the Israelites before the first passover. In Exodus
12:15-16 we read:
"[15] Seven days shall ye eat unleavened bread; even the first day ye shall put away
leaven out of your houses...[16] IN THE FIRST DAY THERE SHALL BE AN HOLY CONVOCATION, and
in the seventh day there shall be an holy convocation to you; no manner of work shall be
done in them, save that which every man must eat, that only may be done of you."
In verse 16 we see that the first day of "unleavened bread," when the passover
is to be killed, is to be an "holy convocation," which is a "sacred
meeting." The first day of unleavened bread is also to be a Sabbath of rest wherein
no work, except food preparation, is to be done. We pointed out in the section entitled
"The Last Supper" that Christ and His apostles did, on the first day of
unleavened bread, prepare and eat the passover, according to the law.
You will see by the following verses that the Pharisees started the preparation for their
Passover at a different time than Christ; and that the Pharisees also had their "holy
convocation" which they called a "high Sabbath day" on the second, not the
first day of unleavened bread as was required by law. Let us now turn to the Gospel of
John, Chapters 18 & 19 for confirmation of this truth. John 18:28 tells us:
"Then led they [the Pharisees] Jesus from Caiaphas unto the hall of judgment [where
Pontius Pilate judged]: and it was early; and they themselves [the Pharisees] went not
into the judgment hall, lest they should be defiled; but that they might eat the
passover."
Here we learn that Christ, who had already eaten the passover the night before, was
brought before Pilate, but the Pharisees refused to enter the judgment hall because if
they had, according to Pharisee law, they would have been defiled and would not have been
able to eat their passover. John 19:13-14 tells us:
"[13]...Pilate...brought Jesus forth, and sat down in the judgment seat...[14] and it
was the preparation of the passover..."
Here we have a second witness that the day that Pilate judged Christ was on the PHARISEES'
passover preparation day. Later on, after Christ's death, we are told in John 19:31:
"The Jews therefore, because it was the preparation, that the bodies should not
remain upon the cross on the Sabbath day, (for that Sabbath day was an high day), besought
Pilate that ...they might be taken away."
We see here that it was still the Pharisees' passover preparation day and that the Jews
(the Pharisees) wanted the bodies to be taken off of the crosses before sundown when the
Pharisees' high Sabbath day was to begin. Remember, this was NOT the weekly or seventh day
Sabbath, but it was a special "high Sabbath."
There are several other "high Sabbaths" or holy convoca-tions in Scripture
and they can be found in Leviticus 23 and Numbers 28 and 29. It now becomes very clear
that the "high Sabbath day" of John 19:31 was NOT the Sabbath of Israel, but it
was the "high Sabbath of the Pharisees" and therefore, because the Pharisees
started their day at sunset, they also started THEIR "high Sabbath" of John
19:31 at sunset.
If you check with any Jewish synagogue today you will find that they still follow this
same Pharisaical practice of starting their weekly Sabbath and their Passover Sabbath at
sundown, simply because they are following the same teachings as the Pharisees of Christ's
time.
Scriptural Warnings: The Pharisees of Christ's time and the Pharisees of today, whom we
call "Jews," did not then, nor do they today, start their "day"
according to Scripture; they do not start their "Sabbath" according to
Scripture; and they do not observe "the Passover" according to Scripture.
Therefore Christians of today should look to the Jews of today for NOTHING, absolutely
NOTHING! Dear brothers and sisters in Christ, please remember Christ's warning to His
disciples:
"...Take heed and beware of the leaven [doctrines or teaching] of the Pharisees and
of the Sadducees."
And finally, remember Paul's warning to us as recorded in the Book of Titus, Chapter 3,
verse 14:
"...not giving heed to Jewish fables, and commandments of men, that turn from the
truth."
When you go to the Jews or Jewish writings, you will get nothing but "Jewish
fables," and where you spend eternity may lie in the balance.
Epilogue: The Christian Bible Sabbath begins at noon on Saturday and ends at noon on
Sunday. The Jewish Sabbath begins at sundown on Friday night and ends at sundown on
Saturday night. WHICH ONE WILL YOU CHOOSE? May the God of Abraham, and Isaac and Jacob
bless you and encourage you to diligently search the Scriptures to see if what we tell you
is true.
In his original draft, Jefferson was going to use "Life, Liberty and Property,"
but the sagacious Franklin corrected him by observing that life depended on property as
our necessities of life: food, clothing and materials for shelter came from the land. In
addition, he observed that a man can only be free if he depends on no one to provide these
things, and therefore property is the base and foundation of ALL RIGHTS. Jefferson
conceded and changed the draft wording to its current form. Jefferson and Franklin
understood the nature of property and its relationship to Rights. Let us investigate his
concept and see if we can come to the same understanding.
Our Founding Fathers were devout men and took the majority of their education from the
Bible [In spite of that which is being presented today notwithstanding]. If we go to the
Bible and research it to find out what is the concept of property as understood by our
Founding Fathers, we come up with ideas which your children will not learn in our public
GOVERNMENT SCHOOLS. As we start our search we find the first such grant by the Creator God
in Genesis 1:28, where God grants Adam dominion. Sounds good, Huh? What the heck is
dominion, you may ask? Well, first you must understand that the Bible is a Law Book and it
starts to make more sense. Since we are dealing with law, laws are words and words have
specific meanings. Let's go to a Law Dictionary: "Ownership or right to
property."
God gave Adam property! The second part of the definition should spark all of us, for
dominion is also "Sovereignty or lordship." Could this be the coveted
sovereignty proclaimed by the patriot community? The answer to this is a resounding
"YES"!!! There is, however, a catch. In order to exercise dominion you must
comply with the terms of the agreement. In Adam's time, the agreement was simple and only
consisted of one commandment, it would appear at first glance, that Adam was not to eat of
the tree of knowledge of good and evil. As you know, the commandment was broken and Adam
lost the dominion and the ground was cursed to him. As the story goes on, we come to the
story of Noah, whose was the only family holding to God's Law.
The flood cleansed the [Earth of the] unrighteous and left Noah to enjoy the dominion.
Next is Abraham, a goodly servant of God, and his seed forever obtained the dominion. On
the story goes to Moses when he received the Law and obtained the ratification of the
children of Israel . Now, the astute student will discover that whenever the Israelites
obeyed the Law, they prospered, and when they disobeyed they went into slavery.
Disobedience in today's terms is called "breach of contract." Look closely,
dominion goes to he who fulfills the Law. In the course of all history, only one has
fulfilled the Law, and that is Jesus the Christ. With His life, Jesus obtained perfect
dominion and as such has the right to the property of the earth, the fulness thereof the
world and they that dwell therein . What has all this to do with the Founding Fathers? The
Founding Fathers understood the concept and requirements of dominion and recognized that
Jesus had the Sovereignty. That is why, when Washington was asked to be king in this land,
he replied:
"...We have no King but Jesus."
Our Founding Fathers recognized Jesus as the absolute potentate and Sovereign [We have no
King but Jesus]. Within the past year, you have heard that the Founding Fathers
established a nation where only property holders could participate in the governing
process. That is quite correct, but you have been misled as to what this property is.
PROPERTY
It is a principle of political philosophy, that property, the soil, is the natural
foundation of power, and consequently of authority. Hence, the natural foundation of every
govern-ment, may be said to be laid in the distribution of its territories, its land, its
property. Let's look at that word "property." Property:
"In a strict legal sense, land is not property but the subject of property. The term
property, although in common parlance applied to a tract of land or a chattel, in its
legal significance means only the right of the owner in relation to it...Property is the
right of any person to possess, use, enjoy, and dispose of a thing."
This can be seen in the following supposition.
FIRST: If the government or lending institutions [or those who control the
government or lending institutions from behind the scenes] own the property,
the land, or is in
control of it; or to allow the use of it at their pleasure, the citizens of that
government must also be subject to the will ofthe
government: thus the citizen will be in the condition of slaves, rather than of freemen.
SECOND: If the property or land of a country be shared among a few men, the
rest of the citizens of the country are merely vassals under their control;
and the real
power of government will be in the hands of those few; authority will thus be lodge in
those few men [who control the govern-ment
or lending institutions]. In other words the government [nation] will then be under the
total control of those few men. Thus the citizens of that
country or nation will also be under the total control of those in their every action or
unaction of life.
If you do not believe that statement, then name one thing a citizen of the United States
of America can do without some sort of federal, state, county or city government
regulation controlling that action!
THIRD: If the property or land of a country be divided among all those who
compose the population or citizenry of its society, the true power of that
country or government would reside in all the members of citizens as a whole.
Therefore, society itself would thus constitute a Real Republic, whatever form of union
may be adopted for the better direction of the whole as a political body. Under such a
condition; the private ownership of the land, home and lots, buildings, etc., the citizens
themselves will have ultimate control of that nation. They will not need to have this
power conferred upon them by express grant or law, it will fall into their hands by the
natural force of circumstances.
There is no truth in political science more easy to comprehend, more open to the view of
all, or more certainly known by universal experience, than that the men who own the
territories, property or land of a state will exercise a predominating influence over the
public affairs of that state. There is no more sure way to destroy a nation and its people
than by depriving them of the ownership of the land or property of the nation. Greece and
Rome are two prime examples where a nation allowed greedy treacherous men to remove the
ownership of the property from the citizens and deposit it in the hands of the government.
This is precisely what treacherous men in the federal, state, county and cities lay taxes
upon a persons property, for by the instigation of taxes - the federal, state, county or
city effectively owns the lands or property and not the citizen.
You don't believe it, then do not pay your property taxes and just see who owns the land.
You will know as you sit in the street saying they can't do this to me! So, you see,
property is not the dirt, but a right to the dirt, and who has that right to the dirt?
Why, as our Founding Fathers knew, that right vested only in the body of Christ. Who are
the body of Christ?
"So we, being many, are one body in Christ, and every one members one of
another."
Now is it becoming clear that when the Founders restricted the government to property
owner, THEY UNDERSTOOD IT TO MEAN that NO ONE COULD PARTICIPATE IN GOVERNMENT WHO DID NOT
PROFESS JESUS CHRIST AS THE SAVIOUR; AS THE SOVEREIGN OF THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA!
This is why our Constitution forbids Titles of Nobility, for there is only one title of
Nobility recognized in this country, this Israel which was to come, that being, Jesus
Christ is King. We the body of Christ, have been charged with a responsibility to
"Occupy 'till I come.'" Occupy is a legal term meaning, "To hold in
possession." The Homestead acts and land patents which were once laws of every
state, but have been removed by antichrists and the enemies of America have removed from
most through deception; because our people did not study to keep themselves informed.
American laws were originally based upon the Biblical precepts laid out in Leviticus
25:10-13; 27:24; Numbers 36:2; Joshua 16:4; 17:4; 19:1; Judges 2:6; and Ruth 4:6.
"And ye shall hallow the fiftieth year, and proclaim liberty throughout all the land
unto all the inhabitants thereof: it shall be a jubile unto you; and ye shall return every
man unto his possession, and ye shall return every man unto his family. A jubile shall
that fiftieth year be unto you: ye shall not sow, neither reap that which groweth of
itself in it, nor gather the grapes in it of thy vine undressed. For it is the jubile; it
shall be holy unto you: ye shall eat the increase thereof out of the field. In the year of
this jubile ye shall return every man unto his possession." "In the year of the
jubile the field shall return unto him of whom it was bought, even to him to whom the
possession of the land did belong." "So the children of Joseph, Manasseh and
Ephraim, took their inheritance." "And they came near before Eleazar the priest,
and before Joshua the son of Nun, and before the princes, saying, The Lord commanded Moses
to give us an inheritance among our brethren. Therefore according to the commandment of
the Lord he gave them an inheritance among the brethren of their father." "And
they said, The Lord commanded my lord to give the land for an inheritance by lot to the
children of Israel: and my lord was commanded by the Lord to give the inheritance of
Zelophehad our brother unto his daughters." Etc. "My people are destroyed for
lack of knowledge: because thou has rejected knowledge, I will also reject thee, that thou
shalt be no priest to me: seeing thou hast forgotten the law of thy God, I will also
forget thy children." "Study to shew thyself approved unto God, a workman
that needeth not to be ashamed, rightly dividing the word of truth."
The words of our LORD then says:
"...If thou hadst known, even thou, at least in this thy day, the things which belong
unto thy peace! but now they are hid from thine eyes. For the days shall come upon thee,
that thine enemies shall cast a trench about thee, and compass thee round, and keep thee
in on every side, And shall lay thee even with the ground, and thy children within thee;
and they shall not leave in thee one stone upon another; because thou knewest not the time
of thy visitation."
The Scriptures then relate:
"And that, knowing the time, that now it is high time to awake out of sleep: for now
is our salvation nearer than when we believed."
Not understanding what our Founding Fathers understood and meant has brought us to the
point where we are today. Where we have Prostitute Supreme Court Justices such as the
Zionist- Communist-antichrist-Jewish controlled spawn of Satan; Thurgood Marshall who said
recently in Newsweek:
"Supreme Court Justice Thurgood Marshall objected to some of the pietism attending
the 200th anniversary of the Constitution. Speaking to a lawyers' group in Hawaii, he
said, 'The document had been defective from the start. I do not believe that the meaning
of the Constitution was forever fixed at the Philadelphia convention.'"
Marshal, and others of his ilk, want to "fix it." I say it doesn't need fixing;
it needs to be obeyed! It needs to duly be understood and adhered to if we are going to
maintain freedom of movement in this land, and if you are not going to become a slave it
is going to be up to you to speak out against these treasonous efforts to bring about a
new Constitution of Interdependence. The article went on to say concerning the Present
Constitution:
"The United States as a nation is famously lucky . Its primal luck was geography and
timing: a wild natural abundance that was encountered by gifted men and women in a clear
rational blue of Enlightenment '...The Constitution was drafted in a moment of ascendant
science, political science preached by Locke and Montesquieu, for example, and belief in
the power of reason to subdue the savage and ignorant regions of the mind."
It is my firm belief we have savage and ignorant people, such as Mr. Thurgood Marshall,
and they are those who belong to organizations that want to do away with a document that,
through the Grace of God, has kept us free for over 200 years. We, as a people, had better
realize it's going to take a made up mind and a desire to FOLLOW AFTER GOD AND JESUS
CHRIST in sincerity and in truth. So our Television Commentators are saying in effect;
"Give us your tired, your poor, your huddled masses...YOUR WRETCHED REFUSE...your
alien gods...your idols of wood and stone...your HEATHEN TEMPLES and SYNAGOGUES...your
alien PHILOSOPHIES...your TROJAN HORSES of subversion...give us anything and
everything..."
And this is what America has opened its gates to over the last several decades -- anything
and everything. The purpose for which France presented the United States with the Statue
of Liberty in 1886 was inscribed thereon:
"A gift from the people of the Republic of France to the people of the United States.
This statue of Liberty Enlightening the World commemorates the alliance of the two nations
in achieving independence of the U.S., attest to their abiding friendship."
The Statue of Liberty had NOTHING to do with immigration as poet Emma Lazarus apparently
assumed according to her poem, which was inscribed on the statue in 1906. It had NOTHING
to do WITH PHASING OUT CHRISTIANITY and TURNING OUR NATION INTO A HUMANISTIC, HOMOGENIZED
MELTING POT OF WHITE, BLACK, YELLOW AND RED HEATHENS as many would like to believe.
POSTERITY
OUR FOREFATHERS ESTABLISHED THIS NATION FOR "THEIR" POSTERITY. As stated in the
Preamble to the Constitution,
"We the People of the United States, in Order to...secure the Blessings of Liberty to
ourselves and TO THEIR POSTERITY, do ordain and establish this Constitution of the United
States of America."
Since our forefathers were White Christians, so, their posterity would be the same. They
did not suffer the hardships in the years following the landing at Plymouth Rock by the
Puritans or endure the horrors of the war of independence to establish this nation as a
melting pot of alien races, religions and cultures! In spite of what you have been told
and taught!!! We have repeated the same mistakes our forefathers made in ancient Israel.
By allowing the "mixed multitude" to enter with their customs and practices, so
much so that nearly every segment of society has been corrupted or adulterated. God said:
"For I will take you from among the heathen, and gather you out of all countries, and
will bring you into your own land. Then will I sprinkle clean water upon you, and ye shall
be clean from all your filthiness, and from all your idols, will I cleanse you. A new
heart also will I give you, and a new spirit will I put within you: and I will take away
the stony heart out of your flesh, and I will give you an heart of flesh. And I will put
my spirit within you, and cause you to walk in my statutes, and ye shall keep my
judgments, and do them."
This is a perfect description of America and Americans. These, they are the sources of our
strength and tradition. With such a heritage it is almost inconceivable and all but
impossible for Americans to believe that another would work within a conspiracy to destroy
everything Americans believe in.
In his "Commentaries," Blackstone gave what is accepted as the most complete and
accurate definition of the "law of nature." By reading his definition, the
conclusion become evident that there is a Divine Basis in the Moral Order of the Universe
for regarding as invalid all man-made laws which transgress Natural Law:
"Man, considered as a creature, must necessarily be subject to the laws of his
Creator...The will of his Maker is called the law of nature...This law of nature, being
coequal with mankind, and dictated by God Himself, is...superior in obligation to any
other. It is binding over all the globe, in all countries, and at all times; no human laws
are of any validity if contrary to this; and such of them as are valid derive all their
force and all their authority, mediately and immediately, from this original...Upon these
two foundations, the law of nature and the law of revelation, depend all human laws; that
is to say, no human laws should be suffered to contradict these...if any human law should
allow or enjoin us to commit it, we are bound to transgress that human law, or else we
offend both the natural and the divine."
Lord Bryce said that the belief in Natural Law, as set forth in the Declaration of
Independence and upheld by the Constitution, is the fruit of the teachings of Christ. In
his essay on "The Law of Nature," he concludes:
"But it is clear that the influence of Christian teaching... stimulated the
vindication in the name of Natural Law of principles which are the foundation both of
civil and religious liberty."
In these words, Lord Bryce expounded the great principle of Natural Law, as it is embodied
and enshrined in our National Charter of American Liberty:
"It is an assertion of the supremacy of the eternal principles of morality...It
proclaims the responsibility to God of all power, whether spiritual or temporal, and the
indestructible rights of the individual human being. Finding in Divine Justice the
ultimate source of all law, it imposes a restraint upon the force which positive
(man-made) law has at its command, and sets limits to the validity of positive (man- made)
laws themselves."
There are only two theories as to the "ultimate source of all law." One finds
the source of all law in the Will, the Moral Law, of God, in Divine Justice. The other
finds the source of all law in the will of self-willed men in a dictator or a dictatorial
mob. The first theory looks to the unchanging Word of God and the Divinely implanted
conscience of man for the Eternal Moral Law, upon which human law should be based.
The second theory denies the existence of an enduring Moral Law. It asserts that morals
are but "the fashions of the people," and that as fashions, morals must change
as fashions in law, justice, religion and constitutions. It claims that there are no
Eternal Ethical Principles; that men who live in castles must have a different morality --
a different constitution than those who live in plain houses. This is the theory of Karl
Marx [As taught to him in the teachings of the Jewish Talmud]; the theory upon which all
forms of unconstitutional collectivism are predicated.
While the opposite theory, the first theory stated, is that of Jesus Christ; the theory
upon which the Constitution of the United States is predicated upon. Christ said that the
Moral Principles which He stated were for all times, in all ages. Marx said that every age
evolves its own moral principles, as it evolves its own styles and manners. Christ taught
that ethical standards are derived from ABOVE -- from His Father in heaven. Marx taught
that ethical fashions are derived from BELOW -- are an outgrowth of the material
conditions of life;
"The material processes of life determine the religious, moral and spiritual process
of life."
They follow the philosophy of Karl Marx, and as laid out in the Talmud, who say that a
change in the material conditions of life entails or necessitates a change in the guiding
ethical principles enthroned in the Constitution. Americans today generally envision a
scenario where Americans are truly "at peace" and "dwelling safely
(confidently)" without need of physical walls, bars and gates to protect them. And,
to a certain extent they are correct because many Americans are dwelling confidently when
it come to thinking about the USSR. They are so optimistic about the one-world government
and then end of the so-called "cold war."
But, are Americans truly "safe," or are they just brainwashed into THINKING they
are safe? Americans may be dwelling safely from foreign enemies - but what about domestic
enemies? What about the enemy who strikes every one of us every day? This enemy destroys
more lives and hurts more people than any other thing you can name. He steals and lies
with impunity.
Even though foreign troops are not marching against us within our borders, the American
citizen is being plundered daily. He lives under constant threat of punishment by
arbitrary powers; by his own government. He is forced to give up all personal privacy.
Rights of ownership of private property have been taken from him by his conquerors. He is
living under Communism just as much as the citizens of Russia! And yet he does not realize
it, so he thinks he dwells safely. But why? How does this invading force remain
unrecognized?
Chapter Five
DEGENERATION OF SOCIETY
Americans, have been watching the degeneration of their society, the increase in violence,
drugs, pornography, and the fanatical rise in the national debt, and asks what will we do
when America falls into Socialism, Communism, insolvency and surrender. Make no mistake
about it, the Thought-theology of what we understand is Communism HAS taken over in
America. It is not called by that name however, it is called Socialism. The Hammer and
Sickle does not adorn our flag, but we are under the control of Communism just as surely
as there is a God in Heaven and that Jesus Christ sits at His right hand.
Does that sound preposterous? Think about it. How would we know "when Communism, is
sold as democracy," is the ultimate law of the land? Those who are not employing
"more powerful levers and more subtle webs" have succeeded in their plans, so
far, and most of those living in this country may not notice much of a difference from
what they think of as the American Way these days! To demonstrate that this is true, we
will list what has been called the ten basic planks of the Communist Manifesto, for your
study and review.
1). Abolition of Property in Land, and Application of all rents to public
use.
Did you know that the Federal Government of Washington, D.C., now owns over 40% of the
land mass of the United States? That is more land than the entire country east of the
Mississippi River. It does so in direct violation of the United States Constitution. The
Federal Government now owns more than 10% of all industrial properties, railroads, barge
lines, etc. As the government takes over more and more land, that property is taken off
the tax rolls, and thus increases the taxes all of us must pay on the land we suppose that
we own.
Most Americans think they own their land. They think that a certain parcel upon which they
live actually belongs to them. Have your lawyer explain to you why your deeds have been
drawn as they have or why you and your wife are called "tenants in common" and
other strange language and phrases in the world of law. Here is the rule of law: If you
must pay the state or country a "property tax," and the state or country can
sell your property to someone else if you fail to pay the tax, you are not the actual and
lawful owner of that land or property! Marx called the use tax on land, rent.
Today it is called "property tax" and while universally accepted by most
Americans, the property tax is 100% Marxist (Communist) in nature. The land that is still
informally held in private hands, is now subject to state and municipal controls called
"land use" and you can only do certain things on land that you suppose you own.
If you actually owned it, instead of being merely a "tenant with a vested interest in
it," no City, State or Federal controls could be imposed upon it. You sit tight when
the Federal Government tells you, via an unconstitutional statute, that you must rent
"your property" to anyone who comes to your door, regardless of race, color,
national origin and sexual preference.
From whence did they get the lawful jurisdiction to tell you what you can do on "your
property?" If indeed it is your property, there is no such authority except that
which you voluntarily submit to. However, since you are merely a tenant paying property
use tax rent on the land, they have every right to tell you how you will use that property
and how far from the property line you must build any house, etc.
Can you imagine Patrick Henry putting up with such nonsense? Of course not! But then,
Patrick Henry was a Freeman, not a Communist. He did not hold Communist ideas about the
use of land, as most Americans do today. How about you? Are you a Communist when it comes
to land use? As to the use of land, every Senator and every Congressman is a Communist
today. Nothing much will change "when Communism takes over," except that you
will know that you are a mere tenant and not a land owner as you had supposed for years.
Some of you tenants will be pushed off the state's land so that another tenant can use
your nice home and farm, and if you resist, you may be legally shot.
When the Communist agent, Woodie Guthrie, wrote the now famous song, "This Land is My
Land; this Land is Your Land..." he was writing with the Communist understanding
about land and land ownership. Yet patriotic groups, ignorant of Communist objectives,
often sing that song with the same attitude and reverence as they do with "America,
the Beautiful."
2). A Heavy Progressive, or Graduated Income Tax.
This is probably the best known of the Communist political concepts in use today in
America. If there is any Communist statute or regulation that has been imposed unlawfully
on most Americans, and one which affects their very lives and fortunes the most, the
Communist income tax has to be it. If there was any statute that employed more
"powerful levers" or "subtle webs," you would be hard pressed to find
it.
As with the progressive tax on property, it is a Communist idea of "from each
according to his ability and to each according to his need" that finds exact
expression in the federal and state graduated income tax laws. Yet 90% of all Americans
accept this system of federal revenue taxation as if it were both Scriptural and American.
It is neither. It comes from the Jewish Babylonian Talmud, and is the main cornerstone of
Communist Thought- theology. Marxism-Leninism is not only a political thought, but is also
the religion of the Communists and Socialists.
It is a well-known hallmark of Communism when you see people turning in their neighbors to
the authorities. It is now beginning on a large scale in America with such carefully
prepared TV shows as "UNSOLVED MYSTERIES," where the TV uses brutal murders,
drug and child abuse crimes to get the public accustomed to thinking about turning people
in so as to solve these crimes. You can become a "state hero" and even get paid
$1,000 for your help.
Next, you will be paid for TURNING IN PEOPLE WHO OWN FIREARMS OR FOR NOT TELLING OUR
PEOPLE ABOUT UNLAWFUL GOVERNMENT ACTIVITIES.
Even now this can be seen, when someone tells another they are un-American, un-patriotic,
un-Christian or the now famous remark "Love It Or Leave It" who complain about
government officials who are ruining our country. Never coming to the realization that it
is un-American and un-Christian NOT to speak out against government injustice. It was
government officials who put Peter and the Apostles in prison for speaking out:
"Then the high priest [a high government official at that time and place] rose up,
and all they [the other rulers of Jerusalem] that were with him, (which is the sect of the
Sadducees,) and were filled with indignation [because Paul and the Apostles were speaking
out AGAINST GOVERNMENT INJUSTICE], And laid their hands on the apostles, and put them in
the common prison...Then came one and told them, saying, Behold, the men whom ye put in
prison are standing in the temple, and teaching [once again speaking out against
government injustice - and about the Lord Jesus Christ] the people. Then went the captain
with the officers, and brought them...before the council [their equivalent of our Congress
or Supreme Court]: and the high priest asked them, Saying, Did not we straitly command you
that ye should not teach in this name [The name of the Lord Jesus Christ]? and, behold, ye
have filled Jerusalem with your doctrine...Then Peter and the other apostles answered and
said, We ought to obey God rather than men."
Are you beginning to see that COMMUNISM HAS ALREADY TAKEN OVER AMERICA?
3). Abolition of all Right to Inheritance.
In spite of the federal Estate Tax of 1916 your Communist government has yet to accomplish
this objective. They have imposed a heavy inheritance tax, illegally confiscating a large
part of that property a man leaves to his children. So much so that after a couple of
generations, the property is usually gone. How many people do you know who still live on
their grandfather's farm or ranch? Naturally, the lower classes, who have chosen not to
save enough to purchase property, have no inheritances to leave. The super-rich have been
provided the use of tax-exempt foundations so that their wealth is passed on to their
posterity. It is the great middle-class that the Communist objectives are directed toward,
and which are succeeding very well in America. Where does the federal government get the
authority and jurisdiction to tax the property of the deceased?
4). Confiscation of the Property of Emigrants and Rebels.
Emigrants are people who leave a country, and that does not apply to Americans. However,
look at what is done to Americans our government calls "rebels." All the
government has to do is allege that a person is a "tax resister" or a drug
pusher and his property, money and real estate can be confiscated without due process.
Some of you saw the story on "Inside Edition" where a citizen's property was
taken by the Federal authorities without due process merely because she had rented the
house to people, later determined to have been using the house for drug traffic. All the
government needs to do is allege that property, money, real estate, cars, boats, etc., are
owned by those involved in drugs, and that property, can be taken and sold under Public
Law 99-570 set in place in 1986. There are some real horror stories. Some minimum wage
seaman can sneak drugs aboard a million dollar ship, unknown to the owners or the captain,
and the ship can be and probably will be confiscated by the government without due process
of law!
5). Centralization of Credit in the hands of the State, by means of a
National Bank with State Capital, and an Exclusive Monopoly.
It was through the Federal Reserve Act of 1913 that the private banking cartel known as
The Federal Reserve System came into being. It is through this scheme, with the government
controlling the banks and credit for the benefit of the secret shareholders, that the
effect of this objective of the Communists came into being in the United States. The super
rich bankers, while they liked the controls envisioned by Karl Marx, decided that all the
usury and profits should go into their pockets instead of the federal coffers. It is this
small outlaw band of International Jewish Bankers who decide how much interest you are
going to pay on your home mortgage and they have the monopoly power to force other banks
to charge the same rates.
Individual credit can be given or withheld at the whim of these bankers. The
"private" FEDERAL RESERVE BANKING SYSTEM is neither "federal" nor does
it have any "reserves" as commonly believed. The local Federal Reserve Bank is
not listed under agencies of the Federal Government, but it is listed as a private
business.
The Federal Reserve "Notes," which you carry in your pocket, though printed by
the federal government for these private bankers's use, and identified as "legal
tender," are in fact privately circulated bank notes. As "notes" they do
not certify that the U.S. Treasury has gold of silver to "back them" but state
on their face that the U.S. Government is in debt to that amount.
You are not paying your bills with certificates of wealth, but with evidences of federal
debt. You are passing the U.S. debt to the bankers, around, among yourselves as if it was
lawful money. The "private" Federal Reserve makes huge profits for its member
banks, and yet it pays no federal or state income taxes, and they have "never"
been audited by any government agency.
A few years ago, Senator Metcalf of Washington State launched a campaign against the
Federal Reserve and had it put on the ballot to restore the right to create money to the
Congress as specified in the Constitution. The people in Washington State were so
thoroughly indoctrinated by our prostitute news media, that they actually voted it down!
In 1933, when so many banks lost their shirts and had to repay their depositors or close
their doors, the Federal Reserve Act was changed to incorporate the Federal Deposit
Insurance Corporation (FDIC). Here is how this works, and we can see it with the current
Savings and Loan scandals. In good times, the bankers make huge profits.
However, in bad times, the American taxpayers are called upon to bail out the bankers,
letting them retain their personal assets. But, most people are so accustomed to the yoke
of Communism, thrust upon them in the name of "democracy" and "social
security," that they believe that these things must be the form of government our
Forefathers gave us.
They think it is normal to have total taxes amount to over 50% of their income. Where is
their Great Republic based upon the Common Law and the Constitution? For all practical
purposes, it no longer exists.
6). Centralization of the means of Communication, and Transportation in the
hands of the State.
All radio and television networks are licensed and permitted to operate "only"
at the pleasure of the federal government through the Federal Communications Commission.
Because their program-ming is under strict federal guidelines, anti-Communist programs are
rarely aired. Can you recall one TV program, in the past 20-25 years which set forth the
Communist objectives for the conquest of America and the World? Instead, all programming
is designed to promote Socialist/Communist thinking, and our country is never referred to
as a republic but always as a democracy.
All news is designed to promote the Communists and their leading individuals as reasonable
people, and anti-Communist nations, such as South Africa, are always cast in an
unfavorable light. Communist objectives for America, such as degeneration of moral values,
interracial marriage, promiscuous sex, and homosexual life styles, are treated in both the
news and the "situation comedies" as normal and healthy, and are given to us and
our children on a daily basis.
All transportation by air is under either the Federal Aviation Agency or the Civil
Aeronautics, and the government controls how these private businesses operate and the
fares and rates that they can charge. The federal government controls every form of
interstate commerce, and sets the rates that these private businesses can charge and even
how long a truck driver can drive his own truck in a given day.
7). Factories and Instruments of Production Owned by the State; the bringing
in Cultivation of Waste Lands, and the Improvement of the Soil
according to a common plan.
The federal government now owns and operates more than 25,000 corporate units in direct
competition with private enterprise. Most of these corporations are operated at staggering
losses, even though they pay no property taxes and no interest on invested capital. All of
these, along with their losses, are being operated without the slightest shred of
Constitutional authority. Furthermore, according to figures taken from the Federal Budget,
the aggregate losses of these federally owned businesses and property, including the lost
state and local taxes thereon, exceed the total amount collected each year in personal
income taxes! According to the Liberty Amendment Committee, from whom these statistics
were taken, the sale of these unlawfully owned businesses would retire about one third of
the national debt, and make the personal individual income taxes a thing of the past.
We are 100% in favor of bringing wastelands into cultivation and improving the soil.
However, this must be done on a private enterprise basis, and not as the result of federal
bureaucratic intervention. However, in accordance to the Communist orientation of our
government, swarms of New Officers (to use the language of the Declaration of
Independence) have been descending upon our farmers. There is the Bureau o Land
Management, Bureau of Reclamation, Bureau of Mines, Environmental Protection Agency, and
many others. We do not need to comment on the crisis now being faced by America's
independent farmers. It is not the result of incompetent farmers but because of federal
meddling in both their agricultural and financial affairs.
8). Equal Liability of all to Labor. Establishment of Industrial Armies,
especially in Agriculture.
In the first sentence, the emphasis should be on the word, liability. This is to be a
"worker's paradise" and therefore all have an equal liability, a pecuniary
obligation, to labor. Every citizen, according to Marx, is required to labor, and ever
person is to be assigned a job. There is to be no non-laboring middle class working as
salesmen and shop-keepers. Once the farmers finally fail in large numbers [and it appears
that is exactly what is happening today 1992], not because of agriculture flaws so much as
corporate debt, the Communist agriculture armies, gathered from those "huddled masses
yearning to be free," that now clog up the welfare rolls, will be sent forth to
plant, till and harvest in the vain hope that they can feed the people.
9). Combination of Agriculture with Manufacturing; Gradual Abolition of the
Distinction between Town and Country by a more equitable Distribution
of the Population over the Country.
The destruction of the cities has been going on since the Roosevelt Depression.
Socialist/Communist confiscatory property and business taxes on producer, and welfare
handouts to non- producers, have driven commerce and industry out of the cities and
provides the excuse for federal control of land use, environmental impact studies, and
regional planning. Federal regional planning is done between states and over state lines,
is the way this Marxist plank is being carried out today.
10). Free Education of all Children in Public Schools, and combination of
Education with Industrial Production.
When Karl Marx wrote "free" he meant compulsory education of the children under
the control of the State. Because of the contract with the State known as the
"Marriage License," your children are legally Wards of the State. They must have
"shots" and a Social Security number "required to protect the State's
wards." State run and tax financed government schools began soon after the publishing
of the Communist Manifesto, with the key leader at that time being Horace Mann. Next came
Socialized/Communist or often called "progressive" education under the guidance
of John Dewey. Do you remember having to read about the wonders of Socialism/Communism in
books by Lincoln Stephens in high school? The most Socialist/Communist class in any high
school is not history or social science but English, where the leftist teacher can direct
the children to read certain books and make reports on them.
English is the only required class for all students, and it is there that the Communists
have directed their most attention. Under Biblical law, early American instruction, where
students were studying Greek and Latin by 9 years of age, has always been the
responsibility of the parents and their church assembly. Children were taught the moral
values of the parents and of their church. Today, it is the State that determines what the
standards will be for the children's education. Federal Aid to Education determines how
the States will set up the basic teachings and philosophy and this exactly what Marx had
in mind. This form of education teaches the child to look to the State for help, and the
State becomes the child's "god."
Christian instruction, in contrast, teaches the child to look to God and the Lord Jesus
Christ, and that if he needs a hand he finds one at the end of his arm. As you look at our
youth educated in government schools, observe their appearance and their attitudes, and
remember that crime and drug use is increasing 7X as fast as the population, you will see
the evil genius of Karl Marx in full bloom.
There is a clear distinction between "instruction" and "education."
And that is humanistic, New Age, and Eastern philosophy that man is intrinsically good.
Hence the use of the word "education" by the modern Socialist/Communist, which
means from the Latin, "draw the good out." In contrast, the Bible teaches that
all men are sinners, and that they are basically of a sinful, wicked nature. Thus, there
is no way to "draw good out" of them. Christian philosophy, based upon the Truth
of the Bible, teaches that children are to be instructed, that is have the good of God's
Laws put into them so that they can be pleasing in God's sight.
Today, those church groups that teach that God's Laws are still in full force and effect,
always refer to their schools as Christian Instruction. Those churches who have gone the
way of humanism, teaching that God's Laws, Statutes and Judgments were abandoned at the
Cross, rightly call their schools "Christian Education." The term
"Christian Education" is an oxymoron, an absurd contradiction in meaning to
those of us with even a smattering of classical study.
As to the second part of Marx's 10th Plank, children under 16 are not permitted to work
for wages. All private apprentice ships have been abolished for children seeking to learn
a trade before the age of 16. Roosevelt's Socialist/Communist friends had the Fair Labor
Standards Act passed in 1937 where apprenticeships are now under the control of the State.
J. Edgar Hoover, in his classic book on the Communist threat to America, Masters Of
Deceit, wrote that his greatest fear was that Americans would become "state of mind
Communists" while adamantly denying any interest or adherence to Communism. And that
is exactly what has happened. Most Americans go along with every single plank of the
Communist Manifesto and even supposed that it is the American Way!
Obviously, there is only one entity that has the power to do this to the people
consistently, year in and year out, without answering for their crimes and atrocities.
Central government is the ultimate invading enemy of a peaceful society. When central
government conquers a land, the people are in total subjection - and they learn to like
it. They are taught that anyone who accepts his state of subjection is called a
"law-abiding citizen," and anyone who objects is called a "criminal"
and is either killed, imprisoned or forced into hiding.
Americans are subject to frequent and arbitrary arrests, fines, harassment, outrageous
taxation and even physical harm from the government, the IRS, or their mercenary hit men
called "the police." Our forefathers called them "standing armies."
Americans think it is natural and right to fear and worship central government. They think
nothing of it. They take it for granted, as if there were no alternatives. They are so
well enslaved that they merrily submit to government embezzlement of over one- third of
their income, the total loss of their privacy and the loss of their freedoms.
Because as we stated earler, with the loss of the land: all freedoms are lost also!
Whereas the Constitution follows the teachings of Jesus Christ who taught that principles
based upon the Word of Almighty God are as valid and as sound in any age as they were in
the beginning. There are a hundred different ways in which Christ's teachings have been
given effect and application in the Constitution of the United States. And we have
presented so far a few of them along with other documents to prove to the unbelievers
that: AMERICA IS A CHRISTIAN NATION BASED UPON THE WORD OF GOD THE HOLY BIBLE AND UPON THE
TEACHINGS OF THE LORD JESUS CHRIST.
However, in the late 1850's a chain of events began to take place that would pervert our
United States Constitution, its Bill of Rights, the Constitutions and laws of the several
States, and which would disenfranchise the State Legislatures as well as the States
citizens, would deprive both of their sovereignty, and silently [secretly] destroy the
States' powers and the United States as formed, replacing them with a new government
dressed with all the appearances of the United States Government but repugnant to its
institution.
In 1856 the Supreme Court of the United States of America, in Dred Scott vs. Sandford,
determined absolutely, that the White persons of the States, born or naturalized therein,
are the full composition of the sovereign body of this nation. This decision was brought
about purposely, at this place in time, because there was a great deal of turbulence
brewing about the freeing of slaves in the slave States, many of the several States
already being in the process of freeing the slaves by their own sovereign power to
legislate.
Many radicals of the day jumped on the band wagon and the Thirteenth Amendment was
proposed, allegedly for the sole purpose of freeing the slaves, as they believed the
Thirteenth Amendment would only apply to the Southern States, until it back fired on them
and they discovered it would also apply to the Northern States as well. But, the
Thirteenth Amendment had a much more purposeful design, which would not be revealed to the
average citizen until the deception was complete. The design was to franchise non-citizens
while centralizing power in the United States Government, to the deprivation of the States
and their citizens [We the People].
The bleeding hearts of the media had a hay day pleading for the alleged rights of the
non-citizens that had previously been enslaved. Thus, pressing for adoption of the
Thirteenth Amendment, the design of which had less to do with freeing the slaves than
anything else. The people were deceived by these cries for mercy for the slaves, to such
an extent that many chose up sides. Not only did the people choose sides, but the States
were convinced to do the same. As a result the sovereign bodies of the United States were
induced to suffer a Civil War among themselves, that killed more White United States
citizens than have been killed in any war in our history. Little did the Northern States
realize they were fighting a war with the hidden purpose of destroying their own
sovereignty as well as the sovereignty of their White citizenry.
The Thirteenth Amendment was adopted as a result of the Civil War, even though it was
proposed prior to the succession of the Southern States, and a new nation was formed,
although, all believed that the same national government was merely re- established with
slavery abolished. [For simplicity, this newly established government will hereafter be
referred to as the Federal Government or the Fed].
Prior to this time all amendments, made by provision of Article V of the U.S. Constitution
were for the purpose of restricting or clarifying the power of the United States
Government and considering that the Preamble to the Bill of rights does an ample job of
defining the purpose of the amending provisions of Article V, this is prima facia evidence
that the purpose of Article V was strictly to allow the States to hold the United States
Government in check as new ways and new perversions were conceived to destroy the
limitations of the Constitution the principle of which was judicial misconstruction of the
Constitution. Which led to the adoption of the Eleventh Amendment for clarification
of Article III U.S. Const., and Hans vs. Louisiana 135 U.S. 1 (1890) for judicial
construction of the Eleventh Amendment.
But the second section of the Thirteenth Amendment gave new power, creating the Fed,
rather than restricting power to maintain the government for United States of America as
formed. This grant of power is completely foreign to the intent of the Preambles of the
Constitution and the Bill of Rights. The second section of the Thirteenth Amendment opened
up a despotic can of worms that are wiggling more vigorously today than ever.
Under this unconstitutional [de factor] power, State statutes and Constitutional
provisions were declared void and citizens that had never been subjected to Fed.,
jurisdiction in their persons before, were being jailed and sued at the instance of
non-citizens under the new federal law. The radicals feared that their revolutionary
acts would be declared unconstitutional, so they pressed on with proposal of the
Fourteenth Amendment, under very questionable if not fraudulent conditions, to solidify
this adultery of their own nation [race] and sovereignty. Again alleging, as they had in
civil rights statutes, that power existed within the second section of the Thirteenth
Amendment to proceed to make the Fourteenth Amendment. Adoption of the Fourteenth was then
secured by military occupation of the Southern States, two years after hostilities of the
Civil War had ceased.
In the words of the then president Johnson in a veto address against the reconstruction
act, these rebels were imposing "a Bill of attainder against nine million"
citizens of several States in the United States of America. Now you might question this
statement, that the second section of the Thirteenth Amendment formed a new [de facto]
government. But, we raise this question, if the United States Government had the power to
legislate in matters of Black persons and State sovereignty, why was it deemed necessary
to vest new power in Congress to enforce the Thirteenth Amendment by its second section?
Aren't Congress' powers to legislate and enforce legislation vested by Article I? Or, did
Congress know they were perverting the Constitution and dismantling our sovereignty as
"one People," and that no such power existed? This first grab for sovereignty
was completed with the adoption of the Fifteenth Amendment, which alleges to give
political franchise to other than White persons. In short, the chain of events to this
point were:
1). Free slaves;
2). Congress claimed the power to legislate not only to free slaves, but to
confer further privileges upon those persons previously held in slavery, in
violation of State Constitutions which secured the right to vote to only the male White
population;
3). Congress claimed power to make their own citizens;
4). In violation of the Preamble to the Constitution, Congress claimed power
to confer political franchise to those persons they claimed to confer
citizenship to. This effectively disfranchised the lawful citizens [White persons born or
naturalized in one of the States] and deprived the States,
Northern as well as Southern, of their sovereignty to legislate on matters that had been
established to be exclusively within their sovereign authority
for close to a century past.
Not only did Congress pervert the Constitution with a purposeful design to do so, but gave
political franchise [unlawfully] to those persons that would maintain the Feds.' de facto
power. Because provision was made for a new class of citizenship, a citizenship of
"persons subject to the jurisdiction thereof" that is jurisdiction of the
Fed., Congress saw a new capability of taxation, some forty years later, in the form of an
excise on this statutory privilege of [de factor] citizenship. This realization led to the
proposal and adoption of the Sixteenth Amendment, for the purpose of collecting the tax.
CIVIL WAR
In the guise of the Roman Catholic Church, the Red Dragon, who was,
"...wroth with the woman {National Israel -- United States} went to make war with the
remnant of her seed, which {nationally} keep the {10} commandments of God and have the
testimony of Jesus Christ."
Since the Dragon was not able to destroy the "manchild nation" {America} as soon
as it was born, sought to exterminate it with his secret weapon masquerading as the Roman
Catholic Church.
Samuel Morse, father of electronic telegraphy, found out about the conspiracy of Rome to
kill our young American Republic and published in 1834 his remarkable work,
"CONSPIRACIES AGAINST THE LIBERTIES OF THE U.S." The book which revealed this
bit of information on page 290, also carried this quotation:
"It is under those bloody banners {religious massacres in Europe} of 6,000 Roman
Catholic priest, Jesuits and Bishops, in the United States, and marching to the conquest
of this republic, backed by their seven millions of blind and obedient slaves...A
political conspiracy under the cloak of a religious mission was formed against the U.S.,
yes, without Romanism, the last awful Civil War would have been impossible, Jeff Davis
would never have dared to attack the North, had he not had assurance from the Pope, the
Jesuits, the Bishops, the Priests and the whole people of the Church of Rome under the
name and mask of Democracy, except they would help him." ; "THE JESUITS ARE A
MILITARY ORGANIZATION, not a religious order. Their chief is a general of an army, not the
mere father abbot of a monastery. And the aim of this organization is: POWER. Power in its
most despotic exercise. Absolute power, universal power, power to control the world by the
volition of a single man. Jesuitism is the most enormous of abuses." ; "Pope
Gregory VII decided it was not murder to kill excommunicated persons. This rule was
incorporated in the canon law. During the revision of the code, which took place in the
16th century, and which produced a whole volume of corrections, the passage was allowed to
stand. It appears in every reprint of the Corpus Juris. It has been for 700 years, and
continues to be, part of the ecclesiastical law. Far from being a dead letter, it obtained
a new application in the days of the Inquisition; and one of the later Popes has declared
that the murder of a Protestant is so good a deed that it atones, and more than atones,
for the murder of a Catholic."
"Has the Church of Rome expressed any regret for having
promulgated and executed such bloody laws? No! On the contrary, she has anathematized all
those who think or say that she was wrong when she deluged the world with the blood of the
millions she ordered to be slaughtered to quench her thirst for blood; she positively said
that she had the right to punish those heretics by tortures and death. Those bloody and
anti-social laws, were written on the banners of the Roman Catholics, when slaughtering
100,000 Waldenses in the mountains of Piedmont, more than 50,000 defenseless men, women
and children in the city of Bezieres.
It is under the inspiration of those diabolical laws of Rome,
that 75,000 Protestants were massacred the night and following week of St Bartholomew. It
was to obey those bloody laws that Louis XIV revoked the Edict of Nates, caused the death
of half a million of men, women, and children, who perished in all the highways of France,
and caused twice that number to die in the land of exile, where they had found a refuge.
Those anti-social laws, today, are written on her banners with the blood of ten millions
of martyrs. It is under those bloody banners that 6,000 Roman Catholic priests, Jesuits
and bishops, in the United States, are marching to the conquest of this republic, backed
by their seven millions of blind and obedient slaves. Those laws, are still the ruling
laws of Rome, were the main cause of the last rebellion of the Southern States.
Yes! Without Romanism, the last awful Civil War would have been
impossible. Jeff Davis would never have dared to attack the North, had he not had
assurance from the Pope, that the Jesuits, the bishops, the priests and the whole people
of the Church of Rome, under the name and mask of democracy, would help him. These
diabolical and anti-social laws of Rome caused a Roman Catholic to be the man chosen to
fire the first gun at Fort Sumter, against the flag of Liberty, on the 12th of April,
1861. Those anti-Christian and anti-social laws caused the Pope of Rome to be the only
crowned prince in the whole world, so depraved as to publicly shake hands with Jeff Davis,
and proclaim him president of a legitimate government.
These are the laws which led the assassins of Abraham Lincoln to
the house of a rabid Roman Catholic woman, Mary Surratt, which was not only the rendezvous
of the priests of Washington, but the very dwelling-house of some of them. Those bloody
and infernal laws of Rome nerved the arm of the Roman Catholic, Booth, when he slaughtered
one of the noblest men God has ever given to the world. Those bloody and anti-social laws
of Rome, after having covered Europe with ruins, tears, and blood for ten centuries, have
crossed the oceans to continue their work of slavery and desolation, blood and tears,
ignorance and demoralization, on this continent. Under the mask and name of democracy they
have raised the standard of rebellion of the South against the North, and caused more than
half a million of the most heroic sons of America to fall on the fields of carnage. In the
very near future, if God does not miraculously prevent it, those laws of dark deeds and
blood will cause the prosperity, the rights, the education, and the liberties of this too
confident nation to be buried under the mountain of smoking and bloody ruins. On the top
of that mountain, Rome will raise her throne and plant her victorious banners." .
Lincoln was quoted to have said:
"We owe it to the Popery that we now see our land reddened
with the blood of her noble sons. Though there were differences of opinion between the
South and the North, on the question of slavery, neither Jeff Davis nor anyone of the
leading men of the Confederacy would have dared to attack the North, had they not relied
on the PROMISES OF THE JESUITS, that...THE MONEY and the ARMS of the ROMAN CATHOLIC
CHURCH, and even the arms of France were at their disposal, if they would attack us. I
pity the Priests, the Bishops and the Monks of Rome in the United States, when the people
realize that they are in GREAT PART RESPONSIBLE for the TEARS and BLOOD SHED in this war.
I conceal what I know, for if the people knew the whole truth, this war would turn into a
religious war, and at once, take a tenfold more savage and bloody character. It would
become merciless as all religious wars are. It would become a war of extermination on both
sides.
The Protestants of both the North and South would surely unite to
exterminate the Priests and Jesuits, if they could hear what Professor Morse has said to
me of the plots made in the very city of Rome to destroy this Republic, and if they could
learn how the Priests, the Nuns, and the Monks, which daily land on our shores, under the
pretext of preaching their religion, instructing the people in their schools, taking care
of the sick in the hospitals, are nothing but the emissaries of the Pope, of Napoleon and
the other despots of Europe, to undermine our institutions, alienate the hearts of our
people from our Constitution and our laws, destroy our schools, and prepare a reign of
anarchy here as they have done in Ireland, in Mexico, in Spain and wherever there are any
people who want to be free...New projects of assassination are detected almost every day,
accom-panied with such savage circumstances that they bring to my memory the massacre of
St. Bartholomew and the Gunpowder Plot.
Our investigation indicates that they come from the same masters
in the art of murder, the Jesuits. The New York riots were evidently a Romish plot from
beginning to end. We have the proofs in hand that they were the work of Bishop Hughes and
his emissaries. No doubt can remain about the bloody attempts of Rome to destroy New York,
when we know the easy way it was stopped. I wrote to Bishop Hughes, telling him that the
whole country would hold him responsible for it if he would not stop it at once. He then
gathered the rioters around his palace, called them his 'dear friends,' invited them to go
back home peacefully, and all was finished!...From the beginning of our civil war, there
has been, not a secret, but a public alliance, between the Pope of Rome and Jeff Davis.
The pope and his Jesuits have advised, supported, and directed Jeff Davis on the land,
from the first gun shot at Fort Sumter by the Rabid Roman Catholic Beauregard. They are
helping him on the sea by guiding and supporting the rabid Roman Catholic pirate, Semmes,
on the ocean...The pope has thrown away the mask, and shown himself the public partisan
and the protector of the rebellion, by taking Jeff Davis by the hand, and impudently
recognizing the Southern States as a legitimate government. I have the proof in hand that
that very Bishop Hughes, whom I had sent to Rome...is the very man who advised the pope to
recognize the legitimacy of the Southern republic, and put the whole weight of his tiara
in the balance against us in favor of our enemies! Such is the perfidity of those
Jesuits."
JUDAH P. BENJAMIN, ROTHSCHILD AGENT
"Napoleon's object was to assure the predomination of the French over the Latin races
and to augment the influence of these races in America. Napoleon decided to recognize the
independence of the rebellious American States and repeatedly urged the British government
to join him in so doing."
Judah P. Benjamin was chosen by the Rothschilds to do their work in the United States and
he was the first adviser to Jefferson Davis, the President of the Southern Confederacy.
Benjamin has been called "the brains of the revolt." He was also the Secretary
of State of the Confederacy under Jeff Davis. The Confederacy consisted of eleven Southern
States bound by a written Constitution, modeled in part after our own Constitution. It was
founded on the fundamental principle that each one of its eleven constituted States had
the right to secede from the Union, or to separate from the other 23 out of the 34 states
of the Union.
Nevertheless, at the instigation of Benjamin, and under pressure of Napoleon, Texas and
Louisiana were placed on the bargain counter in exchange, presumably, for Napoleon's aid.
The latter was supported by Disraeli of England, who had assured the Confederacy of the
support of Britain behind the nine remaining States, after Texas and Louisiana were to be
ceded to France.
Under the guiding hand of Judah P. Benjamin, chosen by the Rothschilds and the Church of
Rome to represent the International Bankers to do their work for them in the United
States, was also the first advisor to Jefferson Davis, the President of the Southern
Confederacy. Benjamin is reputed to have been the "brains of the revolt," as he
was also the Secretary of State of the Confederacy. Through the hands of this man, huge
sums of money were provided to finance the destruction of this great New Christian
American Republic flowed.
The Confederacy fell and the men who had fought a valiant fight for what they believed
right were thrown into the even greater travail of the Reconstruction; while Judah P.
Benjamin, almost alone of the leaders of the South, forsook immediately the suffering
people WHO HAD HONORED AND ENRICHED HIM, fled to England and was soon embarked upon a new
career of distinction and wealth, REMINISCENT OF OTHERS OF HIS RACE dispossessed of their
temporary cause and gains.
While we are talking of the Civil War it behooves us to mention that ABRAHAM LINCOLN WAS
ASSASSINATED BY JOHN WILKES BOOTH. That the plot of Booth, involved not only the
assassination of Lincoln, which was accomplished, but also the assassination on the same
night of the Vice President, Andrew Johnson, of the Secretary of State, William H. Seward,
and of General Ulysses S. Grant. Seward, who was ill at his home, was stabbed, as was also
his son, Frederick Seward, by David E. Herold, a co-conspirator with Booth, who was
hanged.
Vice President Johnson escaped injury, but George A. Atzerodt was hanged for conspiring
with Booth to kill him. General Grant, who was to have attended the theater with Lincoln
that night, due to an unexpected departure for Burlington, New Jersey, was unharmed.
"John Booth, A Jewish silversmith whose ancestors had been exiled from Portugal
because of their radical political views. In London the refugees had continued their trade
and free thinking, and John had married Wilkes' cousin. This Wilkes was the 'celebrated
agitator John Wilkes of Westminster, London...John Wilkes Booth's father was Junius Brutus
Booth."
Our American school children have been taught that the Civil War was fought over the
slavery problem, but this was only a surface issue to hide the intrigue of the Great Red
Dragon to foment one side against the other. After thousands of our choice White Israel
sons and one of our greatest Presidents were murdered, our Great God stopped the slaughter
of the Dragon -- BY THE INTERVENTION OF THE CZAR OF RUSSIA, WHO GOD SENT TO OUR NATIONAL
RESCUE, BUT UNKNOWN TO MOST AMERICANS.
Our childrens' history textbooks continue to teach that the American Civil War was fought
over the Slavery issue. But if we look behind the scenes we will find that the "slave
question" was but the surface issue. Below the surface ran a current of intrigue that
ended with the assassination of Abraham Lincoln because he was determined that the United
States was to be free from the bondage of the International Jewish Bankers. The part the
Catholic Church through the Jesuits has already been presented. Now we will present the
"Rest of The Story." In 1857, the Rothschild Illuminati
bankers ruled Europe.
DIVISION OF U.S. PLOTTED IN LONDON
Disraeli, the late Prime Minister of England, determined to divide the United States and
give one part to Lionel {Rothschild}. Thus the North would become a British Colony annexed
to Canada. The South would go to Napoleon {Rothschild}. In the year 1857, the money power
of old Europe was centered in the House of Rothschild. Disraeli represented them in
England; Napoleon III in France; Bismarck in Germany and Mazzini in Italy.
According to Mr. John Reeves, who wrote on page 228, of an authorized biography entitled
"The Rothschilds, The Financial Rulers of Nations," based on research in their
own archives, there was a famous meeting in the City of London in 1857. The great
Rothschild family was assembled from the countries of Europe for the marriage of Lionel
Rothschild's daughter, Leonora, to her cousin, Alphonse, son of James Rothschild of Paris.
It was at this time Disraeli is reported to have said:
"Under this roof are the heads of the family of Rothschild, a name famous in every
capital of Europe and every division of the globe. If you like, we shall divide the United
States into two parts, one for you, James, and one for you, Lionel. Napoleon will do
exactly and all that I shall advise him."
Thus, in London, we see a plan fostered by the money power of Europe, moving in on
America, and pitting the North against the South under the old principle of "divide
and conquer."
Remember that the Civil War with all of its suffering, blood shed and death was calmly
planned and blueprinted by the Satanic Rothschild bankers in Europe and in conjunction
with their agents who control the Catholic Church from behind the scenes, in 1857. The
Rothschild, Jewish, Zionist triumvirate in obedience to their Bilderberger comrades did
the same with World Wars I and II, Korea and Vietnam.
INTERVENTION OF THE CZAR OF RUSSIA SAVED THE UNITED STATES
Disraeli and the Catholic Church had already assured the Confederacy of Britain's support.
However, this was not to help the South; it was to crush both the North and the South and
to conquer and possess both. As a result, English, French and Spanish troops were landed
at Vera Cruz in 1862. The French General, Bazaine, occupied the capitol of Mexico at the
time. So Napoleon was ready to strike and help divide and destroy the United States. The
danger was great. The situation looked hopeless. Understanding the situation Lincoln spent
long nights in humble prayer to Almighty God. He knew the North, alone, could not
withstand such a combination. Moreover, Archduke Maximilian had been induced to accept the
throne of Mexico.
But God stepped in. Fortunately God in His wisdom exposed this Satanic plot to the
Christian Czar of Russia through his Ambassadors in Paris and London; who upon learning of
the Rothschild - Disraeli - Catholic - Napoleonic plot immediately dispatched a fleet of
ships and men to San Francisco under the command of Admiral S. Lesowsky.
He also rushed a squadron to New York to New York under the command of Admiral A.A.
Popoff. Both Admirals had orders from the Czar to be ready to fight any power {nation} on
earth, and TO TAKE THEIR ORDERS DIRECTLY FROM PRESIDENT ABRAHAM LINCOLN; AND HIM ALONE.
Needless to say, this quick, generous and vigorous action saved the United States from the
intrigue of the International Bankers. So James Rothschild was left without Mexico and the
Southern States, and Lionel could not capture the North through military measures. But the
European Machevillis were determined on financial conquest, if not actual slavery. At the
same time, this great and good Christian Czar, who, as the servant of Almighty God and by
His Power, saved the United States, lovingly and voluntarily emancipated 47 million serfs
on September 19, 1861, and TRANSLATED THE ENTIRE BIBLE into the Russian language.
For his courageous and benevolent acts, he was murdered by the Atheistic, God-hating,
one-world, bankers in 1881. He was another casualty in the conflict of the ages. The
conflict between right and wrong, light and darkness, good and evil, Christ and
anti-Christ, God and Satan. The same devils murdered Lincoln on April 4, 1865. The history
books lie about why Booth killed Lincoln. Coded messages in Booth's trunk and the key to
these codes in Judah P. Benjamin's possession proved that Lincoln WAS MURDERED BY ORDERS
FROM THE JEWISH ROTHSCHILD BANKERS. Their successors are still doing the same today.
BOOTH'S CODE
FOUND IN BENJAMIN TRUNK
The good Czar, after several unsuccessful attempts on his life, was murdered in 1881.
Lincoln was murdered in 1865, on April 4th, by an actor, John Wilkes Booth, in whose trunk
was found coded messages the key to which was found in Judah P. Benjamin's possession.
Benjamin escaped to England where he later died. The Czar, Alexander II, had been
responsible on September 19, 1861, by imperial decree, for emancipating the Russian serfs,
in number over 47-million. Serfdom in Russia was ended by the stroke of a pen. But in the
United States, it took billions of dollars and oceans of blood to free three million, not
serfs, but slaves, because of an infamous plot of English and European Jewish money lords.
The Sixteenth Amendment contains the same provision granting the Fed. power as is
contained in the Thirteenth, Fourteenth, and Fifteenth Amendments. "We the
People's" sovereignty was thus dissipated and those obtaining the sovereignty, by
personal privilege legislation, were being taxed for the privilege as were corporations
for exercising the privilege of incorporation. Those hidden figures that were instrumental
in creation this de facto government [the Fed.], the centralization of power wasn't
sufficient to meet their ends.
The reason it wasn't sufficient is because after emotional hostility had ceased, for the
most part, the States still had enough power, while being free of ignorant emotional
public opinion, to reverse the process that had been set in motion. The State legislatures
still maintained their ability to exercise sovereignty in the Senate of the U.S. Congress
and through election of the President.
One way the States could regain the sovereignty already lost was by only placing Senators
to the Senate that would refuse to appropriate the money necessary to maintain the Fed. de
factor authority and the Feds., acts against the sovereignty of the States and their
lawful sovereign bodies, thereby choking the Fed., out of existence so the lawful United
States Government could return to power. The State legislatures had this ability because
they elected the Senators for Congress as provided by Article I Section 3 of the United
States Constitution.
"The Senate of the United States shall be composed of two senators from each State,
chosen by the legislature thereof..."
To disable the State legislatures in this area the rebels of the de facto Fed. and their
hidden consorts devised the Seventeenth Amendment, which allowed the defacto citizens,
created by the Thirteenth, Fourteenth and Fifteenth Amendments, to elect Senators by
popular vote, depriving the State Legislatures of another foothold of sovereignty.
Because not all the States would allow this latest perversion, the Seventeenth Amendment
was declared a part of the Constitution on ratification of three fourths of the several
States in violation of the Fifth Article of the United States Constitution, which required
consent of every State that was deprived of their legislatures' suffrage in the Senate.
"...no State, without its consent, shall be deprived of its equal Suffrage in the
senate."
In 1920, to further perpetuate this scheme, the rebels added a new twist to their method
of attack on this once White Christian Nation. An attack which would reach into our very
homes and families. Not only in violation of the Common Law and the Constitution, but also
in violation of Gods Law concerning the so-called fair sex. This new twist was the
Nineteenth Amendment, which gave women suffrage. Not only did this set husband and wife at
odds to nullify each others' votes at the polls and cause disruption over politics in the
home, [no man can serve two masters Matthew 6:24] but it created a new political franchise
that would place women, exercising suffrage, in the same legal status as the non-white,
non-citizens that had previously been politically franchised by the Fed. These rebel,
usurping, manipulators understand human nature very well as they and their ancestors have
already shown in past history,
1). A female is generally of a tender nature filled with compassions governed
more easily by emotion that could be manipulated through the media,
without this special tenderness a woman just would not be a woman;
2). They knew this would weaken the family structure by giving husband and
wife the opportunity not to act as one as required by their vows; and,
3). They knew they had an emotional lever on women where their children were
concerned, and because of this the woman might vote for measures
that
could be given the appearance of providing immediate security for their families, while
further depriving the family of the oneness to act as a
whole when
exercising the sovereignty to govern and maintain their sovereign Common Law rights
intact. Little does anyone realize that when the
womens' vote is
being appealed to pass legislation, that in many cases, passage of the legislation would
harm their children in the unforeseen future
while giving the
appearance of immediate benefits, thereby breaking down the family government structure.
However, the White Males' sovereignty, in their persons, still was not completely
subjected to the jurisdiction of the Fed., so in 1935 after the passage of the Federal
Reserve Act and the artificial depression these rebel usurpers were able to create through
the Federal Reserve Act, the Social Security Act was passed into law by the Fed.
Congress claimed, once more, to make such legislation under all the aforementioned de
facto powers and franchises which allegedly consolidated sovereignty in the Feds., hands.
All of these perversions of our Christian Nation and our Constitution and the Bill of
Rights were now brought to bear upon the last vestige of the lawful sovereign body, the
White Male Common Law Citizen. And an artificial depression forced or coerced the majority
into signing a maritime Social Insurance Policy , that is sign up for Social Security
benefits in order that they and theirs might survive this crisis. While others probably
did it because they were led to believe it was the patriotic thing to do.
By the individual signature of each White Male citizen the rebels collect most of the
remaining Sovereign body of the de jure [lawful] government into the camp of the rebels.
They were now, as stated in the Fourteenth Amendment, "subject to the jurisdiction
thereof" [the jurisdiction of the Fed.], that is subject in their person and in all
their personal affairs, as were those persons previously franchised by the previous
unconstitutional and totally revolutionary acts of these rebels which have perverted our
nation and its government. The final major proposal these rebels made against the lawful
Constitution of the United States of America was the Twenty- fourth Amendment which
provides for the popular election of the President of the United States.
The last chance of the State Legislatures to choke the Fed. through putting a man in
office that would veto appropriation for Fed. rebels ends, was dismembered. Also by
popular vote of Senators and the President, every person that exercises the franchise
agrees that the de facto Fed. as designed is the de jure [lawful] government for them. Can
anyone doubt that the acts and omissions that can readily be seen in the last 120 years of
our nations history prove a positive design and almost full completion of a plan to
destroy the governments and sovereignties formed and protected under the United States
Constitution, its Bill of Rights, and the individual States Constitutions? The plan is
clear,
1). Devise means to divest the sovereign body and their State governments of
their power and sovereignty;
2). Create new sovereignties and political franchises which by operation of
law automatically vest all power in the central government, while totally
subjecting themselves to it; and,
3). Implement the plan slowly and methodically so it can be made acceptable
by means of coercive economic, political and falsely reported moral
conditions, with use of the media to report the views of the rebels while depriving the
lawful sovereigns access to any media by which they could
report to their fellow citizens.
It is clear under these conditions;
a). The State and Local Governments are mere subdivisions of the Fed.
disguised as States;
b). The 10 regions of Federal Regional Government are now exercising the
power of the States with all sovereignty completely vested in the Fed;
c). "We the People" are now considered subjects of the Fed;
d). The United States, today, for the most part is the de factor Fed
look-alike disguised as the lawful government, intended by the Framers and We the
People of the Constitution and the
Bill of Rights, and We the People, (See the definitions of de facto and de jure government
in the various legal
dictionaries); and
e). Finally that if the lawful sovereign body did not remove themselves from
this rebel jurisdiction and assert their power and sovereignty, we will be
controlled by a despotism that will make the despotism of King George in the 1700's look
like a benevolent dictator.
REPUBLIC AND THE RACE
The first deception and usurpation took place when Congress began authorizing statehood
predicated upon state constitutions that did not follow the Common Law principle of
designating one race to govern. The first examples of that were the admissions of such
states as Washington, Montana and others. This was the beginning of the conversion [or
should we say perversion] of our "Nation" to a socialist republic, a republic
within the framework of international law. The lie put forth was, that to establish a One
Race Republic [One Race Governing] was prejudicial and un-Christian. THE PEOPLE WERE TOLD
BY THEIR PREACHERS, MINISTERS, PRIESTS, EVANGELISTS AND ETC., THE BIBLICAL MANDATE TO BE
"SEPARATED" WAS NO LONGER VALID. THIS WAS A DELIBERATE LIE! But that was merely
the first in a whole series of alterations implemented to defeat the Common Law form of
Republic; to destroy our Christian Nation and to enslave the Citizens thereof. Alteration
of the Republic required three main points of attack. These were and are:
1). The "People" must be convinced that miscegenation [Race Mixing]
is authorized by the Law of our Father in Heaven, and thus is condoned by the
Christian Faith;
2). The "People" must be convinced to alter the constitutions of
their separate states and the United States of America to coincide with this new
interpretation of Christian doctrine;
3). The co-equal character of the three branches of government must be
removed and one branch must be made the "highest organ of state power;" or
put another
way, one branch must be given power over the other two. Of course, the People must either
be persuaded that this is acceptable or kept
in such a state of ignorance that
they don't know they no longer have three co-equal branches. The task of persuasion can be
accomplished either
through
propaganda or by force of arms.
The current system has been put in place through stealth, deceit, fraud and treason. The
task of "persuasion" will only become necessary when the fraud is generally
discovered and the legitimacy of the system is widely challenged and denied by a
significant portion of the citizenry. Up until now, the enemies of this once Christian
Nation could claim that we gave our consent to all this. When it becomes obvious that we
did not and the illusion can no longer be maintained, then the die will be cast and they
must act to preserve themselves.
ONE RACE, ONE FAITH, ONE LAW
Fact one, to be within the framework of a Christian Common Law Republic, one race must
govern [Hold the sovereignty]. Alter this fact and you must alter all other provisions of
your constitutions. Alter the provisions of your constitutions, where the government is
one of law [That is, one that exists by written constitution], as in our Nations case,
then you alter the government itself. However, bear in mind that for this to be possible
it must be preceded by a change in religion, from Christianity to a false
"Judeo-Christianity." Take for instance the Thirteenth Amendment. Its stated
purpose was to end slavery in the United States. But was the Thirteenth Amendment
necessary to accomplish the abolition of slavery?
With the passage of time, it has become clear -- THE THIRTEENTH AMENDMENT WAS NOT NEEDED
TO END SLAVERY. ITS SOLE PURPOSE WAS TO END STATE SOVEREIGNTY. "We the People"
did not have to add to the citizenry [The Black People] those of another race who were not
of the "posterity." "We the People" did not have to alter our Common
Law Republics to accomplish the end of slavery in America. BUT, THEN, "WE THE
PEOPLE" DIDN'T PASS THE THIRTEENTH AND FOURTEENTH AMENDMENTS EITHER, THE SEVERAL
STATE LEGISLATURES DID!
Now you can begin to perceive a hidden purpose in the events that lead up to the war
between the District of Columbia and the Southern States and climaxed with the alleged
adoption of those amendments. Their purpose was NOT TO FREE THE BLACKS, IT WAS TO ENSLAVE
US THE WHITE RACE AS WELL! Through the hidden ramifications of those Satanic, anti-Christ
measures, we the White Race have almost been placed in the exact same status that the
Black Race formerly occupied in this land. South Africa and tiny Iceland are the last
governments on this earth that are of, by, and for, the White Race and restrict their
citizenship accordingly.
When they are gone, we will no longer have a government anywhere on this earth that even
pretends to represent the White Race and we will then be a prey to all comers under the
law of nations, just as blacks once were. In so far as the Fed., is concerned, we are
already there. That was accomplished relative to domestic politics when "Free
White" was removed from the last state constitution.
RELIGION AND LAW MUST AGREE
Secondly, you cannot alter the Laws of a Christian Nation until you alter that Nation's
Christian Doctrine. A change in the nation's laws must be proceeded by a change in the
nations religion, because religion is ALWAYS the SOURCE of Law! When you research the
early constitutions of the several states you will find all of them established only White
Males as the body politic, or, in other words; White Males only could vote and hold
office; White Males only could govern. This held true since the Christian doctrine was
that the head of a household is responsible for his wife and children, being their
protector, their voice and their provider, insulating the family from the world at large,
both in law and in fact.
Today the state says, "We have jurisdiction over your wife and children." The
type of situation we are experiencing today is unheard of in a Christian Common Law
Republic, but, common place in a socialist/communist republic. In a Republic where the
sovereignty is predicated upon one race and one race only, miscegenation is perceived as
being treasonous. Why? Because it destroys the race comprising the sovereign body,
subverts the organization of the lawful government, and makes the entire reason for the
existence of the Republic a nullity; a moot question if you will. Only White Males voted
in our Christian Common Law Republic. The citizenship established by the organic law was
exclusive! But in a socialist/communist state, anyone can vote, regardless of race, color,
creed, or sex. The Fourteenth Amendment purports to establish a uniform and universal
citizenship of subjects in the socialist vein.
There are three co-equal branches of government in a Christian Common Law Republic, but,
only one branch of government holds the power as "the highest organ of state
power" in a socialist/communist republic. Our Saviour, The Lord Jesus Christ, said
His Word is the same yesterday, today and tomorrow . His government is founded upon a
perpetual law, a perpetual faith and a perpetual constitution. If we believe the
Scriptures and this is true, then, how and when did Christian Doctrine change from that
which established a Christian Common Law Republic to that which is required in a
socialist-communist republic? Did Our Father [God] or the Lord Jesus Christ alter His Law?
Not according to Scripture!
Today preachers condone miscegenation, get licenses to preach, encourage our children to
get marriage licenses, social security numbers, drivers licenses, or, in other words, the
preachers tell us and our children to surrender to Baal as they themselves have done. If
the preachers of this nation were teaching true Christian Doctrine instead of pagan fables
and were adhering to the Christian Doctrine of our forefathers, our state constitutions
would still be in the Christian Common Law Republic form.
"And Jesus knew their thoughts, and said unto them, Every kingdom divided against
itself is brought to desolation; and every city or house divided against itself shall not
stand."
The Moffatt translation says:
"As Jesus knew what they were thinking, he said to them, Any realm divided against
itself comes to ruin, any city or house divided against itself will never stand."
Smith-Goodspeed translation states it this way:
"But he [Christ] knew what they were thinking, and he said to them, Any kingdom that
is disunited is on the way to destruction, and any city or household that is disunited
cannot last."
APPLICATION OF THE SOVIET PRINCIPLE
Thirdly, to prove facts one and two above, it will be necessary to examine the amending of
the state constitutions since there are certain articles which, if amended, effect other
articles of the same. In every state admitted to the Union prior to the war between the
states, the citizenship was restricted and exclusive to the White Race.
After the war, these were amended under the compulsion of martial law to comply with the
Fourteenth. The state officials were faced with the choice of enforcing the Fourteenth
over the organic Law of their respective states and committing treason thereby or
continuing to obey their state constitutions and face diminishment of representation in
Congress. They could not lawfully act in contravention of their state constitutions and
adopt the Fourteenth which was only a power contemplative within the District of Columbia
and its enclaves, if at all.
Prior to the Fourteenth and Fifteenth Amendments, all the state constitutions permitted
only White Male Citizens to vote. After their adoption, the state constitutions were
changed to permit every "citizen" of the "United States" who is a
"resident" to vote. Of course, when it is known that the term "United
States" as used in the Fourteenth means the District of Columbia, the complete thrust
and intent with respect to the expansion of Article I, Section 8, Clause 17 becomes
obvious. This proves how the state constitutions, through amendment, have removed the One
Race [Nation] body politic [Government] designation. It also proves the statement that we
are becoming more like the U.S.S.R. in our form of government and our order of law.
"Uniform Union citizenship is established for citizens of the USSR.";
"Every citizen of a Union Republic is a citizen of the USSR." ; "Any direct
or indirect restriction of the rights of, or, conversely, the establishment of any direct
or indirect privileges for, citizens on account of their race of nationality, as well as
any advocacy or racial or national exclusiveness or hatred and contempt, is punish-able by
law." ; "Equality of rights of citizens of the USSR, irrespective of their
nationality or race, in all spheres of economic, government, cultural, political and other
activity, is an indefeasible law."
Examine the principles of "Social Structure" for a socialist/communist republic.
"The Union of Soviet Socialist Republics is a socialist state of workers and
peasants." ; "Work in the USSR is a duty and a matter of honor for every
ablebodied citizen, in accordance with the principle: 'He who does not work, neither shall
he eat.'"; "THE PRINCIPLE APPLIED IN THE USSR IS THAT OF SOCIALISM [Communism]:
'From each according to his ability, to each according to his work.'"
IS THE PURPOSE OF THE AMERICAN CONSTITUTION SOCIALISM/COMMUNISM? At one time the Supreme
Court of the United States held the view that "New Deal," socialist-communist,
legislation very similar to the Social Security Act was unconstitutional. But, the Court
withdrew from this opinion in later years, after "We the People" had shown our
acceptance of it by our individual signatures [In multiple millions] upon the individual
contracts for SOCIAL INSURANCE. Of course, the Constitution of the U.S.S.R. embraces
universal social insurance.
"Citizens of the USSR have the right to maintenance in old age and also in case of
sickness and disability." ; "This Right is ensured by the extensive development
of SOCIAL INSURANCE of factory and office workers at state expense, free medical service
for the working people, and the provision of a wide network of health resorts for the use
of the working people."
SOCIAL SECURITY ACT OF THE UNITED STATES
"The board shall perform the duties imposed upon it by this Act and shall also have
the duty of studying and making recommendations as to the most effective methods of
providing ECONOMIC SECURITY THROUGH SOCIAL INSURANCE, and as to legislation and matters of
administrative policy concerning OLD-AGE PENSIONS, UNEMPLOYMENT COMPENSATION, ACCIDENT
COMPENSATION, and related subjects."
Clearly "social insurance" is socialism/communism. Does the Supreme Court now
believe that socialism is constitutional? That communism is constitutional in America? Or
is it that the Supreme Court has no choice? Just what conditions could force the Supreme
Court to follow the principles set out in the constitution of the U.S.S.R.? Only one
answer is possible.
"We the People" have allowed our state and national constitutions to be amended
to bring them within the guidelines of a socialist/communist republic. Considering the
attitude of socialism communism toward Christianity and the Scriptures generally, we have
abandoned the Word of God and the Christian Common Law that put His Word into practice in
our society.
We have altered not only our form of Government [or at least permitted it to be done for
us] but also have abandoned his [God's] Law and with it our Hereditary National Christian
Faith. They are all inseparable. You can't have one without the others! What did Christ
teach us on this point? Do you remember the Lord's Prayer?
"Thy Kingdom [God's government/kingdom] come, thy will be done, ON EARTH as it is in
Heaven."
COUNTERFEIT RELIGION
To substantiate all of the foregoing, we only have to prove one more fact, that the states
individually and collectively have abandoned the Christian Common Law principle of
government that represented and embodied the triune character of God. That is to say, that
"We the People" have reduced, by the amending process, our state and national
governments to one branch of power and have abandoned the three co-equal branch Christian
principle of government. The alteration had to begin with the state constitutions, since
the United States, under Article IV, Section 4 was bound to support and guarantee every
state a republican form of government; which means that Congress would have to support
those state constitutions that provided for a Christian Common Law Republic form of
government.
The first alteration had to be to remove the constitutional distinction as to which Race
would govern. This, in turn, would open the door for the socialists/communists to
introduce international principles of toleration for all RACES, colors and CREEDS into our
domestic scene, and of course into our domestic constitutions. Thus, through the
Fourteenth and Fifteenth Amendments, the socialists/communists obtained the power of the
vote [ballot box] to accomplish their ultimate ends.
To accommodate all creeds [which includes all non-Christian, anti-Christ religions] they
had to change the Christian Doctrine of the nation by convincing the governing people that
the Christians that founded our Christian Republics errored in their understanding of our
Father's Laws as set out in the Old and New Testaments of the Holy Bible. Note how Judge
Rives in his decision tries to justify the fourteenth statutory article to the
triune government of a State: his problem is that, under the triune form of government, he
knows the county and city/town officials are not subject to obey the Fourteenth statutory
article. The first fallacy that was presented as Christian Doctrine was that the coming of
Christ put away the Law of the Old Testament. This fallacy, like virtually all of the
"Judeo-Christian" viewpoint, was gleaned, falsely, from the writings of Pau.
It was presented, by the anti-Christs in our country, in various and increasing degrees as
justification for disregarding the Old Testament. This PERVERSION OF SCRIPTURAL DOCTRINE
now unabashedly denies that the statutes, commandments and judgments of the Father ever
had any relevance or validity with regard to life on earth and totally embraces the
egalitarian universalist propaganda of the Jewish Talmud and its child, INTERNATIONAL
COMMUNISM. Of course, it includes a complete disregard for the Divine Law of "kind
after kind" and the injunction against placing strangers in positions of authority
over us. The tolerance for government officers outside the original governing Race
[nation] and for miscegenation [Race Mixing] is now sanctioned by government edict.
In a truly Christian Republic, and Christian Nation [Which America once was], the above is
a bunch of hogwash, they are Jewish Fables. The words of Christ refute these delusions:
"Think not that I am come to destroy the law, or the prophets: I am not come to
destroy, but to fulfil. For verily I say unto you, till heaven and earth pass, one jot or
one tittle shall in no wise pass from the law, till all be fulfilled."
Has the earth passed? We are still standing on it, are we not? How do Christians figure
the Old Testament is no longer valid? Are the Ten Commandments put away as well? OF COURSE
NOT! HOW UTTERLY STUPID CAN OUR SO-CALLED CHURCH LEADERS BE? Consider what an affront and
crime it is against our God to place in our government one who openly states that he is
not a believer in Jesus Christ or one who openly denies that Christ came in the flesh!
Does it make any sense to place such as these in our legislative bodies and upon the
benches in our judicial offices? Do you really believe that you can argue law and doctrine
predicated upon Christian principle before these people and receive a Christian Judgment?
NOT IN A PIGS EYE YOU CAN'T! Christian Law does not allow non-Christians to hold office or
sit in judgment over Christians. How can a non-Christian wield authority in a Christian
Government? IT'S UTTERLY ABSURD! IT CAN'T BE DONE!
COUNTERFEIT GOVERNMENT
How then did it come about? It is the Fourteenth Amendment that allows those who are
anti-Christ to hold office and sit in judgment in our land. Obviously, then, the
Fourteenth Amendment is un-Christian. Evil cannot proceed from good; good cannot come of
that which is evil. Decide for yourself. Once the breach in Christian Common Law was
accomplished [one race sovereignty] the door was opened to destroy the Christian Doctrine
represented by three co-equal branches of government, at both the state and national
levels. First, the national legislators proposed the thirteenth Amendment.
The Congressional purpose as embodied in the Thirteenth Amendment was not to free the
slaves, although this was the cloak with which they covered their real motives as you have
already seen. So what was Congress' motive if it wasn't to abolish slavery? POWER! POWER!
POWER! Congress wanted to destroy all the Christian Common Law principles of three
co-equal branches of government to bring the Executive and Judicial branches under their
control and thereby consolidate all governmental power in one branch.
BUT CONGRESS HAD TO BE VERY CAREFUL NOT TO AWAKEN THE CHRISTIANS WHO UNDERSTOOD THE TRIUNE
GOD DOCTRINE REPRESENTED BY THREE CO-EQUAL BRANCHES OF GOVERNMENT, AND NOT TO AWAKEN THEM
TO THE FACT THAT A SOCIALIST- COMMUNIST CONGRESS WAS DESTROYING CHRISTIAN DOCTRINE.
Sure, we still have three branches of government. But, are they co-equal? The answer is an
emphatic, NO! In reviewing the Constitution for the United States of America we find only
one article that gives Congress power independent of the Executive and Judicial Branches.
"...To exercise exclusive Legislation in all Cases whatsoever, over such District
[not exceeding ten Miles square] as may, by Cession of particular states, and the
Acceptance of Congress, become the Seat of the Government of the United States, and to
exercise like Authority over all Places purchased by the Consent of the Legislature of the
state in which Same shall be, for the Erection of Forts, Magazines, Arsenals, dock-Yards,
and other needful Buildings; - And..."
It is clearly stated, "To exercise exclusive legislation..." Here the door was
opened for Congress to usurp all power and absorb it into the legislative branch. The
scheme was to bring, via subterfuge and deceit, the people, the several states, and the
Executive and Judicial Branches of the national government within the power delineated in
Article I, Section 8, Clause 17, above.
Congress' first try was to bring Article IV within the purview of Article I, Section 8,
Clause 17. Congress wanted to control the territories under the exclusive legislative
power. Congress claimed that Article IV and Article I, Section 8, Clause 17, were not
separate, but combined, to give Congress exclusive legislative power in the territories.
The Supreme Court of the United States disagreed.
In Dred Scott vs. Sandford, 19 How, 393 (1856), the Supreme Court ruled only Whites were
citizens, and more significantly, that Article IV was a separate power not to be exercised
under the exclusive legislation clause. Slavery was not the issue in Dred Scott that
caused the Civil War, instead, the restriction of Congress' power under Article I, Section
8, Clause 17 and the attending destruction of the socialist-communist-illuminati dream [to
consolidate all power in one branch of government] which promoted the International Jewish
Banking interests, were the major causes.
Under Lincoln, the District of Columbia declared war on the Southern States. There was no
war between the states, in actuality, only a war between the District of Columbia and the
Southern States. Lincoln merely used his powers to draw troops through the Northern
Governors, who should have refused to send their militias to the District of Columbia. In
fact, some Governors did refuse.
Even modern history books claim that the first shot wasn't fired on a northern state,
instead they claim that the first shot fired was against D.C. soil, a fort of the United
States, an area subject to Congress' power under Article I, Section 8, Clause 17. Lincoln
clouded the real issue by telling the people of the Northern States that slavery was the
issue.
Even today Dred Scott still holds that Congress cannot combine the powers of Article IV
with the powers of Article I, Section 8, Clause 17. Dred Scott spoiled the Socialist
Communist/Illuminati scheme to convert the states back into territories under Article IV.
What the Supreme Court said was that under Article IV the territories had to be governed
according to the principles of the Christian Common Law. The White citizens of the
territories could not be deprived of the Article III right to judicial review.
Clearly, the Dred Scott decision mandated that the Christian principles of the Common Law
were to be embodied in the organic laws of the territories. The people, and those who
framed the state constitutions for territories like Oregon, kept these principles in the
organic law for their respective states when they obtained statehood.
The socialists/communists needed a new scheme. They needed a TERRITORIAL JURISDICTION
which would not fall within the boundaries of Article IV of the Constitution for the
United States of America, but one that, instead, would fall within Article I, Section 8,
Clause 17. The socialists-communists knew they had to expand Congress' exclusive
legislative power in order to realize their plan to destroy the Christian Foundation of
three co-equal branches of government. They put the Thirteenth Amendment in place. Their
only interest was in the second section.
"Congress shall have power to enforce this article by appropriate legislation."
Notice the wording "by appropriate legislation." Section two of the Thirteenth
Amendment gave the socialist-communist-illuminati Congress the pretext of power they
needed for expansion of Article I, Section 8, Clause 17. Notice that section two only
expands the power of Congress, not any other branch of the national government.
Obviously, since only Congress' power was expanded, the amendment could only be effective
where Congress had exclusive power in the first place; that is, within the District of
Columbia and its enclaves. The Amendment was only effective in the expansion of Congress'
power under Article I, Section 8, Clause 17, which was a power exclusive to Congress and
outside the reach of the other two branches.
Now that they had section two of the Thirteenth Amendment in place [remember it applies
only to D.C. and its enclaves], they needed more residents under their power. The Congress
next proposed, and the State legislatures ratified, the Fourteenth Amendment (1868), the
purpose of which was to create new citizens for the District of Columbia. The same
scenario was then followed with the Fifteenth Amendment (1870) to give the newly created
citizen the vote. All three amendments have the same power clause, the effect of which is
to expand Congress' power under Article I, Section 8, Clause 17, step by step with the
same "appropriate legislation" clause. It should be noted that the first
principal acts of Congress, under the power clauses of the Thirteenth and Fourteenth
Amendments, were civil rights acts which authorized the use of military force to enforce
the socialist-communist-illuminati Congress' will.
You will notice that whenever there is an uprising of civil disobedience that relates to
one of these amendments, like the case when Wallace refused to follow the orders of the
Supreme Court related to entrance of a black student into a state college, you saw the
national guard on the scene. Apparently martial law has never been lifted and this
military force clause is still in effect.
Next, the federal courts, under acts of Congress, began to naturalize citizens, a function
previously belonging to the state courts under prior naturalization law. All of this still
didn't give Congress power over the white citizenry in America. Congress bided their time
and took the next step in the scheme by bringing Senators under Article I, Section 8,
Clause 17, via the Seventeenth Amendment. This also was ratified by the state legislatures
May, 1913. In the mean time Congress [guided and directed by the Jews] created a monentary
mechanism to fuel the new machine with revenue via the Sixteenth Amendment February,
1913).
Having established a concurrent jurisdiction with the several states over prohibition ,
Congress next absorbed the women of American into the jurisdiction of Article I, Section
8, Clause 17, with the Nineteenth Amendment (1920). Finally, the White Males, those who
were not only of the sovereignty, but, who were the only lawful body politic, had to be
brought within the power. Here the socialists-communists-illuminati had a problem, some of
the state constitutions still stood in the way.
They had to get all the several states to remove constitutional clauses that allowed only
free White males to vote and hold office in state government. To do this they had to fully
destroy the sovereignty of the several states in order to bring them within the Article I,
Section 8, Clause 17 power. Congress' attack was in earnest; they understood that this
step of the plan was absolutely necessary to bring the entire nation under Congress'
municipal powers.
"Fifth. THE CONSTITUTION HAS UNDOUBTLY CONFERRED ON CONGRESS THE RIGHT TO CREATE SUCH
MUNICIPAL ORGANIZATIONS AS IT MAY DEEM BEST FOR ALL THE TERRITORIES OF THE UNITED STATES
WHETHER THEY HAVE BEEN INCORPORATED OR NOT, to give to the inhabits as respects the local
governments such degree of representation as may be conductive to the public well being,
to deprive territory of representative government if it considered just to do so, and to
change such local governments at discretion."
Municipal organizations were the tools chosen by the socialists- communists-illuminati:
like:
1). The Federal Reserve; and,
2). The Social Security Administration with attendant regulatory bodies such
as H.E.W. with additional supportive acts like the Uniform Commercial Code.
Agency [Municipal organization] after agency, all created by Congress, all created under
the expanded authority of Article I, Section 8, Clause 17, were added. With the personal
income tax already in place upon created citizens, subjects and persons, these agencies
absorbed more and more of the populace to fuel the socialist-communist-illuminati machine.
That's right, the income tax is imposed by a municipal law of the District of Columbia
which became applicable outside its geographical area when Congress defrauded the White
citizens of the several states into joining Social Security. Once state sovereignty was
broken, municipal law became the supreme law of the land. A new territorial jurisdiction,
different from that originally established by the constitution, including national areas
and regions, was created and erected. When you signed up for THE NUMBER you became a piece
of walking talking D.C. property and that jurisdiction travels with you wherever you might
go throughout the world. When you took THE NUMBER you became one of those "persons
born or naturalized in the United States [District of Columbia], and subject to the
jurisdiction thereof." THE NUMBER makes you one of the "citizens of the United
States [District of Columbia]" no matter where you might "reside" even if
its in a state. These circumstances are identical to those embodied within the organic law
of the Soviet Union.
"The Soviet of nationalities is elected by the citizens of the USSR voting by Union
Republics, Autonomous Republics, Autonomous Regions, and national Areas on the basis of
twenty five deputies form each Union Republic, eleven deputies from each Autonomous
Republic, five deputies from each Autonomous Region, and one deputy from each National
Area."
It is clear how D.C. is restructuring the nation into regions and national areas, bringing
all into the power of the legislative branch! Does the NATIONAL AREA of the zip-code bring
the post office under municipal law? Does using a mailing permit [represented by permit
(account) number] and a zip-code allow the post office to open your mail? Does your state
take municipal script [Federal Reserve Notes] to finance so-called state functions?
Doesn't it seem clear that so-called state functions? Doesn't it seem clear that so-called
state government is placed under Congress' municipal control? Do you now understand how
Congress made you drive 55 m.p.h., put your car through D.E.Q., and made you file federal
tax forms, ALL OF WHICH WAIVE SOME OF YOUR MOST SACRED VESTED RIGHTS?!
STATES CONQUERED BY D.C.
All that remains to be proven is that the state governmental structure has been completely
subjected to the power of Congress under Article I, Section 8, Clause 17. You can look at
practically any state in the Union to prove this fact.
In the Original American form, the National/Federal government could not violate state
sovereignty, nor could the several states invade the National/Federal sovereignty. This
held true even when their jurisdictions appeared to somewhat overlap one another. The
Christian Common Law principle of separation of jurisdiction continues even within the
state itself. The state's jurisdiction could not invade the County and the County's
jurisdiction could not invade that of the cities and towns.
Consistent with the national structure, each of the three jurisdictions within the state
[i.e. state, county & cities] were replete with the same republican form of government
mandated by Christian Common Law principles.
In contrast you can clearly see that the jurisdictional organization of a republic created
under international law provides only one power to govern and that supreme legislative
will is dominant and unrestrained. Under that system the states, cities and towns are all
subject to the supreme legislative will within the central government. Under that system,
there is no authority within the government that may question or challenge the validity of
a legislative act. That is exactly the position which the Congress of the United States
aspires to today and apparently thinks it has achieved.
QUESTION: Has the amending of the Constitutions of the respective and
several states broken down the Christian Common Law structure originally
intended and fundamentally embodied in the design of those several Republics?
The only way to determine if this condition exists is to examine the original
constitutions for the respective states [especially those admitted prior to 1865] and make
comparisons against the amendments that have been made thereto. In each and every instance
you will find that it was the free White electors of the territory who drew up and
ratified the proposed state constitution which was to be submitted to Congress for
approval and subsequent admission. These constitutions were, without exception, styled as
an act of "We the People" and the authoritative expression of THEIR will which
was supreme, not that of the respective territorial legislatures. It was the People who
formed these states and gave them life and no legislative will or authority was incumbent
therein. Thus, it is readily evident that it is "We the [Free White] People"
ourselves who ARE the respective states. All of the states admitted to the Union prior to
1865 submitted constitutions to Congress which were predicated upon the foundation of a
"Free White" sovereign body.
In each and every instance the Congress of the United States of America approved those
constitutions as being in compliance with the organic law of the Union. This approval was
confirmation of the fact that these constitutions were in accordance with the Christian
Common Law principles embodied in the constitution for the United States of America, the
organic law for the nation.
The foregoing cumulative testimony as to the original basis of the constitution is
attested to by multitudes of authorities in the old books. From the lowest justice of the
peace to the highest judicial officers in the land, they all ring as one voice declaring
the eternal foundations of the American Republic to be the triune citadel of one race, one
faith and one law.
The Constitution for the United States of America was, like the constitutions for the
respective states, ordained and established by conventions of the people of the several
states that formed the Union. Instead of being accepted by legislative authority, both
constitutions were accepted by conventions of the people. The Preambles to these
respective constitutions specifically declare that it is "We the People" who
have ordained and established the constitutions for the governments of the several states
and of the Union. In these several constitutions they speak of and refer to the
organization of the states and of the Union as a SOCIAL COMPACT. What do the words
"social compact" mean? A basic understanding of the "social compact"
formed is clearly established and related by the text and content of the citizenship
provisions in these several constitutions; for without exception they specifically declare
that only those of the White Race may be naturalized as Citizens of the states and become
electors thereof.
PERPETUAL LAW, FAITH AND UNION
When one considers that we have a perpetual constitution and a perpetual Union, then it
is, by deduction, rather apparent that the constitutions upon which these states entered
the Union are also perpetual! And so is the citizenship declared therein! Obviously, the
"social compact" spoken of in both, the national and the several state
constitutions, is a "compact" between members of the White Race only for their
own "social" well being! Were the people of the several states who included such
exclusionary clauses in their constitutions merely a bunch of racists, or were they people
who understood the principles behind the two forms of Republic previously mentioned, and
the principles of the Holy Bible that are fundamental to a Christian Common Law Republic?
"And their nobles shall be of themselves, and their governor shall proceed from the
midst of them; and I will cause him to draw near, and he shall approach unto me: for who
is this that engaged his heart to approach unto me? saith the Lord."
The citizenship provisions of the several state constitutions were reflected and echoed in
the first naturalization law of America.
"Be it enacted by the Senate and House of Representa-tives of the United States of
America in Congress assembled, That any alien being a FREE WHITE PERSON, who shall have
resided within the limits and under the jurisdiction of the United States for the term of
two years, may be admitted to become a citizen thereof..."
The White People of the several states understood that to admit all races to citizenship
in their states would be to establish a republic under international law, not the common
law. Compare the citizenship and elector provisions of these original state constitutions
with the following provision of the USSR constitution:
"Elections of deputies are universal: all citizens of the USSR who have reached the
age of eighteen, irrespective of RACE or nationality, sex, religion, education, domicile,
social origin, property status or past activates, have the right to vote in the election
of deputies, with the exception of insane persons and persons who have been convicted by a
court of law and whose sentences include deprivation of electoral rights."
The difference between the two types of republics are clearly evident. However, the
citizenship and elector provisions of the several states no longer read as they once did;
they now emulate and copy the soviet constitution. They provide, without exception, for a
universal citizenship and suffrage for every "citizen of the United States"
regardless of race, color or creed.
CONGRESSIONAL FRAUD AND TREASON
Did anyone tell the people of the states that by amending their constitutions they were
altering the basic order of the law for their respective states from the Christian Common
Law principles to anti-Christ International Law principles, and actually restructuring
their states [republics]? Did anyone bother to tell them that they were setting aside the
Christian Common Law structure and restrictions which protected the rights of the people
from government encroachment in favor of an International Law and governmental structure
which offered no such protections?
It must be reiterated; we are being told that the U.S.S.R. is becoming more like the
United States, but, the truth of the matter seems to be the United States is becoming more
like the U.S.S.R. As repulsive as this statement might seem we owe it to ourselves to take
a closer look at what is happening to us in this country. Look around you! Can you deny
what your eyes see? Wouldn't the altering of the state constitutions and their citizenship
and elector provisions change the meaning of the "social compact" spoke of
therein? By amending those respective articles didn't we enter a new "social
compact," one that was NEVER contemplated by the people of the states when they
adopted their respective constitutions?
If the original intent of the state constitutions has been altered then it is highly
possible, and certainly likely, that other provisions of those several constitutions were
also automatically altered by implication, although, not actually [directly] amended. How
much more of the state constitu-tions has been altered from the Christian Common Law
Republic to the International Law type of republic by this kind of subterfuge?
What about the respective state provisions for census, apportion-ment of the state and
provisions for census, apportionment of the state and federal legislators, and election of
the state officials? Just what law is now being faithfully executed by the state officials
and the respective Governors? In all the state constitutions the Governor is commander of
the military forces of the state and these may be called out to execute the laws and
suppress rebellion as well as repel invasion. Just what law is it that is now going to be
executed? The answer is rather obvious I would say!
According to the changes we have just discussed, the Governor is required to faithfully
enforce those provisions of the state law which are equivalent to the laws of the U.S.S.R.
He has the authority to do this by calling forth troops of the supreme SOVIET [the
District of Columbia if you will] or their domestic equivalent! He no longer has any
troops at his disposal that are under state authority. The Governors of the several states
no longer command a state militia. They are totally dependent upon the militia of the
District of Columbia [previously known as the armed forces of the United States].
TREACHERY OF LAWYERS
The ramifications of these alterations to the state constitutions reach into every facet
of governmental structure and operation. In all the original state constitutions, the
judicial power of the state was vested in a supreme court, circuit courts, and county
court, which were to be COURTS OF RECORD, HAVING GENERAL JURISDICTION, TO BE DEFINED,
LIMITED, AND REGULATED BY LAW, IN ACCORDANCE WITH THOSE RESPECTIVE CONSTITUTIONS.
Justices of the peace were also vested with limited judicial powers, and municipal courts
were created to administer the regulations of incorporated towns and cities. These courts
were characterized by the following points: [Note the difference between an incorporated
town and a town incorporated: the former does not mean to the State].
1). Courts:
A). Supreme Court:
B). Circuits Courts;
C). County Courts;
2). Courts of record;
3). Having general jurisdiction:
A). Defined;
B). Limited;
C). Regulated by law in accordance with constitution;
4). Justice of the Peace:
A). Also vested with judicial power;
B). Also limited;
5). Municipal courts:
A). Created to administer regulations;
B). For incorporated cities and towns;
The state constitutions as now amended still provides that the judicial power of the state
shall be vested in one supreme court and in such other courts as were from time to time
created by law. The judges of the supreme and other courts are still elected by the
"legal voters" of the state or of their respective districts for a term of
years, and still receive such compensation as is provided by law. Almost always there is
also a provision which states that such compensation can not be diminished during the term
for which those judges are elected. However, there is something missing! The state
constitutions, as now amended for the most part, don't list:
1). Circuit Courts;
2). County Courts;
3). Courts having general jurisdiction:
A). To be defined;
B). Limited; or,
C). Regulated by law in accordance with constitution;
2). Justice of the Peace Courts; or,
3). Municipal Courts.
What does the deletion of this language mean? In simple terms, such omissions leave the
whole jurisdiction that previously belonged to the inferior courts to the Supreme Court
and to the whim of the legislature of the state to determine whether the Supreme Court
will be allowed to exercise that jurisdiction. In other words, the judicial branch of
state government is now completely subject to the will of the legislature thereof and has
been subverted from its intended purpose and function. It can no longer act as a check and
balance against legislative usurpations.
The founders of the state constitutions knew and understood that a Republic, founded to
enforce the principles of the Christian Common Law, required three co-equal branches of
government. Over and over again they stated this principle simply and clearly within the
several constitutions that the people of the respective states adopted. So important was
this proposition to the framers of the various state constitutions, that they provided
entire articles to assert it.
The amendments used to subvert the judicial power in the respective state constitutions
completed the conversion of the state republics from the Christian Common Law form to the
Interna-tional Socialist/Communist/Illuminati form in direct violation of the intentions
of the framers set out in original judicial articles adopted when these states were
admitted into the Union.
STATES AS TWO DIFFERENT FORMS OF REPUBLIC
Original Constitution -- Christian Common Law:
Three co-equal branches of government;
Separation of power, legislative, judicial, executive;
In all the states, the judicial branch was bound by the original state constitution rather
than the legislative branch. This assured the judicial branch power and constitutional
capacity of declaring acts of the legislative branch unconstitutional, void and of no
effect.
Amended Constitution -- International Law:
One branch [the legislative] all powerful which in effect makes the government of The
United States a one branch government; With the other two branches subservient to the
legislature, no separation of powers; Under the amended constitution the administration of
government conforms to that of a socialist- communist-illuminati International Law
republic; the judicial branch, just like the U.S.S.R. Constitution, has no real power to
declare acts of the legislature unconstitutional.
LEGISLATIVE BETRAYAL
If you have ever wondered why it is never reported that a circuit or district court of one
of the states has declared an act of the state legislature unconstitutional, you now know
the reason why. Those courts in particular have no such power under the one branch [soviet
style] system. If this is true then the evidence can be found in the restructuring of the
state governments. Since it is the constitution that determines the structure of the state
government in the first place, then the evidence of restructuring will appear in
amendments to that basic structural law. If your state is now, by amending of the state
constitution, a socialist-communist-illuminati republic, then the actual structure of
government in your state will be found in compliance with that new form and all that it
requires.
To make your state a socialist-communist-illuminati republic certain structural elements
must have been altered. THE SEPARATION OF JURISDICTIONS BETWEEN THE GOVERNMENT OF STATE,
COUNTIES, CITIES & TOWNS MUST BE CONSOLIDATED UNDER ONE AUTHORITY OR JURISDICTION. The
judicial power must be placed under the control of the legislative branch, which has
clearly been done in virtually all the states. By obtaining control of the judicial power
the legislative branch also gains control of the executive branch. When the judicial
branch enforces the acts of the legislative branch the executive branch is required to
enforce the enactments of the legislature as well.
If members of the executive branch fail to enforce the legislative enactments sanctioned
by the judicial branch they would be subject to charges of misconduct and malfeasance
which the judicial branch would try, and which would undoubtedly result in conviction of
the offending member of the executive. This leaves the legislative branch virtually
unopposed when it enacts legislation to destroy the jurisdictions of the counties, cities
& towns or even the individual unalienable and inalienable rights of the people
themselves. So, in this fashion and by these means, the state republics are being
restructured to comply with the requirements and characteristics of International Law.
SHERIFF
The Sheriff is an elected law officer and is the only legalized law enforcing agent in the
County. The citizens of the county are his legal helpers or his POSSE, and are to be
called to his aid whenever necessary. When called as such, they are known as the
"POSSE COMITATUS" which means "the whole power of the Country." All
other law agencies do not have such authority as they are agents of some governing body
representing an authority already delegated to them by "WE THE PEOPLE" and they
may not exceed the bounds of the governing agency they represent. But this is not so with
the county Sheriff. The Sheriff is the supreme law enforcing agent of "WE THE
PEOPLE."
In the case of People vs. Keeler, 36 S.Ct. N.Y. (29 Hun) 175, we find:
"The Constitution does not permit the legislature to take away the power and duties
of such an officer (Sheriff) and give them to another...and further, A law, therefore,
which vests in the superintendent of a penitentiary the powers and duties of jailor of the
count (for example), in which that institution is situated, infringes the common law and
constitutional rights of the sheriff of that county, who is ex-officio the jailor, and is
unconstitutional and void."
Another case was reported as saying:
"It is competent for the state legislature to impose new duties upon the sheriff
growing out of public policy or convenience, but it cannot strip him of his time-honored
and common law function."
It is your Sheriff who must protect your Common Law Rights and your Constitutional Rights
or be removed from office. It is your Sheriff who must be as such as knows the law and is
willing to obey it. He should know the origin of the United States, the Christian Common
Law, the original charters, contracts, and compacts or Constitutional Laws or he should
not be elected or appointed to the position of Sheriff. The First Amendment to the
Constitution of the United States declares your right to speak out against abusive public
servants. The Second Amendment declares your right to defend yourself against abusive
public servants.
The Ninth and Tenth Amendments declares your right to take action to uphold the law if
abusive public servants attempt to deprive you of your legal and religious rights and
refuse or neglect to uphold them. They are not allowed to exceed their delegated authority
given them by "WE THE PEOPLE." IT IS THE RIGHT, DUTY, AND RESPONSIBILITY OF THE
SHERIFF TO PROTECT ALL YOUR CONSTITUTIONAL RIGHTS! State ex Rel Thompson vs. Reichman, 135
Tenn. 653, 685, 188 SW 225, 597 Ann Cas 1918 B 889, explains:
"It has been expressly held in some jurisdictions that the duty of the sheriff in the
enforcement of the law against public offenses implies initiative on his part. HE MUST BE
REASONABLY ALERT WITH RESPECT TO POSSIBLE VIOLATIONS OF THE LAW AND IS NOT ENTITLED TO
WAIT UNTIL THEY COME TO HIS PERSONAL ATTENTION AND KNOWLEDGE, BUT MUST FOLLOW UP
INFORMATION RECEIVED FROM ANY SOURCE."
The Sheriff is not only the top law-enforcement officer in your County, but according to
Blackstone's Commentaries in :
"The Sheriff may hold court, summon a jury and execute writs, etc. The Sheriff's jury
would be a Common Law Jury as already described, when acting as a judicial officer."
Concerning the use of the POSSE COMITATUS by the Sheriff you will find in the section of
Corpus Jurus Secondum relating to the Sheriff and constables the reference to the Posse
Comitatus as follows:
"In a proper case a sheriff may summon to his aid, in the enforcement of the law and
preservation of the peace, the 'Posse Comitatus,' or the whole power of the County, and
persons so called by the Sheriff are bound to aid and assist him."
In the case of Eaton vs. Bernalillo County, N.M. 128 p. 2d 738, 46 N.M. 142 A.L.R. 647
Proclaimed:
"The right of the sheriff to summon a posse comitatus EXISTS BY VIRTUE OF THE COMMON
LAW."
As established by the Ninth and Tenth Amendments, all power resides in the people, and if
their representation, or the sheriff, does not uphold the law, which is the Constitution
of the United States, then it is the duty of the people themselves to do what the
representation or the sheriff refuses to do or neglects to do to uphold the Constitution
of the United States, to summon their own Posse Comitatus, and enforce the Constitution
against all violators.
If we the people come into knowledge of crimes committed against the Constitution of these
United States, our Christian Common Law and each other it is not only our responsibility
but our duty to report them officially to the sheriff, and if he is derelict in his duty,
if he does not or will not investigate such reports and if he will not or does not prepare
to take action officially against the offenders, then it becomes the right, duty and
responsibility of the people themselves to handle the matter. It also become the right,
duty, and responsibility of the people to punish politicians, judges, and other of
responsibility when they are found to be in violation of their oath of office to UPHOLD
and enforce the Constitution of the United States of America when their legally elected
law enforcing agency does not or will not take corrective action.
Some instances of record provide for the following prosecution of officials of government
who are convicted of committing criminal acts or who violate their oath of office:
"He shall be removed by the Posse to the most populated intersection of streets in
the township and at high noon there be strung by the neck, the body remaining until
sundown as an example to those who would subvert the law."
The laws of our nation provide for the death penalty for any public official convicted of
violating his oath of office. He is to be tried for TREASON because this gives aid and
comfort to the enemies of the Cities, Counties, States and the United States of America.
Posse Comitatus can be found in 1 Blackstone's Commentaries 343, and in Cokes Institutes
Cokes 2d Institute 193, Cokes 3rd Inst. 161, and Cokes 2nd Inst. 454. Other Cases:
Johnson's N.Y. Reports; 10 Johns 85; 2 Jones N.C. 339; 12 Jurist 1052; WINST. 144; 20 Ga.
598; 34 Vt. 69; 5 Tex. App. 60; 5 Whart. 437; Hamm. N.P. 63; 2 Mod. 244; 78 Me. 373; 19
Am. Dec. 122.
Having been dispossessed of our original Theocratic Constitutional Republic by alien
forces dispossessed to force "WE THE PEOPLE" of the United States into an
International totalitarian despotic One-World-Government [New World Order], we must bring
this to the attention of our Sheriffs. If he refuses to investigate the complaint or
notice, or exercise the sheriff's common law power to hold court and try the offenders,
the duty and right reverts to the people who then must impanel their own Citizen's Grand
Jury, try the offenders and carry out the sentence via Posse Comitatus Action.
Have the county courts and the circuit courts in your state been abolished and state
courts established in their place? Has your county clerk's office been abolished and
replaced by a state office called by the same name? Has your county sheriff been
neutralized by having his authority controlled by the state instead of the county? Is your
county sheriff now found solely under the executive branch functions instead of the
judicial or has all mention of the county sheriff simply been deleted from your present
state constitution? Now you know why such actions were taken. It is an effort to remove
the power of the Common Law from the Sheriffs and "WE THE PEOPLE."
LAWYERS ARE ENEMIES OF LIBERTY
All of this is being done in many states under the alleged mandate of the due process
clause of the Fourteenth Amendment. The states cannot establish legislative courts within
the counties without the support of some external authority. They do not possess the
intrinsic power of and by themselves. They must therefore claim a mandate in the
Fourteenth to justify their subversive acts. When confronted with their acts they will
respond that it was necessary in order to assure all those citizens of D.C. [re: Social
Security participants] the measure of "due process" to which they are entitled.
Upon that pretext the lawyers are overthrowing our form of government. In most of the
original state constitutions the county sheriff was provided for under both the judicial
and the executive functions of the state government. Why did the Founding Fathers of the
several states find it necessary to place such emphasis upon the office of sheriff?
ANSWER: Because the county sheriff under the state's Christian Common Law
Republic is the highest law enforcement official. He had both executive
and
judicial functions for the state. The office of sheriff served process for both the
executive branch of the state government [including the
administrative] and the judicial branch whose authority was derived from, and executed at,
the county level.
The office of sheriff authorization is in the constitution. Under most of the original
state constitutions there could be no state troopers or executive level [legislatively
controlled] law enforcement. The county sheriff's duties were to enforce the law of the
country [power of the county]. The county was a separate political unit which had rights
of self determination which superseded enactments of the legislative assembly. For
instance, say the legislators of a state passed a personal income tax bill, and the
executive branch began to enforce the enactment against you because you refused to obey
the legislative enactment.
The executive branch [the Attorney General's office and Department of Justice] would issue
charges [a complaint] against you and the county sheriff, being subject to the executive
under provisions of the state constitution, would serve the process on you. You, in turn,
would file counter charges in a court which had full judicial power to hear allegations
regarding the unconstitutionality of the legislative enactment. Your allegations would
attack the constitutional validity intended to be enforced by the complaint, and asserting
that the Legislative Assembly had violated the state constitution.
"SEARCHES AND SEIZURES. The people shall be secure in their persons, houses, papers
and possessions, from all unreasonable seizures or searches, and no warrant to search any
place, or to seize any person or thing, shall issue without describing them as near as may
be, nor without probable cause, supported by oath or affirmation."
The above provisions are found in every state constitution as well as the federal one and,
if enforceable, would nullify all attempts at assessing and collecting a personal income
tax. The personal income tax act is unconstitutional because by requiring you to file the
tax return form it invades your vested and protected right to be secure in your person,
houses, papers & affects. By requiring the filing of such tax forms the legislative
assemblies are obviously violating the provisions quoted above. Rights are absolute,
government powers are conditional. Where the exercise of conditional governmental powers
violate absolute rights, the enactment is unconstitutional, null and void. What condition
must governmental power meet to be legitimately exercised? the exercise of power must
uphold absolute rights, and never can that power be used for a contrary purpose.
In a Christian Common Law Republic, while the Legislative Assembly has the power to pass
tax legislation, they are precluded from taxing a vested unalienable or inalienable right
nor can they impose taxation in such a way as to supersede other restrictions laid on them
by the Bill of Rights in the respective state constitutions. The courts holding the
judicial power, in a Christian Common Law form of Republic, have the power to protect the
citizen from an unconstitutional enactment such as the income tax statute, by refusing to
regard it as law.
Those courts listed must act in accordance with the constitution that created them and
gave them life. In all the states admitted prior to 1865, when the state constitution was
adopted it included all the protections afforded by its Bill of Rights ; and the circuit,
and county courts had Christian Common Law Jurisdiction and the necessary judicial power
to enforce the Christian Common Law maxims embodied in that Bill of Rights.
Removing the Christian Common Law powers from those courts, by amending the state
constitutions, left the courts without the necessary power to enforce the provisions in
the respective State Bill of Rights; provisions which were originally adopted by the
people for protection from the very government they were creating. The key words that were
necessary to give the courts the Christian Common Law Jurisdiction, i.e., the power to
protect us from government usurpations, have been removed from all the constitutions of
the several states, or nearly so. Maybe this explains why the respective states tout
themselves as the home of the free, as long as you get a license [i.e. permission to be
free]!
CONSOLIDATION OF POWER
Hasn't the amending of your state constitution reduced the sheriff to an administrative
official of the state, subject only to the executive of the state, which in turn is
subject only to the legislative branch? Although it may not appear so on the surface, as
you have seen, the separation of powers for all intents and purposes in completely broken
down; and the respective state republics are now within the definitive boundaries of
socialist international law. Today the governments of the several states have only one
effective branch, the legislative branch. All power in the state governments now
effectively rests in that one branch just the same as it does in the U.S.S.R. under its
socialist- communist-illuminati constitution.
By the amending of the state constitutions, the states, in both fact and law, have become
socialist-communist-illuminati republics, and the people are left powerless to bring the
legislative power over them into check under their current constitutions. Our national
government is called by the name United States of America, but it would be much more
factual if it where called the United Socialist States of America. Americans have been
informed throughout their lives that our national government is a government of the
people, by the people, and for the people.
When the people of the several states of the Union set aside the Christian Common Law for
anti-Christ socialism-communism- illuminati and accordingly altered their several
republics to conform, the United States government followed the people and reorganized
itself too. To comply with the people's alleged wishes, Congress expanded their own
exclusive legislative power, found in Article I, Section 8, Clause 17, of the Constitution
for the United States of America. With the consent of the state legislatures, the judicial
and executive branches of the national government were also brought under control of the
legislative power, as were the several state legislatures themselves. This was
accomplished by the state legislatures, not the people of the states mind you, through
their alleged ratification of the 13th, 14th, 15th, 16th, 17th, 19th, 20th, 21st, 22nd,
23rd, 24th, 25th, and 26th Amendments to the U.S. Constitution.
The structure developed by these amendments conforms to the structure of a
socialist-communist-illuminati republic. Not one of these amendments was passed by
conventions of the people of the several states in the Union, like the original
Constitution for the United States of America was in 1787. The citizens of the several
states were misled as to the real reason for altering their own state constitutions. The
citizens of the several states were told, by their state legislators, among others, that
the only reason for ratification of the Fourteenth Amendment was to end racial
discrimination in America, which is utterly untrue.
The Thirteenth and later amendments are merely the vehicle used to dupe the people into
taking a ride in a vehicle that eventually required them to leave the road of the
Christian Common Law by taking the off ramp leading to international law under the
doctrine of socialism-communism-illuminism. The real problem is that nobody put up any
signs to tell them where they were going. Neither the state or U.S. officials told the
truth about the impact of adding to the citizenry, that adding non-whites to the citizenry
would alter the nature of the republics established in the several states. In fact, state
and national officials have branded anyone who would bring the truth of the matter up a
"racist" to cover up their previous deceptions with yet another false
allegation.
Chapter Six
IMPOSITION OF SLAVERY
In the Midrash Rabbah, a rabbinical commentary, there is a prediction one day all gentiles
will be slaves of Jews. In the British West Indies much of the early capital to
finance White Slavery came from Sephardic Jews from Holland. They provided credit,
machinery and shipping facilities. In the 1630s Dutch Jews had been deeply involved in the
enslavement of the Irish, financing their transport to slave plantations in the tropics.
By the 1660s, this combination of Zionist finance and White Slave labor made the British
island colony of Barbados the richest in the empire. The island's value, in terms of trade
and capital exceeded that of all other British colonies combined. Of the fact that
the wealth of Barbados was founded on the backs of White Slave labor there can be no
doubt. White Slave laborers from Britain and Ireland were the mainstay of the sugar
colony. Until the mid-1640s there were almost no Blacks in Barbados.
George Downing wrote to John Winthrop, the colonial governor of Massachusetts in 1645,
that planters who wanted to make a fortune in the British West Indies must procure White
Slave labor "out of England" if they wanted to succeed. From their
experience with rebellious Irish slaves, Dutch Jews would eventually be instrumental in
the switch from White to Black slavery in the British West Indies.
Blacks were more docile, and more profitable. The English traffic in slaves in the first
half of the seventeenth century was solely in White slaves. The English had no slave base
in West Africa, as did the Dutch Sephardim who were not only bankers and shipping magnates
but slavemasters and plantation owners themselves. Jews were forbidden by English law to
own White Protestant slaves, although in practice this was not uniformly enforced, Irish
slaves were allowed to the Jewish slavers but were regarded by them as intractable. Hence
certain Jews became prime movers behind the African slave trade and the importation of
negro slaves into the New World. White Slavery was the historic base upon which
negro slavery was constructed.
"...the important structures, labor ideologies and social relations necessary for
slavery already had been established within indentured servitude...White Servitude...in
many ways came remarkably close to the 'ideal type' of chattel slavery which later became
associated with the African experience."
And:
"The practice developed and tolerated in the kidnapping of Whites laid the foundation
for the kidnapping of Negroes."
The official papers of the White Slave trade refer to adult White Slaves as
"freight" and White Child Slaves were termed "half- freight." Like any
other commodity on the shipping inventories, WHITE HUMAN BEINGS WERE SEEN STRICTLY IN
TERMS OF MARKET ECONOMICS BY MERCHANTS.
The American colonies prospered through the use of White Slaves which Virginia planter
John Pory declared in 1619 were "our principal wealth."
"The White Servant, a semi-slave, was more important in the 17th century than even
the negro slave, in respect IN BOTH NUMBERS and economic significance."
Where Establishment history books or films touch on White Slavery it is referred to with
the deceptively mild-sounding title of "indentured servitude," The implication
being that the Enslavement of Whites was not as terrible or all- encompassing as Negro
"SLAVERY" but constituted instead a more benign bondage, that of
"SERVITUDE."
Yet the terms servant and slave were often used interchangeably to refer to people whose
status was clearly that of permanent, lifetime enslavement. "An Account of the
English Sugar Plantations" in the British Museum written circa 1660-1685 refers
to Black and White Slaves as
"servants...the Colonyes were plentifully supplied with Negro and Christian {White}
servants which are the nerves and sinews of a plantacon..." (Christian was a
euphemism for White)...In the North American colonies in the 17th and 18th centuries and
subsequently in the United States, servant was the usual designation for a slave."
The use of the word servant to describe a slave would have been very prevalent among a
Bible-literate people like colonial Americans.
In all English translations of the Bible available at the time, from Wycliffe's to the
1611 King James version, the word slave as it appeared in the original Biblical languages
was translated as servant. For example, the King James Version of Genesis 9:25 is
rendered:
"Cursed be Canaan, a servant of servants shall he be."
The intended meaning here is clearly that of slave and there is little doubt that in the
mind of early Americans the word servant was synonymous with slave. In original
documents of the White merchants who transported negroes from Africa the Blacks were
called servants:
"...one notes that the Company of Royal Adventurers referred to their cargo as
'egers,' 'Negro-Servants,' 'Servants...from Africa..."
Oscar Handlin, Professor of History at Harvard University, debunks the propaganda that
slavery was strictly a racist operation, part of a conspiracy of White Supremacy. Prof.
Handlin points to the facts that:
1). Whites as well as Blacks were enslaved.
2). In the 17th century slaves of both races were called servants.
3). The colonial merchants of 17th century America had no qualms about
enslaving their own White kindred:
"Through the first three-quarters of the 17th century, the Negroes, even in the
South, were not numerous...They came into a society in which a large part of the (White)
population was to some degree unfree...The Negroes lack of freedom was not unusual. These
(Black) newcomers, like so many others, were accepted, bought and held, as kinds of
servants...It was in this sense that Negro servants were sometimes called slaves ...For
that matter, it also applied to White Englishmen...in New England and New York too there
had early been an intense desire for cheap unfree hands, for 'bond slavery, villeinage of
Captivity,' whether it be White, Negro or Indian..."
A survey of the various ad hoc codes and regulations devised in the 17th century for the
governing of those in bondage reveals no special category for Black slaves.
"During Ligon's time in Barbados (1647-1650), White indentured female servants worked
in the field gangs alongside the small but rapidly growing number of enslaved black women.
In this formative stage of the Sugar Revolution, planters did not attempt to formulate a
division of labor along racial lines. White indentured servants...were not perceived by
their masters as worthy of special treatment in the labor regime."
The contemporary academic consensus on slavery in America represents history by
retroactive fiat, decreeing that conclusions about the entire epoch fit the
characterizations of its final stage, the 19th century Southern plantation system.
Prof. Handlin informs us that legislators in Virginia sought to cover-up the record of
White bondage and its equivalence to negro servitude:
"The compiler of the Virginia laws (codifying Black slavery for the first time) then
takes the liberty of altering texts to bring earlier legislation into line with his own
new notions."
For Examples of alteratings to insert the word slave as a reference to Blacks in Virginia
when it had not been used to describe them that way before, see Hening, Vol. 2, pp. iii,
170, 283, 490. What was later lawmakers sought to cover-up? The fact that the White ruling
class of Colonial America had cast their own White People into the same condition as the
Blacks, or even worse. Richard Ligon's eyewitness report of a White Slave revolt in
Barbados in 1649 has been consistently referred down through the years as a rebellion of
Negro Slaves by at least a dozen later historians such as Poyer, Oldmixon, Schomburgh et
al. In their cases this does not seem to have been a matter of deliberate falsification,
but rather a complete inability to conceive of Whites as Slaves. Ligon had written that
the rebels in question had not been able to "endure such slavery" any longer and
the later historians automatically assumed that this had to have been a reference to
negroes. IT IS THIS PERSISTENT COGNITION BY CATEGORICAL PRECONCEPTION THAT RENDERS MUCH OF
WHAT PASSES FOR COLONIAL HISTORY IN OUR ERA INACCURATE AND MISLEADING.
17th century colonial slavery and 19th century American slavery are not a seamless
garment. Historians who pretend otherwise have to maintain several fallacies, the chief
among these being the supposition that when White "servants" constituted the
majority of servile laborers in the colonial period, they worked in privileged or even
luxurious conditions which were forbidden to Blacks. In truth, WHITE SLAVES WERE OFTEN
RESTRICTED TO DOING THE DIRTY, BACKBREAKING FIELD WORK WHILE BLACKS AND EVEN INDIANS WERE
TAKEN INTO THE PLANTATION MANSION HOUSES TO WORK AS DOMESTICS:
"Contemporaries were aware that the popular stereotyping of (White) female indentured
servants as whores, sluts and debauched wenches, discouraged their use in elite planter
households. Many pioneer planters preferred to employ Amerindian women in their
households...With the... establishment of an elitist social culture, there was a tendency
to reject (White) indentured servants as domestics...black women...represented a more
attractive option and, as a result, were widely employed as domestics in the second half
of the 17th century. In 1675 for example John Blake, who had recently arrived on the
island (of Barbados), informed his brother in Ireland that his White Indentured Servant
was a 'slut' and he would like to be rid of her...(in favor of a 'neger wench')."
In the 17th century White slaves were cheaper to acquire than Negroes and therefore were
often mistreated to a greater extent. Having paid a bigger price for the Negro,
"the planters treated the black better than they did their 'Christian' White Servant.
Even the Negroes recognized this and did not hesitate to show their contempt for those
White Men who, they could see, were worse off than themselves..."
IT WAS WHITE SLAVES WHO BUILT AMERICA FROM ITS VERY BEGINNINGS AND MADE UP THE
OVERWHELMING MAJORITY OF SLAVE- ABORERS IN THE COLONIES NOT BLACKS in the 17th century.
Negro slaves seldom had to do the kind of virtually lethal work the White Slaves of
America did in the formative years of settlement.
"The frontier demands for heavy manual labor, such as felling trees, soil clearance,
and general infrastructural development, had been satisfied primarily BY WHITE INDENTURED
SERVANTS (Slaves) BETWEEN 1627 AND 1643."
The merchant class of early America was an equal opportunity enslaver and viewed with
enthusiasm the bondage of all poor people within their grasp, including their own White
kinsmen. There was a precedent for this in the English legal concept of villeinage, a form
of medieval White Slavery in England.
"...as late as 1669 those who thought of large-scale agriculture assumed it would be
manned not by Negroes but by servile Whites under a condition of villeinage. John Locke's
constitutions for South Carolina envisaged an hereditary group of servile 'leet men'; and
Lord Shaftsbury's signory on Locke Island in 1674 actually attempted to put the scheme
into practice."
The Random House Dictionary of the English Language defines servitude as "slavery or
bondage of any kind." The dictionary defines "bondage" as "being bound
by or subjected to external control." It defines "slavery" as
"ownership of a person or persons by another or others." HUNDREDS OF THOUSANDS
OF WHITES IN COLONIAL AMERICA WERE OWNED OUTRIGHT BY THEIR MASTERS AND DIED IN SLAVERY.
THEY HAD NO CONTROL OVER THEIR OWN LIVES AND WERE AUCTIONED ON THE BLOCK AND EXAMINED LIKE
LIVESTOCK exactly like Black slaves, with the exception that these Whites were enslaved by
their own race. White Slaves,
"found themselves powerless as individuals, without honor or respect and driven into
commodity production not by any inner sense of moral duty but by the outer stimulus of the
whip."
Upon arrival in America, White Slaves were,
"put up for sale by the ship captains or merchants ...Families were often separated
under these circumstances when wives and offspring were auctioned off to the highest
bidder."
Another example:
"Eleanor Bradbury, sold with her three sons to a Maryland owner, was separated from
her husband, who was bought by a man in Pennsylvania."
White people who were passed over for purchase at the point of entry were taken into the
back country by "soul drivers" who herded them along "like cattle to a
Smithfield market" and then put them up for auction at public fairs.
"Prospective buyers felt their muscles, checked their teeth...like cattle..."
White Men and Women were driven by their Jewish slavers, just as a cowboy would a herd of
cattle:
"They are frequently hurried in droves, under the custody of severe brutal drivers
into the Back Country to be disposed of as servants."
Those Whites for whom no buyer could be found even after marketing them inland were
returned to the slave trader to be sold for a pittance. These Whites were officially
referred to as "refuse."
The Virginia Company arranged with the City of London to have 100 POOR WHITE CHILDREN
"out of the swarms that swarm in the place" sent to Virginia in 1619 for sale to
the wealthy planters of the colony TO BE USED AS SLAVE LABOR. The Privy Council of London
authorized the Virginia Company to,
"imprison, punish and dispose of any of those children upon any disorder by them
committed, as cause shall require."
The trade in White slaves was a natural one for English merchants who imported sugar and
tobacco from the colonies. Whites kidnapped in Britain could be exchanged directly for
this produce. The trade in White Slaves was basically a return hall operation. The
operations of Captain Henry Brayne were typical. In November of 1670, Capt. Brayne was
ordered to sail from Carolina with a consignment of timber for sale in the West Indies.
From there he was to set sail for London with a load of sugar purchased with the profits
from the sale of the timber. In England he was to sell the sugar and fill his ship with
from 200 to 300 WHITE SLAVES TO BE SOLD IN CAROLINA. The notion of a "contract"
and of the legal status of the White in "servitude" became a fiction as a result
of the exigencies of the occasion.
In 1623 George Sandys, the treasurer of Virginia, was forced to sell the only remaining
eleven White Slaves of his Company for lack of provisions to support them. Seven of these
White People were sold for 150 pounds of tobacco.
The slave-status of Whites held in colonial bondage can also be seen by studying the
disposition of the estates of the wealthy Whites. Whites in bondage were rated as
inventories and disposed of by will and by deed along with the rest of the property. They
were bought, sold, bartered, gambled away, mortgaged, weighed on scales like farm animals
and taxed as property. Richard Ligon, a contemporary eyewitness to White Slavery, in his
1657 A True and Exact History tells of a White Slave, a woman, who was being traded by her
master for a pig. Both the pig and the White Woman were weighed on a scale.
"The price was set for a groat a pound for the hog's flesh and six pence for the
woman's flesh..."
In general, WHITES WERE NOT TREATED WITH THE RELATIVE DIGNITY THE TERM "indentured
servants" connotes, BUT AS DEGRADED CHATTEL; part of the personal estate of the
master and on a par with his farm animals.
The term "indentured servitude" therefore IS NOTHING MORE THAN A PROPAGANDISTIC
SOFTENING OF THE HISTORIC EXPERIENCE OF ENSLAVED WHITE PEOPLE IN ORDER TO MAKE A FALSE
DISTINCTION BETWEEN THEIR SUFFERINGS AND THOSE OF NEGRO SLAVES! This is not to deny the
existence of a fortunate class of Whites who could in fact be called "indentured
servants" according to the modern conception of the term, who worked under privileged
conditions of limited bondage for a specific period of time, primarily as apprentices.
These lucky few were given religious instruction and could sue in a court of law. They
were employed in return for their transportation to America and room and board during
their period of service. But certain [Jewish, or their lackys] historians pretend that
this apprentice system, the privileged form of bound labor, was representative of the
entire experience of White bondage in America. In actuality, the indentured apprentice
system represented the condition of only a tiny segment of the Whites in bondage in early
America.
"Strictly speaking, the term indentured servant should apply only to those persons
who had bound them-selves voluntarily to service but it is generally used for all classes
of bond servants."
Richard B. Morris in Government and Labor in Early America notes that,
"In the colonies, however, apprenticeship was merely a highly specialized and favored
form of bound labor. The more comprehensive colonial institution included all persons
bound to labor for periods of years as determined either by agreement or by law, both
minors and adults, and Indians and Negroes as well as Whites."
In a reversal of our contemporary ideas about White "indenture" and Black
"slavery," many Blacks in colonial America were often temporary bondsmen freed
after a period of time. Peter Hancock arranged for a negro servant named Asha to serve for
twelve months, thenceforth to be a free person.
"...free negro boys bound out as apprentices were sometimes given the benefit of an
educational clause in the indenture. Two such cases occur in the Princess Anne County
Records; one in 1719, to learn the trade of tanner, the master to 'teach him to read,' and
the other, in 1727, to learn the trade of gunsmith, the master to teach him 'to read the
Bible distinctly."
Newspaper and court records in South Carolina cite,
"a free negro fellow named Johnny Holmes...lately an indented servant with Nicholas
Trott..." and "a negro man commonly called Jack Cutler -- he is a free negro
having faithfully served out his time with me four years according to the contract agreed
upon..."
David W. Galenson is the author of an Orwellian suppression of the horrors and conditions
of White Slavery entitled White Servitude in Colonial America. He states concerning White
slaves,
"European men and women could exercise choice both in deciding whether to migrate to
the colonies and in choosing possible destinations."
THIS IS POSITIVELY MISLEADING! At the bare minimum, HUNDREDS OF THOUSANDS OF WHITE SLAVES
WERE KIDNAPPED OFF THE STREETS AND ROADS OF GREAT BRITAIN IN THE COURSE OF MORE THAN ONE
HUNDRED AND FIFTY YEARS AND SOLD TO CAPTAINS OF SLAVE SHIPS IN LONDON KNOWN AS "WHITE
GUINEAMEN." Ten thousand Whites were kidnapped from England in the year 1670 alone.
The very word "kidnapper" was first coined in Britain in the 1600s
to describe those who captured and sold White Children into slavery
("kid-nabbers").
Another whitewash is the heralded "classic work" on the subject, Abbot Emerson
Smith's Colonists in Bondage which is one long cover-up of the extent of the kidnapping,
the denial of the existence of White Slavery and numerous other apologies for the
establishment including a cover-up of the deportation and enslavement of the Irish people.
But the record proves otherwise.
"Cromwell's conquest of Ireland in the middle of the seventeenth century made slaves
as well as subjects of the Irish people. Over a hundred thousand men, women and children
were seized by the English troops and shipped to the West Indies, where they were sold
into slavery..."
On September 11, 1655 came the following decree from the Puritan Protectorate by Henry
Cromwell in London:
"Concerning the young (Irish) women, although we must use force in takinge them up,
yet it beinge so much for their owne goode, and likely to be of soe great advantage to the
publique, it is not in the least doubted, that you may have such number of them as you
thinke fitt to make use uppon this account."
The "account" was enslavement and transportation to the colonies.
A WEEK LATER HENRY CROMWELL ORDERED THAT 1,500 IRISH BOYS AGED 12 TO 14 ALSO BE SHIPPED
INTO SLAVERY WITH THE IRISH GIRLS IN THE STEAMING TROPICS OF JAMAICA AND BARBADOS IN
CIRCUMSTANCES WHICH KILLED OFF WHITE ADULT SLAVES BY THE THOUSANDS DUE TO THE RIGORS OF
FIELD WORK IN THAT CLIMATE AND THE SAVAGE BRUTALITY OF THEIR OVERSEERS.
In October the Council of State approved the plan. Altogether more than one hundred
thousand Irish were shipped to the West Indies WHERE THEY DIED IN SLAVERY IN HORRIBLE
CONDITIONS. Children weren't the only victims. Even eighty year old Irish women were
deported to the West Indies and enslaved. Irish religious leaders were herded into,
"internment camps throughout Ireland, and were then moved progressively to the ports
for shipment overseas like cattle."
By the time Cromwell's men had finished with the Irish people, only one-sixth of the Irish
population remained on their lands. Cromwell did not only enslave Catholics. Poor
White Protestants on the English mainland fared no better. In February, 1656 he ordered
his soldiers to find 1,200 poor English Women for enslavement and deportation to the
colonies. In March he repeated the order but increased the quota to "2,000 young
women of England." In the same year, Cromwell's Council of State ordered all the
homeless poor of Scotland, male and female, transported to Jamaica for enslavement.
Of course, Cromwell and the Puritan ruling class were not the only ones involved in the
enslavement of Whites.
During the Restoration reign of Charles II, the king with Catholic sympathizers who had
been Cromwell's arch-enemy, King Charles enslaved large groups of poor Presbyterians and
Scottish Covenanters and deported them to the plantations in turn. Legislation sponsored
by King Charles in 1686, intended to ensure the enslavement of Protestant rebels in the
Caribbean colonies, was so harsh that one observer noted,
"THE CONDITION OF THESE REBELS WAS BY THIS ACT MADE AS BAD, IF NOT WORSE THAN THE
NEGROES." ; "BY FAR THE LARGEST NUMBER and certainly the most important group OF
WHITE INDENTURED SERVANTS (Slaves) WERE THE POOR PROTESTANTS FROM EUROPE."
There were four categories of status for White People in colonial America: White freemen,
White freemen who owned property, White apprentices (also called "indentured
servants," "redemptioners" and "free-willers") and White Slaves.
The attempt by Abbot Emerson Smith, Galenson and many others at denying the existence and
brutal treatment of White Slaves by pretending they were mostly just "indentured
servants" learning a trade, regulated according to venerable medieval Guild
traditions of apprenticeship runs completely counter to the documentary record.
"...the planters did not conceive of their (White) servants socially and emotionally
as integral parts of the family or household, but instead viewed them as an alien
commodity...Having abandoned the moral responsibility aspect of pre-capitalist ideology,
masters enforced an often violent social domination of (White) servants by the
manipulation of oppressive legal codes...transform(ing)... indentured servitude, with its
pre-industrial, moral, paternalistic superstructure, into a market system of brutal
servitude...maintained by the systematic application of legally sanctioned force and
violence."
Informal British and colonial custom validated the kidnapping of working-class British
Whites and their enslavement in the colonies under such euphemisms as "Servitude
according to the Custom" which upheld the force of "verbal contracts" which
shipmasters and press-gangs claimed existed between them and the wretched Whites they
kidnapped off the streets of England and sold into colonial slavery. These justifications
for White slavery arose in law determined by penal codes. In other words, White slavery
was permitted and perpetuated on the claim that all who were thus enslaved were criminals.
No proof for this claim was needed because the fact of one's enslavement
"proved" the fact of one's "criminality."
The history of White Slavery in the New World can be found within the history of the
enforcement of the penal codes in Britain and America. Slaves were made of poor White
"criminals" who had stolen as little as one sheep, a loaf of bread or had been
convicted of destroying shrubbery in an aristocrat's garden. They would be separated from
their parents or spouse and "transported" to the colonies for life. In 1655 four
teenagers were whipped through the streets of Edinburg, Scotland, burned behind the ears
and "barbadosed" for interrupting a minister, James Scott, while he was
preaching in church. The "convict" label was so ubiquitous that it
prompted Samuel Johnson's remark on Americans:
"Sir, they are a race of convicts, and ought to be content with anything we allow
them short of hanging."
But even an exclusive focus on the indentured servant or "apprentice" class
cannot conceal the fact of White Slavery because very often the distinctions between the
two blurred. Through a process of subterfuge and entrapment, White apprentices were
regularly transformed into White slaves, as we shall see.
White Slaves were owned not only by individual aristocrats and rich planters but by the
colonial government itself or its governor. White Slaves included not just paupers but
such "wicked villaines" as "vagrants, beggars, disorderly and other
dissolute persons" as well as White Children from the counties and towns of Britain
who were stolen from their parents through no Harriet Beecher Stowe rose to prominence in
chronicling the anguish and hardship of these enslaved White Children.
A large number of the White Slaves arriving in America described as "convicts"
were actually political prisoners. Of the Scottish troops captured at the battle of
Worcester more than 600 hundred were shipped to Virginia as slaves in 1651. The rebels of
1666 were sent as slaves to the colonies as were the Monmouth rebels of 1685 and the
Jacobites of the rising of 1715.
"It is now commonly accepted that the African slave trade could not have operated for
over three centuries without the active participation of some African states and political
leaders. The human merchandise was obtained largely as a result of political conflicts
between neighboring states and tribes. Less well known are the ways in which...(WHITE
SLAVE LABORERS WERE OBTAINED)...from the British Isles for the West Indies plantations in
the seventeenth century. The English state ruthlessly rounded up victims of political
conflict and prisoners of war at places like Dunbar, Worcester, Salisbury and, during
territorial expansionism, in Ireland, for sale to West Indian merchants. In this respect
English governments and African political leaders were responding to the same market
forces."
The Crown put tens of thousands of political dissidents in slavery, some being shipped to
New England while others were deported to the plantations of the West Indies and worked to
death in the island's boiler houses, mills and sugar cane fields. Cromwell sold the White
survivors of the massacre at Drogheda to slave-traders in the Barbados,
"and thereafter it became his fixed policy to 'barbadoes' his opponents."
By 1655, half of the total White population of Barbados consisted of political prisoners
sold into slavery.
Establishment historians claim that only Blacks were slaves because Whites were released
after a term of seven or ten years of servitude. But the history of the enslavement of
Britain's political prisoners disproves this notion. Plantation owners saw it as their
profitable and patriotic duty to extend the servitude of the political prisoners on the
plantations far beyond the supposed ten or twenty year limit. British political prisoners
were shipped into slavery in America for life, not seven or fourteen years:
"...those who survived the voyage worked out their lives in bondage on the
plantations of America." ; "After the battle of Worcester in 1652 the first
mention is made of Royalists having been brought out to Barbados and sold as slaves...they
had been taken prisoner at Exeter and IIchester...From there they were driven straight to
Plymouth, put on a ship where they remained below deck, sleeping amongst the horses. On
arrival in Barbados they were sold as chattel and employed in grinding the mills,
attending to the furnaces and digging in the hot sun, whipped at the whipping post as
rogues, and sleeping in stiles worse than pigs."
This was no "temporary bondage." Of 1300 Cavaliers enslaved in 1652 in Barbados
almost all of them died in slavery. The enslavement of White political prisoners in
the West Indies was debated in the English Parliament on March 25, 1659. The practice was
allowed to continue and was still in operation as late as 1746 when Scottish Highland
infantrymen and French and Irish regulars of the Jacobite army were transported into
slavery in Barbados after the battle of Culloden. Whites convicted of no crime
whatever were made slaves by being captured by press-gangs in Britain and shipped into
slavery in colonial America. These slave raids (also known as "spiriting") began
under the reign of King Charles I, continued during the Commonwealth period and throughout
the reign of Charles II.
It was an organized system of kidnapping English, Welsh and Scottish workers, young and
old, and transporting them to the American colonies to be sold, with the profits split
between the press-gangs and the shipmaster to whom the captured Whyites were assigned in
chains. These slave hunting gangs were viewed with covert approval by the British
aristocracy who feared the overpopulation of the White underclass. Confiscatory levels of
taxation and the enclosure laws had driven British small farmers and village dwellers off
the land and into the cities where they gathered and "loitered," a threat to the
order and comfort of the propertied classes.
17th and 18th century economists advocated the enslavement of poor Whites because they saw
them as the cheapest and most effective way to develop the colonies in the New World and
expand the British empire. It was claimed that by making slave laborers out of poor Whites
they were saved from being otherwise
"chargeable and unprofitable to the Realm."
As the plantation system expanded in the Southern American colonies, planters demanded the
legalization of the practice of kidnapping poor Whites. As it stood laws were on the books
forbidding kidnapping but these were for show and were enforced with very infrequent,
token arrests of "spirits."
The planters' need for White slave labor expanded to such an extent that they tired of
having to operate in quasi-legal manner. In response in February, 1652 it was enacted
that:
"...it may be lawful for...two or more justices of the peace within any country,
citty or towne corporate belonging to this commonwealth to from tyme to tyme by
warrant...case to be apprehended, seized on and detained all and every person or persons
that shall be found begging and vagrant...in any towne, parish or place to be conveyed
into the port of London, or unto any other port...from where such person or persons may be
shipped...into any forraign collonie or plantation..."
Parliamentary legislation of 1664 allowed for the capture of White Children who were
rounded up and shipped out in chains. Judges received 50% of the profits from the sale of
the White Youths with another percentage going to the king. With these laws, it was open
season on the poor of Great Britain as well as anyone the rich despised. In 1682 four
White men from Devon, England were enslaved and transported to the colonies. The judges
indicated the four for "wandering." From 1662 to 1665, the judges of Edinburgh,
Scotland ordered the enslavement and shipment to the colonies of a large number of
"rogues" and "others who made life unpleasant for the British upper
classes."
In Charles County court in Maryland in 1690 it was agreed that the "indentures"
under which seven White Slaves were being held were "kidnapper's indentures" and
therefore technically invalid. But the court ruled that the White Slaves should continue
to be held in slavery to their various colonial masters based on the so-called
"custom of the country." The ladies of the royal court and even the mayor of
Bristol, England were not beneath profiting from the lucrative traffic in poor White
People.
Every pretense was used to decoy the victims aboard ships lying in the Thames. The
kidnapping of poor Whites became a major industry in such English port cities as London,
Plymouth, Southhapton and Dover and in Scotland at Aberdeen where the kidnapping of White
Children and their sale into slaver "had become an industry."
The kidnapping of English children into slavery in America was actually legalized during
the first quarter of the 17th century. In that period a large number of the children of
poor parents, as well as orphan children were targeted for the White Slave trade. The poor
White Children were described as a "plague" and a "rowdy element."
Aristocrats who ran the Virginia Company such as Sir Thomas Smythe and Sir Edwin Sandys
viewed the children as a convenient pool of slave laborers for the fields of the Virginia
colony. In their petition to the Council of London in 1618 they complained of the great
number of "vagrant" children in the streets and requested that they might be
transported to Virginia to serve as laborers. A bill was passed in September of 1618
permitting the capture of children aged eight years old or older, girls as well as boys.
The eight year old boys were to be enslaved for sixteen years and the eight year old girls
for fourteen years, after which, it was said, they would be givne land. A directive
was issued for the capture of children in London, empowering city aldermen to direct their
constables to seize children on the streets and commit them to the prison-hospital at
Bridewell, where they were to await shipment to America.
"...their only 'crime' was that they were poor and happened to be found loitering or
sleeping in the streets when the constable passed by."
The street was not the only place child slaves were to be procured however. The homes of
indigent parents with large families were also on the agenda of the slave-traders. Poor
English parents were given the "opportunity" to surrender one or more of their
children to the slavers. If they refused they were to be starved into submission by being
denied any further relief assistance from the local government:
"To carry out the provisions of the act the Lord Mayor ...directed the
alderman...to (make) inquiry of those parents 'overcharged and burdened with poor
children' whether they wished to send any of them to Virginia...those who replied
negatively were to be told they would not receive any further poor relief from the
parish."
The grieving parents were assured that the shipment of their children to Virginia would be
beneficial to the children because it was a place where "under sever masters they may
be brought to goodness."
In January of 1620 a group of desperate, terrified English children attempted to break out
of Bridewell where they had been imprisoned while awaiting the slave-ships to America.
They rose up and fought:
"...matters were further complicated by the refusal of some of the children to be
transported. In late January a kind of 'revolt' occurred at Bridewell, with some of the
'ill-disposed' among the children declaring 'their unwillingness to go to
Virginia..." "A hasty letter from (Sir Edwin) Sandys to the King's
secretary (Sir Robert Naunton) quickly rectified the situation."
On January 31 the Privy Council decreed that if any of the children continued to their
"obstinance" they would be severely punished.
It is possible that ONE OF THE CHILDREN WAS ACTUALLY EXECUTED AS AN EXAMPLE TO THE OTHERS!
What is certain is that a month later the children, mostly boys, were forced on board the
ship Duty and transported to Virginia. From thence onward, English male child slaves came
to be known as "Duty Boys."
There would be many more shipments of these doomed children bound for the colonies in the
years ahead.
"From that time on little is known about them except that very few lived to become
adults. When a 'muster' or census of the (Virginia) colony was taken in 1625, the names of
only seven boys were listed (of the children kidnapped in 1619). All the rest were
dead...The statistics for the children sent in 1620 are equally grim...no more than five
were alive in 1625."
On April 30, 1621 Sir Edwin Sandys presented a plan to the English parliament for the
solution of the threat poor English people posed to the fabulously wealthy aristocracy:
mass shipment to Virginia, where they would all be "brought to goodness."
When control of the colony of Virginia passed from the privately- held Virginia Company
directly to the king, it was deemed more expedient, as time went on, to privatize the
traffic in White Children while placing it on an even larger basis to meet the cheap labor
needs of all the colonies. In this way the Crown avoided the opprobrium that might have
been connected with the further official sale of English children even as the aristocracy
covertly expanded this slave trade dramatically.
The early traffic in White Children to Virginia had proved profitable not only for the
Virginia Company but for the judges and other officials in England who administered the
capture of the children: J. Ferrar, treasurer of the Virginia Company, indicated that he
had been approached by the Maarshal of London and other officials who had been involved in
procuring children for the colony, proclaiming that they were owed a financial reward,
"for their care and travail therein, that they might be encouraged hereafter to take
the like pains whensoever they should have again the like occasion."
The officials subsequently received the handsome "cut" for their part in the
loathsome traffic in kidnapped White Children which they had desired. This collusion
between the public and private sphere generated profits and established a precedent for
many more "occasions" where "liek pains" would be eagerly taken. The
precedent established was the cornerstone of the trade in Child-slaves in Britain for
decades to come; a trade whose center, after London, would become the ports of Scotland:
"Press gangs in the hire of local merchants roamed the streets, seizing 'by force
such boys as seemed proper subjects for the slave trade.' Children were driven in flocks
through the town and confined for shipment in barns...So flagrant was the practice that
people in the countryside about Aberdeen avoided bringing children into the city for fear
they might be stolen; and so widespread was the collusion of merchants, shippers,
suppliers and even magistrates that the man who exposed it was forced to recant and run
out of town."
This man was Peter Williamson who as a child in 1743 was captured in Aberdeen and sold as
a slave for America with 70 other kidnapped Scottish Children in addition to other
freight. After eleven weeks at sea, the ship ran aground on a sand bar near Cape May on
the Delaware river. As it began to take on water, the crew fled in a lifeboat, leaving the
boys to drown in the sinking ship. The Planter managed to stay afloat until morning
however, and the slavers returned to salvage their "cargo."
Peter Williamson was twice-blessed. He not only survived the Planter but had the great
good fortune to have been purchased by a former slave, Hugh Wilson, who had also been
kidnapped in Scotland as a child. Wilson had fled slavery in another colony and now bought
Williamson in Pennsylvania. He did so solely out of compassion, knowing the boy would be
bought by someone else had Wilson not bought him first. Wilson paid for Williamson's
education in a colonial school and years later on his death, bequeathed to the lad his
horse, saddle and a small sum of money, all Wilson had in the world.
With this advantage, Williamson married, became an Indian-fighter on the frontier and
eventually made his way back to Scotland, seeking justice for himself and on behalf of all
kidnapped children including his deceased friend Hugh Wilson. This took the form of a
book, The Life and Curious Adventures of Peter Williamson, Who Was Carried Off from
Aberdeen and Sold for a Slave. But when he attempted to distribute it in Aberdeen he was
arrested on a charge of publishing a,
"scurrilous and infamous libel, reflecting greatly upon the character and reputations
of the merchants of Aberdeen."
The book was ordered to be publicly burned and Williamson jailed. He was eventually fined
and banished from the city. Williamson did not give up but sued the judges of Aberdeen and
took sworn statements from people who had witnessed kidnappings or who had had their own
children snatched by slavers. Typical was the testimony of William Jamieson of Oldmeldrum,
a farming village 12 miles from Aberdeen. In 1741, Jamiesons's ten year old son John was
captured by a "spirit" gang in the employ of "Bonny John" Burnet, a
powerful slave-merchant based in Aberdeen.
After making inquiries, Jamieson learned that his son was being held for shipment to the
"Plantations." Jamieson hurried to Aberdeen and frantically searched the docks
and ships for his boy. He found him on shore among a circle of about sixty other boys,
guarded by Bonny John's slavers who brandished horse whips. When the boys walked outside
the circle they were shipped. Jamieson called to his son to come to him. The boy tried to
run to his father. Father and son were beaten to the ground by the slavers. Jamieson
sought a writ from the Scottish courts but was informed,
"that it would be vain for him to apply to the magistrates to get his son liberate:
because some of the magistrates had a hand in those doings."
Jamieson never saw his son alive again,
"having never heard of him since he was carried away."
The testimony from Jamieson and from many others helped Peter Williamson to prevail. The
Aberdeen merchants were ordered by the Edinburgh Court of Sessions to pay him 100 pounds
sterling. Williamson was personally vindicated and his book would later be printed in a
new edition. The kidnapping continued, however.
The enslavement of WHITE CHILDREN FROM GREAT BRITAIN became the subject of a much better
known book, Robert Louis Stevenson's Kidnapped which was based on the real-life case of
James Annesley whose uncle, the Earl of Anglesey, had arranged for him to be seized and
sold into slavery in America, in order to remove any challenge to the Earl's inheritance
of his brother's estates.
Annesley was savagely whipped and brutally mistreated in America and it appeared as if he
would die in chains. He was eventually re-sold to another master who accepted his story
that he was an English lord and the heir to the Anglesey barony. He managed to make his
way back to Scotland where he wrote a book, Memoirs of an Unfortunate Young Nobleman,
Returned from Thirteen Years' Slavery in America, which came to the attention of Robert
Louis Stevenson.
Unfortunately this rare case involving the enslavement of a member of the English nobility
attracted attention only because it involved royalty. The far more common plight of
hundreds of thousands of poor British children who languished and died in slavery in the
colonies was ignored and their lot remained unchanged in the wake of the publication of
Stevenson's classic.
The head of one kidnapping ring, John Stewart, sold at least 500 White youths per year
into slavery in the colonies. Stewart's thugs were paid twenty-five shillings for Whites
they procured by force, usually a knock in the head with a blunt instrument, or fraud.
Stewart sold the Whites to the masters of the "White Guineaman" slave ships for
forty shillings each. One eyewitness to the mass kidnapping of poor Whites estimated that
10,000 were sold into slavery every year from throughout Great Britain. White Slaves
transported to the colonies suffered a staggering loss of life in the 17th and 18th
century. During the voyage to America it was customary to keep the White Slaves below deck
for the entire nine to twelve week journey. A White Slave would be confined to a hole not
more than sixteen feet long, chained with 50 other men to a board, with padlocked collars
around their necks.
The weeks of confinement below deck in the ship's stifling hold often resulted in
outbreaks of contagious disease which would sweep through the "cargo" of White
"freight" chained in the bowels of the ship. Ships carrying White Slaves to
America often lost half their (White) Slaves to death. According to historian Sharon V.
Salinger,
"Scattered data reveal that the mortality for [White] servants at certain times
equaled that for [Black] slaves in the 'middle passage,' and during other periods actually
exceeded the death rate for [Black] slaves."
Foster R. Dulles writing in Labor in America: A History, p. 6, states that whether
convicts, children 'spirited' from the countryside or political prisoners, White slaves,
"experienced discomforts and sufferings on their voyage across the Atlantic that
paralleled the cruel hardships undergone by negro slaves on the notorious Middle
Passage."
Dulles says the Whites were,
"indiscriminately herded aboard the 'white guineamen,' often as many as 300
passengers on little vessels of not more than 200 tons burden, overcrowded,
unsanitary...THE MORTALITY RATE WAS SOMETIMES AS HIGH AS 50% and YOUNG CHILDREN SELDOM
SURVIVED THE HORRORS OF A VOYAGE which might last anywhere from seven to twelve
weeks."
Independent investigator A.B. Ellis in the Argosy writes concerning the transport of White
Slaves,
"The human cargo, many of whom were still tormented by unhealed wounds, could not all
lie down at once without lying on each other. They were never suffered to go on deck. The
hatchway was constantly watched by sentinels armed with hangers and blunder busses. In the
dungeons below all was darkness, stench, lamentation, disease and death."
Marcus Jernegan describes the greed of the shipmasters which led to horrendous loss of
life for White Slaves transported to America:
"The voyage over often repeated the horrors of the famous 'middle passage' of slavery
fame. An average cargo was three hundred, but the shipmaster, for greater profit, would
sometimes crowd as many as six hundred into a small vessel ...The mortality under such
circumstances was tremendous, sometimes more than half...Mittelberger (an eyewitness) says
he saw thirty-two children thrown into the ocean during one voyage." ; "The
mercantile firms, as importers of (White) servants, were not too careful about their
treatment, as the more important purpose of the transaction was to get ships over to South
Carolina which could carry local produce back to Europe. Consequently the Irish, as well
as others, suffered greatly...It was almost as if the British merchants had redirected
their vessels from the African coast to the Irish coast, with the White Servants coming
over in much the same fashion as the African slaves."
A study of the middle passage of White Slaves was included in a Parliamentary Petition of
1659. It reported that White Slaves were locked below deck for two weeks while the slave
ship was still in port. Once under way, they were "all the way locked up under
decks...amongst horses." They were chained from their legs to their necks. One White
Woman Slave, Elizabeth Dudgeon, had dared to talk back to a guard. She was trussed up to a
ship's grating and mercilessly whipped. One of the ship's officers relished watching her
whipped:
"The corporal did not play with her, but laid it home, which I was very glad to
see...she has long been fishing for it, which she has at last got to her heart's
content."
In order to realize the maximum profit from the trade in White Slaves, the captains of the
White Guineamen crammed their ships with as many poor Whites as possible, certain that
even with the most callous disregard for the lives of the Whites the financial gain would
still make the trip worth the effort. A loss of 20% of their White "cargo" was
regarded as acceptable. But sometimes losses were much higher. Out of 350 White Slaves on
a ship bound for the colonies in 1638 only 80 arrived alive.
"We have thrown over board two and three a day for many days together"
wrote Thomas Rous, a survivor of the trip. A ship carrying White Slaves in 1685, the Betty
of London, left England with 100 White Slaves and arrived in the colonies with 49 left. A
number of factors contributed to the higher death rates for White Slaves than Blacks.
Although the goal of maximum profits motivated both trades, it cost more to obtain Blacks
from Africa than it did to capture Whites in Europe.
WHITE SLAVES WERE NOT CARED FOR AS WELL AS BLACKS BECAUSE THE WHITES WERE CHEAPLY OBTAINED
AND WERE VIEWED AS EXPENDABLE.
"The African slave trade was not fully established in the early 17th century...The
price of African slaves was prohibitively high and the English were neither familiar with
nor committed to black slavery as a basic institution." ; "Sold to a master in
Merion, near Philadelphia, David Evans was put to work 'hewing and uprooting trees,' land
clearing, the most arduous of colonial labor, work that was spared black slaves because
they were too valuable." ; "Before 1650, however, the greater victims of man's
inhumanity were the mass of White Christian servants who suffered at the hands of callous,
White Christian masters. For the time being, with all of their troubles, the blacks had it
better."
In the British West Indies the torture visited upon White Slaves by their masters was
routine. Masters hung White Slaves by their hands and set their hands afire as a means of
punishment. To end this barbarity, Colonel William Brayne wrote to English authorities in
1656 urging the importation of negro slaves on the grounds that,
"as the planters would have to pay much for them, they would have an interest in
preserving their lives, which was wanting in the case of (Whites)..."
many of whom, he charged were killed by overwork and cruel treatment.
Ship Captains involved in the White Slaves trade obtained White Slaves with penal status
free of charge and for all other categories of White Slaves paid at most a small sum to an
agent to procure them, forfeiting only the cost of their keep on board ship if they died.
Moreover, traders in Black slaves operated ships designed solely for the purpose of
carrying human cargo with the intent of creating conditions whereby as many Black slaves
as possible would reach America alive. White Slave ships were cargo ships with no special
provisions for passengers. In addition, transportation rules decreed that, in cases where
White Slaves were sold in advance to individual planters in America, if the White Slave
survived the voyage beyond the halfway point in the journey, the planter in America, not
the captain of the slave ship, would be responsible for the costs of the White Slaves'
provisions whether or not the slave survived the trip.
Captains of the slave ships became infamous for providing sufficient food for only the
first half of the trip and then virtually starving their White captives until they arrived
in America.
"Jammed into filthy holds, manacled, starved and abused, they suffered and died
during the crossings in gross numbers. Thousands were children under 12, snatched off the
streets..." ; "...the transportation...became a profitable enterprise. Traders
delivered thousands of bound laborers to Pennsylvania and exhibited a callous disregard
for their...cargoes."
As a result, White Slaves on board these ships suffered a high rate of disease. The number
of diseased White Slaves arriving was high enough for Pennsylvania officials to recommend
a quarantine law for them. Thus a new torment was to be endured for White Slaves who,
"were often stopped just short of the New World, with land in sight, and forced to
remain quarantined on board ships in which they had just spent a horrifying ten to twelve
weeks."
In 1738 Dr. Thomas Graeme reported to the colonial Council of Pennsylvania that if two
ships crammed with White Slaves were allowed to land,
"it might prove Dangerous to the health of the inhabitants of the Province."
Ships filled with diseased White Slaves landed anyway. In 1750 an island was established
for their quarantine, Fisher Island, at the mouth of Schuylkill River. But the
establishment of the quarantine area did nothing to protect the health of the White Slaves
and the island was more typical of Devil's Island than a place of recuperation.
In 1764 a clergyman, Pastor Helmuth, visited Fisher island and described it as
"a land of the living dead, a vault full of living corpses."
Even privileged 17th and 18th century "apprentices" often became slaves in the
end (i.e., unpaid, forced laborers for life) based on contractual trickery, judicial
malfeasance and usury employed against them during their supposedly limited term as
indentured servants. Such an apprentice would be enticed to borrow sums of money, sign a
contract with impossible provisions guaranteeing his or her violation of the contractual
terms and other unscrupulous means of extending both of the period of servitude as well as
broadening the scope of the servant's obligations. By these means an apprentice could be
transformed into a slave for life.
Free White people were sometimes induced to sign "indentures" and place
themselves in voluntary "temporary" slavery with the promise of obtaining farm
acreage at the end of their term of indenture. An American colony typically offered 50
acres to such persons. This was actually little more than an organized racket. The alleged
"servant" had his or her land grant entrusted to the landowner for whom they
labored, with the understanding that title would pass to the servant at the end of his
term of labor. But he could forfeit his rights to this promised land on the slightest
pretext of his owner, on such grounds as running away (the owner's word would do) or for
"indolence."
For the price of a White Slave's transport, six pounds, his owner secured a
"headright" to the land which was supposedly intended to go to the
"servant" but which was instead combined with the land supposedly set aside for
other White Slaves and formed into an estate which would multiply in value. By this means
and with an occasional additional fee to an English merchant or "spirit" who
provided the landowner with kidnapped extra White Slaves, the plantation owners of
colonial America played Monopoly with the fertile valleys and wooded uplands of Maryland
and Virginia. Meanwhile the rightful owners of this land lay in paupers' graves or
enshackled for life. This monopolistic grip on the land market was detrimental to all
White laborers. Those White slaves who did manage to obtain their freedom alter thirty or
forty years as chattel, were swindled out of the spectral "freedom dues" of
acreage, left to exist as landless peasants and scorned as "hillbillies" and
"White trash," in spite of decades of labor under monstrous conditions of
hardship.
"One would like to think that some of the few survivors went on to become prominent
leaders of the colony or were the founders of great families. This does not appear to be
the case...Some were doubtless the progenitors of the 'poor white trash' of the
South...many of the free whites who had descended from the poorer elements of the white
servant class became objects of charity..." ; "...at no time after 1640 in
either Barbados or St. Christopher, and probably Nevis, was there any cheap land enough
for a man to purchase with his freedom dues...the vast majority never became
landholders..." ; "It then became the custom to give the servant at the end of
his term, not land, but three hundred pounds of sugar, worth less than two pounds
sterling...It was hardly worth the servant's while to endure the conditions which have
been described for...($4 worth) of sugar."
These former White Slaves' share of the accumulated wealth of the American colonies,
measured by any standard, was negligible; their say in the planter aristocracy was
virtually non-existent. They were the "expendable" by-products and survivors of
a system of exploitation governed solely by merchant companies chartered in England by
aristocratic fiat. It was the exclusive government by a merchant company which Adam Smith
assailed as the worst of all governments for any country. Often working conditions were
made especially gruesome toward the end of the period when the [White] servant's contract
was due to expire in order to induce him to run away, lose his 50 acres and be held extra
years in enslavement for fleeing.
"Toward the end of the term of servitude, working conditions would often be
deliberately worsened, tempting the man to run away so the master might gain these
advantages."
Of 5,000 "indentured servants [Slaves]" who entered the colony of Maryland
between 1670 and 1680, fewer than 1300 proved their rights to their 50 acre "freedom
dues." What had become of the others? More than 1400 DIED FROM OVERWORK, CHRONIC
MALNOURISHMENT AND DISEASE. THE OTHERS WERE DEFRAUDED.
"By the 18th century the White Servant class was disillusioned ...The planters
had...squashed the laboring Whites...They were the easy pawns of the planters, who
despised them..."
The statutes overseeing non-penal indentures servitude in colonial America were mere
window-dressing and neither these statutes or the Common Law proved any obstacle to the
gradual enslavement of those with the non-penal status of "indentured servant,"
by means of tacking on extra time to be served, on the basis of fabricated or trumped
charges and minor offenses. A Virginia law of 1619 provided that
"if a servant willfully neglect his master's commands he shall suffer bodily
punishment."
When Wyatt became Governor in 1621 he was ordered to see that punishment for offenses
committed by White slaves would also be in terms of labor on behalf of the colonial
government, such labor to be performed after the slave fulfilled his original period of
service to his master. This is the evil practice of lengthening the time required for the
White Person's term of labor, a practice which quickly resulted in the lengthening of the
term of "service" by years and ended in the perpetual enslavement of the White.
"While it is true that the Common Law of England had the status of national law with
territorial extent in the colonies, the relation of Master to servant in cases of what
began as non-penal indentured servitude, was unknown to the Common Law and could neither
be derived from nor regulated by it."
Both indentured servitude and the White Slavery were permitted under of the penal codes,
depended for their regulation and sanction on special local statutes and tribunals which
acted as the "necessities of the occasion" demanded. The legacy of White
enslavement bound up in the medieval English legal concept of "villeinage"
contributed an informal framework or milieu at least, for legitimizing the enslavement of
the White poor in British-America. In this light, Richard B. Morris is only partially
correct. There was in fact precedent for White Slavery in Common Law but it was little
cited in the colonies, perhaps because such former legal citation would have exposed the
indentures racket for what it was.
Old English law did have something of a White Slave code, based on the concept of
"villeinage" from which we derive the words villain and villainy with their now
blatantly pejorative connotations. With the emergence of the English Common Law
(1175-1225) came the ruse of the writ of novel dissension which dealt with who was
qualified to contest land evictions. The aristocrats who drafted the writ established a
category of juridical unfreedom known as villein tenure which could defeat any English
peasant's claim to land, no matte how long his family had held it.
At first villain denoted a White peasant (from the French Carolingian word vilani, a
general description for a peasant dependent upon a lord), and the sense of evil that was
attached to the word was largely a construct of the rich who would naturally want their
world order to be seen as good and therefore any White kinsman enslaved was seen as
"justly deserving" of such treatment and hence had to have been bad, evil, a
"villain."
It was as important for the English nobility to make this claim about English slave
"villeins" as it was for American colonial merchants to label the Whites they
enslaved as criminals and traitors or in the common parlance found in original documents
of the period, as "rubbish and dung." The Oxford Dictionary gives the following
definition of villainy,
"The condition or state of a villein, bondage, servitude, henace base or ignoble
condition."
In other words, the connection between villaniny and evil first came about from a
premeditated association between the condition of being a slave and the state of being an
evil person. Who is it that would benefit from stigmatizing White Slaves as evil beings?
who but the slave holding aristocracy who could then justify any crime they committed
against these "villains." Much of the common understanding of the land swindles
perpetrated against the English villein class is derived from the legal treatise, De
legibus et Consuetudinibus Angliae, commonly known as Bracton after Sir Henry de Bracton.
The Bracton code equates the English villein with the Roman servus or slve. The Bracton
code denies all rights to the villein by placing him in the same category as the Roman
servus. Villeinage was considered a hereditary condition:
"Neither of Duke, earl or lord by ancestry but of villain (vylayne) people."
"Thou are of vylayn blood on thy father's side."
This propaganda-labeling of enslaved Whites may be better understood if we examine the
original meaning and the subsequent connotations associated with the use of another name,
that of "churl." We call someone a churl today who is badly bred or bad acting.
Yet according to the Random House Dictionary of the English Language, originally a churl
was an English "freeman of the lowest rank" -- the poorest White who was not a
slave. It is no coincidence that the names for White Slaves and White poor came to be
linked with evil and bad breeding as part of a self-serving process of appellation
manufactured by their rulers. A revealing display of the opprobrium associated with both
words is exhibited in a description by Sir Walter Scott,
"Sweeping from the earth some few hundreds of villain churles, who are born but to
plow it."
The association of these names with what Scott views as a degraded existence of plowing
the earth is a holdover from plutocratic ancient Roman philosophy.
"Romans considered manual occupations...as degrading in themselves..."
Since these were associated in the aristocratic mind with the work of slaves. Up until
recently, European history was largely written from the point of view of institutional
Churchianity, the wealthy, the aristocracy and the merchant class, at the expense of the
laboring people. Rodney Hilton further cautions that,
"historians risk falling into the trap dug for the peasants by the lawyers, for most
of our evidence about freedom and serfdom depends on evidence which is a by-product of the
legal...process."
The creation of an exculpatory nomenclature rigged to justify the depredations of the
ruling class against the White poor by establishing an intrinsic relationship between
being poor and being evil, is a masterstroke of propaganda. It leads to the
internalization of these negative images in the minds of the White poor themselves.
Some memory of these connections and connotations were no doubt extant in the minds of
colonial Americans and has surely contributed to the dearth of material on those who
survived or were descended from White Slavery. In Britain and Europe under the laws of
villeinage, survivors and descendants of White Slavery were susceptible to discrimination
before the law and even reenslavement:
"The former (White) Slaves, now serfs, might gradually shift into another legal
category over several generations, or the taint of servility might lose much of its
practical meaning as they became de facto independent, but...the descendants of (White)
Slaves were for centuries considered unfree in a way that other people in equally
dependent economic positions were not."
This taint, which the ruling class cleverly asserted was the result of some hereditary
defect among White Slaves, has been applied to many nations of White peoples from the
Slavs to the Irish, Welsh and Scottish. The stigma attached to White "slave
blood" by the rulers served as an effective device for:
1). Keeping such descendants from seeking redress for past wrongs.
2). Being ashamed to identify their heritage and background in the form of
written memorialization.
3). Serving as a neat propaganda justification for the continuing privileges
and governance of the aristocracy.
This pattern is occasionally overturned when we examine unfiltered folk literature or
music. For example, in such 13th century Icelandic folk sagas as the Frostbroeora and the
Laxdoela, White Slaves are portrayed as fair and Nordic in general appearance and
possessed of great personal courage and honor. Biblical provisions for bound and hired
labor were cited to justify White Slavery in early America, on the grounds that it was
Scriptural and therefore humane. The Body of Liberties of 1641, the first law code of
Puritan New England, established four categories of servitude, citing Exodus 21:2;
Leviticus 25:39-55 and Deuteronomy 23:15-16. However, had those Scriptures actually been
obeyed, the enslavement of Christians (the heirs of the Israelites) would never have taken
place. Deuteronomy mandates that a bondsman is not to be oppressed. Exodus decrees that
the term of service will under no circumstance exceed six years. Leviticus forbids forced
slavery for the payment of debts as well as child slavery. The permanent enslavement
of racial aliens and their children was permitted.
Abraham Lincoln's use of the Bible, which according to his law partner he did not believe
in, to justify rights for negro slaves, is another example of this masterful politician's
distortion of fact. While it is true that Galatians 3:28 contains the famous passage about
there being "neither slave nor free...in Christ Jesus," this statement is meant
to have only a spiritual application. The passage also contains the statement that there
is neither male nor female in Christ, but I rather doubt Paul intended to sanction
transvestitism or homosexuality. In Ephesians 6:5 slaves are ordered to obey their masters
"with fear and trembling as unto Christ." In considering the Biblical stand on
slavery, it is necessary to differentiate Biblical laws concerning the enslavement of
aliens and Israelites. The former could be permanent, the latter was to be temporary, even
though many who claimed to be the Christian heirs of the Israelites acted otherwise.
In America, those who enslaved Blacks and disparaged the manual laborer generally did not
derive their philosophy from Biblical sources, however: that legacy falls in the camp of
ancient Rome. Southern planters would sometimes justify the bondage of the negro
with Biblical arguments, but this was usually a rejoinder to abolitionist attacks, rather
than the main source of enslavement praxis, it is chiefly from the aristocratic notions of
the Romans toward manual labor that the classic mindset of the modern slaver in the West
evolved. These concepts differ considerably from the status of the manual laborer in the
Bible. Jesus Christ, the "King of Kings," toiled as a carpenter for most of His
life.
Then as now, religious hypocrites of "Churchianity," as it more properly may be
called, ignored Bible teachings on the subject even as they cited them for purposes of
their own justification in enslaving fellow White Christians for pecuniary gain. It should
be noted that some individual masters in early America who felt convicted by the
Scriptures regulating bonded kinsmen moderated their treatment of White bondsmen
accordingly.
In colonial America, White people could be enslaved for such an "offense" as
missing church services more than three times or for "prevention of an idle course of
life." In 1640 a Virginia master needed to ensure further labor from his White
servants in order to place his investments and land improvements on a more secure basis.
He therefore falsely accused a number of his servants of a conspiracy "to run out of
the colony and enticing divers others to be actors in the same conspiracy." As a
result of his accusation the alleged "runaways" were severely whipped and had
their term of forced labor lengthened an additional seven years, to be served "in
irons."
This can be regarded as a light sentence in view of the fact that seven years was a
standard addition of the term of labor for the crime of running away, or conspiring to do
so, to which would then be added, in terms of additional time, the expenses incurred for
capture and return of the White to his master, such costs being likely to include rewards,
sheriffs and slave-hunters' bounties and jail fees. These latter were not fixed by law
until 1726 and were a source of tremendous abuse by tacking on huge costs to the capture
of the runaway and then commanding that the runaway pay for these inflated costs in terms
of years of his life in further forced-labor.
A White Slave who fled or was accused of fleeing often had his term of labor extended
fifteen, twenty or even fifty years, as a result. White Slave Lawrence Finny received an
additional seven years, eleven months of forced labor for running away, while escaped
White Slave William Fisher on being caught, received an additional term of six years and
250 days.
Just for being absent from the plantation at any time, a White Slave would be forced to
undergo one additional year of slavery for every two hours he was absent. Starving
White Slaves who took extra food from their masters' overflowing larders were enslaved
another two years for each commission of that "crime."
Further accusations, infractions and violations added to these additions and in sum
amounted to a lifetime of total enslavement and not the allegedly limited, benign White
"indentured servitude" our court historians fleetingly refer to on their way to
their semester-long devotion to negro slave studies.
Indeed, one-half of White "indentured servants" did not live to attain their
freedom. Lest anyone think this grim datum refers mainly to Whites enslaved in old age, it
actually refers to Whites who were first "indentured" between the ages of 16 and
20. "The truth is," wrote White Slave Edward Hill, "we live in the
fearfullest age that ever Christians lived in."
Young white females in bondage were denied the right to marry, a clever device for helping
extend their servitude into full-fledged slavery since the penalty for a woman having a
baby out of wedlock while a slave, was an extension of her term of slave labor another two
and a half years. A white male slave had at least four years added to his time for having
sex with a White female slave or for entering into a compact of marriage with her.
Twenty-three year old Henry Carman, a White slave since he had been kidnapped in London at
the age of seventeen, made White Slave Alice Chambers pregnant and received an additional
seven years slavery for this "crime."
A Virginia law of 1672 recognized that there were masters who had lengthened the
enslavement of their White Female Slaves by making them pregnant by the slavemaster
himself. No punishment was given to the master for such acts, however. As bad as this may
seem it cannot compare with the dreadful fate that awaited the children of the enslaved
White mother. The "bastard" or "obscene" children, as they were
called, of unmarried White women-slaves were bound over to the mother's slavemaster for a
period of thirty-one years! This heinous child-slavery from birth was not modified until
1765 when the Assembly of Virginia declared it to be "an unreasonable severity to
such children" and limited the term of bondage for such White Children to a
"mere" 21 years for boys and 18 years for girls.
The following is an entry describing one such case of infant- enslavement:
"Margaret Micabin servant to Mr. David Crawley having a bastard Child, Mr. Crawley
prays the gentlemen of this Vestry to bind out the said Child as they think fit. It is
ordered by the Vestry that the Church-Wardens bind out the said Child named John Sadler
born the 26th July last 1720. The foresaid child is by indenture bound unto Mr. David
Crawley to serve according to Law."
At other times the baby was forcibly separated from the White Slave mother shortly after
birth. White woman Sally Brant was enslaved to the wealthy Quaker family of Henry and
Elizabeth Drinker. The Quakers were strong campaigners against negro slavery BUT HAD NO
QUALMS ABOUT WHITE SLAVERY! When Sally Brant's baby was born in the Drinker's country
house. Sally was forced by the Drinkers to return to their main house in Philadelphia,
leaving the newborn infant behind with a stranger. The White Slave father of the child was
also not allowed to see his baby and the infant subsequently died. Elizabeth Drinker, the
wealthy Quaker slaveowner, kept a diary in which she philosophically noted that the death
of her White Slave's baby had most likely worked out for the best.
"Unmarried (White) women servants who became pregnant, as did an estimated 20
percent, received special punishment. All had to serve additional years; some had their
children taken from them and sold, for a few pounds of tobacco, to another master."
By 1769 all children born to even free White women who were unmarried were also candidates
for enslavement:
"...in 1769...the church wardens were instructed to bind out illegitimate children of
free single White women."
Long hours and exposure to disease and the elements were considered part of a first year
"seasoning" process it was thought a good White Slave would require. A White
Slave would work from sunrise to sunset in the fields and then might be put to work in a
shed grinding corn until midnight or one a.m. and expected to return to the fields the
next day at dawn. In some southern colonies with extreme heat, as many as 80% of a
shipment of White Slaves died in their first year in the New World. Richard Ligon, a
traveling writer and eyewitness to White Slavery has written that he saw a White Slave
beaten with a cane,
"about the head till the blood has followed for a fault that is not worth speaking
of; and yet he must be patient, or worse will follow."
How many White tourists today who take winter vacations in such Caribbean islands as
Jamaica and Barbados know that they are visiting the site of a gruesome holocaust against
poor White people who died by the tens of thousands and were slaves in those islands long
before Blacks ever were? Historian Richard Dunn has stated that the early sugar
plantations of the British West Indies were nothing more than mass graves for White
workers. Four-fifths of the White slaves sent to the West Indies didn't survive the
first year.
In 1688 a member of the nobility wrote from a British colony in the Caribbean islands to
the British government,
"I beg...care for the poor White Servants here, who are used with more barbarous
cruelty than if in Algiers. Their bodies and souls are used as if hell commenced here and
only continued in the world to come." ; "Twenty or more (White) servants
laboring under the supervision of an overseer led the most wearisome and miserable
lives...if a servant complained, the overseer would beat him; if he resisted, the master
might double his time in bondage...the overseers act like those in charge of galley
slaves...The cost in (White) lives of such inhuman treatment is incalculable, but it was
very, very high."
One example of the horrible conditions White Slaves labored under can be seen in the case
of the White Slave known to history as Boulton. In 1646 Boulton's master was suspected of
cheating a colonial official of a large shipment of cotton. The master asked the White
Slave if he would take the blame. If Boulton made the bogus confession in place of his
master he was liable to have both his ears cut off by the colonial officials as well as
having more time added to his period of bondage.
However Boulton's master promised that he would not only ignore the extra time if Boulton
agreed to take the blame for him, but that he would free Goulton from slavery after
Boutlton had been punished by the authorities. So desperate was Boulton to be free that
Boulton agreed to pretend that his master had told him to give the cotton to the
officials, but that instead he had embezzled it for his own use. Both of the White Slave's
ears were subsequently cut off. Afterward, his master kept his part of the bargain and
Boulton was emancipated.
"Some planters grew so desperate for help that they would ransom White captives from
the Indians, returning them to a servitude which, according to one complainant, 'differeth
not from her slavery with the Indians."
"Fugitive Slave" laws, enacted to facilitate the apprehension and punishment of
runaway White Slaves is another suppressed aspect of the history of early America. William
Hening in his 13 volume Statutes at Large of Virginia records that the punishment for
runaway Whites was to be "branded in the cheek with the letter R." they also
often had one or both of their ears cut off. In 1640 the General Court of Virginia ruled
that two White slaves,
"principal actors and contrivers in a most dangerous conspiracy by attempting to run
out of the country and (by) enticing divers others to be actors in said Conspiracy,"
be whipped, branded and required to serve the colony an additional seven years in leg
irons.
In the stock scenes from Hollywood films liek Glory the negro slave's shirt is
dramatically lifted to reveal a back full of hideous scars from repeated shippings. This
brings tears to the eyes of one of his White New England commanders in the fictional film
Glory. Yet in reality, among the White soldiers in that scene there would have been more
than a few who also bore massive scars from a whip or who had seen the scars of the lash
on their White fathers' backs. The current image of Blacks as predominantly the ones who
bore the scars of the whiplash is in error.
On September 20, 1776 the Continental Congress Authorized the whipping of unruly American
enlisted men with up to one hundred lashes. There are cases on record of rank and file
White troops receiving up to two hundred-fifty whip-lashes! This incredible
savagery represented the level of treatment poor Whites sometimes experienced at the hands
of the authorities in 18th century America,
"...the officer class...came to use the lash unsparingly (on)...unpropertied...
recruits...the poor white rank and file..."
White slaves,
"found themselves powerless as individuals, without honor or respect, and driven into
commodity production not by any inner sense of moral duty but by the outer stimulus of the
whip." ; "In 1744 provision was made for whipping escaped servants through the
parish, after proof had been made before a justice of the peace that they were
fugitives...Dennis Mahoon was sentenced to be stripped naked to his wait and receive
thirty-nine lashes upon his naked back.' This was his punishment for a second offense in
persuading fellow servants to run away..." ; "(White) servants were tortured for
confessions (fire was inserted between their fingers and knotted ropes were put about
their necks)..."
Not only White Slaves were brutalized but also those who dared to aid them in gaining
their freedom. The image of whites being hunted, whipped and even jailed for assisting
fellow Whites out of slavery is completely absent from modern textbook accounts of slavery
in America. Those who helped White Slaves run away in colonial America were known as
"enticers" and received 30 lashes with a whip if caught. Merely to counsel a
White Slave to seek his freedom was considered by the colonial courts as illegal
interference with the property rights of the rich and resulted in criminal penalties.
Hening states that to reduce the number of runaway White slaves a pass was required for
any person leaving the Virginia colony and masters of ships were put under severe penalty
for taking any White Slave to freedom. Advertisements regularly appeared in early American
newspapers for fugitive White Slaves. One such wanted notice described a slave who had run
off as having a,
"long visage of lightish complexion, and thin-flaxen hair; sometimes ties his hair
behind with a string, a very proud fellow...very impudent..."
Notices of runaway White Slaves in South Carolina newspapers included specific warnings
against harboring or assisting the fugitive White Slaves and listed the statutory criminal
penalties for doing so. Certificates of freedom were required to be carried on the person
of freed White Slaves at all times. All White workers and poor in colonial America were
regarded as suspect, guilty of being fugitive slaves unless they could "give an
intelligent account of themselves" or show their certificate; a very convenient
arrangement for enslaving free White men and women in America by claiming they were
fugitive White Slaves. White Slaves who ran away found safe haven in portions of North
Carolina which became known in Virginia as the "Refuge of Runaways." The
mountains of Appalachia also served as hideouts for fugitive White Slaves. The hunting of
White slaves became a lucrative practice. In Virginia in 1699 persons who successfully
hunted a White Slave received 1000 lbs. of tobacco, paid for by the future labor that
would be extracted form the White Slave. Richard B. Morris describes the appearance of
fugitive White Slaves:
"One culprit was described as having a string of bells (fastened) around his neck
which made a hideous jingling and discordant noise, another wore an iron collar, and
others bore the scars of recent whippings on their backs."
The history of "racist White toleration" of the hunting of negro slaves as well
as the controversy surrounding the capture of fugitive black slaves in the North just
prior to the Civil War is incomprehensible without being placed in the context of the body
of Fugitive Slave Law that was first established for use against White Slaves. In colonial
America the fugitive White slave was considered the property of the master and the legal
right to recovery was universally recognized.
The Articles of the New England Confederation provided that where a White Slave fled his
master for another colony in the Confederation, upon certification by one judge in the
colony to which the White Slave had fled, the fugitive would be delivered back into
slavery. Classed with "thieves and other criminals," the fugitive White Slave
could be pursued "by hue and cry" on land and over water, and men and boats were
often impressed in the hunt for him. Magistrates, sheriffs or constables were authorized
by statute to whip the fugitive white Man severely before returning him to his master,
twenty to thirty-nine lashes being the usual sentence imposed [Blacks were not commonly
treated the same]. Massachusetts authorized that any White Slave who had been previously
whipped for running away was to be whipped again just for being found outside his master's
farm without a note of permission from the slavemaster.
Between February 12, 1732 and December 20, 1735, the South Carolina Gazette carried 110
wanted notices for fugitive Black slaves and forty-one notices for fugitive White Slaves.
The claims of masters in one colony upon the fugitive White Slaves in another jurisdiction
were allowed from the beginning of colonial settlement in America. The U.S. Constitution
upheld the colonial fugitive White Slave laws in its Article IV, section 2:
"No person held to service or labor in one state, under the Laws thereof escaping
into another, shall, in Consequence of any Law or Regulation therein, be discharged from
such Service or Labor, but shall be delivered up on a claim of the Party to whom such
Service or Labor may be due."
This law was enacted by Whites against fellow White people and allowed White slavery to
continue in some parts of America right up until the Civil War. The first legal blow to
the system of White bondage didn't occur until 1821 when an Indiana court began to enforce
the Ordinance of 1787 prohibiting White Slavery in the old "Northwest
Territory." The decision cited the Constitution of the state of Indiana which in turn
drew its base from the 1787 ordinance in holding all White Slavery null, void and
unenforceable. The Thirteenth Amendment to the Constitution dealt a fatal blow to White
Slavery. The enslavement of Whites in one form or another has proved very durable. bound
White servitude for orphans and destitute children on contracts of indenture still
occurred in New York State up until 1923 when they were finally banned.
During the American Revolution the Continental Congress, desperate for fighting manpower,
permitted the recruitment of White Slaves into the army, which was tantamount to granting
them their freedom. This was not particularly radical however, in view of the fact that
"four score and seven years" before Lincoln's Emancipation Proclamation, Lord
Dunmore, the Royal governor of Virginia, freed the negroes in his jurisdiction in the hope
they would join the "Ethiopian Regiment" he had formed and fight the patriots.
In 1765, a fourteen year old Irish lad, Matthew Lyon, was orphaned when his father was
executed along with other leaders of the "White Boys," an Irish farmer's
association organized to resist British government confiscation of their farmlands. The
boy was enslaved and transported to America where he was purchased by a wealthy
Connecticut merchant. Later he was made to endure the shame of being sold to another
master in exchange of two deer
"which was a source of no end of scoffs and jeers" at Lyon's "irreparable
disgrace of being sold for a pair of stags."
By the spring of 1775 Matthew Lyon had taken advantage of the manpower shortage of the
American Revolution and joined an obscure, rag-tag band of guerrilla fighters. Lyon and
his fellow rebels were destined to enter the annals of historical fame when not long
afterward they appeared out of nowhere at Ticonderoga in northern New York where their
commander, Ethan Allen, demanded the surrender of the mighty British fort. Matthew Lyon
had joined the Green Mountain boys. "Eighty five of us," Lyon would later recall
with pride, "took from one hundred and forty British veterans the Fort
Ticonderoga."
The guns, cannon and ammunition obtained at Ticonderoga would supply the American army
throughout the war. One of the founders of the state of Vermont, he was elected to its
assembly and later to the U.S. Congress, where the eponymous firebrand wrestled a
Federalist on the floor of the House of Representatives. He was the first American to be
indicted under President John Adams' Sedition Act, for publishing material against central
Federal government and Adams. Forced to run for Congress from a jail cell, Lyon was
overwhelmingly re-elected and returned to a tumultuous hero's welcome in Vermont.
The colonies of Rhode Island, New Jersey and Maryland declared White Slaves eligible to
enlist in the Continental Army without their master's consent. Though such decrees had the
effect of granting the freedom of those slaves who fought, the American Revolution did not
result in a prohibition of the institution of White Slavery itself.
In rhetoric it was conceded that White Slavery was "contrary to the idea of
liberty" but the system remained profitable and many Southern and middle colony White
Slaves had not been allowed to join the Revolutionary Army and they remained in bondage.
The importation of White Slaves was resumed on nearly as large a scale after the American
Revolution as it had existed before. Fear of rebellion by White Slaves led to the passage
of a Virginia law to suppress
"unlawful meetings" and directed that "all masters of families be enjoyned
to take especial care that servants do not depart from their houses on Sundays or any
other days without particular lycence from them."
Individual acts of rebellion by White Slaves were constant and many slavemasters were
killed.
"...unrest among White servants was more or less chronic."
In the Caribbean colonies White Slaves revolted by burning the sugar cane of the
slavemaster "to the utter ruin and undon of their Masters."
Lured to colonial America with the promise of teaching job, Thomas Hellier was instead
enslaved as a field worker. That betrayal combined with the viciousness of his
slavemaster's wife led him to kill the slavemaster's entire family with an axe in 1678.
Hellier was believed to have been inspired by Bacon's Rebellion two years before.
In 1676 Nathaniel Bacon led an uprising in Virginia. A small army of former White Slaves
and fugitive White Slaves joined with the 30 year old Indian fighter Bacon against the
House of Burgesses and the Governor, sparked by anger at the government's apathy in the
face of warring Indians and their own penurious condition after having been cheated out of
the "head" acreage they were promised. There was great fear among the circle of
the royal governor, William Berkeley, that the White Slaves of the entire region would
rise with Bacon and "carry all beyond remedy to destruction."
Bacon's rebels burned down the city of Jamestown, plundered the plantations and expelled
the royal Governor. Bacon died suddenly, allegedly of dysentery, on October 26 at the
height of the insurrection, "...an incredible number of the meanest (poorest) of
people were everywhere armed to assist him and his cause," and these fought on
through the winter, until the last of them were captured or killed by January of 1677.
Other White Slave rebellions included the risings of 1634 which took 800 troops to put
down, and 1647 in which 18 leaders of the White revolt were tortured and hung.
The rulers of Barbados even passed a proclamation in 1649,
"And act for an Annual Day of Thanksgiving for our deliverance from the last
Insurrection of servants."
Richard Ligon was an eyewitness to this White Slave plot on Barbados:
"Their sufferings being grown to a great height, and their daily complainings to one
another...being spread throughout the Island; at the last, some amongst them, whose
spirits were not able to endure such slavery, resolved to break through it, or die in the
act; and so conspired with some others...so that a day was appointed to fall upon their
Masters and cut all their throats..."
And in Virginia:
"After mid-century the number of runaway (White) servants increased steadily, and in
1661 and 1663, servants in two separate (Virginia) counties took up arms and demanded
freedom. The first episode occurred in York County, where servants complained of 'hard
usage'...Isaac Friend, their leader, planned to bring together about forty servants. They
would then 'get arms' and march through the country, raising recruits by urging servants
'who would be for liberty, and free from bondage,' to join them. Once a large enough force
had been aroused, the rebels would go through the country and kill those that made any
opposition, and they would either be free or die for it."
More White Slave "plots" and revolts occurred in 1686 and 1692 including a
rebellion the "Independents," an insurgent group of White Protestant slaves and
freedmen who revolted against Maryland's Catholic theocracy. In 1721 White slaves were
arrested while attempting to seize an arsenal at Annapolis, Maryland, the arms to be used
in an uprising against the Planters. In Florida in 1768 White Slaves revolted at the
Turnbull plantation in New Smyrna. The government needed two ships full of troops and
cannon to put down the revolt.
"If the servant class threw up one radical hero, it was Cornelius Bryan, an Irish
servant, imprisoned for mutiny on countless occasions and regularly whipped by the hangman
for assembling servants and publicly making anti-planter remarks."
The colonial powers were not adverse to call on unlikely policemen to suppress White slave
revolts: Blacks. BLACKS WERE ADMITTED TO THE COLONIAL MILITIA RESPONSIBLE FOR POLICING
WHITE SLAVES! The aristocratic planters had felt the necessity to "arm part of their
blackmen" to assist in suppressing White Slave revolts. Armed Black militias
patrolled the Carolinas from the end of the 17th century to at least 1710 when Thomas
Nairne reported that Blacks continued to be members of armed colonial militias organized
by local governments.
These White rebellions foreshadowed the later switch from reliance on masses of White
slaves to greater and greater importation of Blacks because of their pliability and
passivity. But throughout the 17th and much of the 18th century, the tobacco, sugar and
cotton colonies maintained a sizable White Slave population. Negro Slaves simply cost too
much to import and purchase. Whites were cheaper and more expendable, until they began to
fight.
"...planter, especially in the South, eventually elected to replace the restive White
Servants with the more identifiable and presumably less criminal black slaves."
The toughness and sturdiness of the White Slaves who not only fought in Bacon's Rebellion
but took the worst duty in the French and Indian wars and the American Revolution may have
been due in part to the presence of convicts in their ranks.
Not all colonists looked with favor on the reliance upon White convict-slave-labor to
build America. Benjamin Franklin totally opposed White Slavery and supposedly referred to
White convict-slaves shipped to America as "human serpents." Yet when attempts
were made to abolish White Slavery and thereby stop the flow of both kidnapped and convict
labor into colonial America, the measures were generally voted down, as when in 1748
Virginia's Burgesses upheld the Act of 1705, which legitimized the White Slavery under a
veil of legal phraseology. White convict-labor was used for the very harshest and
life-threatening jobs others would not do, such as fighting the Indians and French in
Arctic conditions with few, if any, firearms.
Benjamin Franklin had been apprenticed at age 12 to his printer- brother, the term of his
indenture was to have been for nine years, but he managed to have his contract voided
while his brother was in jail for seditious publishing. As a young man, Franklin was once
mistaken for a fugitive White Slave, "and in danger of being taken up on that
suspicion."
The notion that Whites are particularly "hardhearted" and "racist"
because they upheld a fugitive slave law against Blacks is specious when considered in
light of the enactments against rebellious and fugitive White Slaves. If a tiny clique of
wealthy Whites didn't feel sorry for their own people thus enslaved, and hunted them when
they escaped or revolted, why would anyone expect them to exempt negroes from the same
treatment?
Sometimes the reverse was true. Whites like Harriet Beecher Stowe were solely concerned
with the plight of Blacks AND AVOIDED THE SLAVERY OF WHITES TO DENY THE OPPRESSION OF
WHITES. Like the wealthy White elite of the 1990s who do nothing for the White poor but
campaign tirelessly for the rights of colored people. The Quakers of colonial Philadelphia
were early advocates of Black rights and abolition of negro servitude EVEN AS THEY WHIPPED
AND BRUTALIZED THE WHITE SLAVES THEY CONTINUED TO OWN.
HARRIET BEECHER STOWE WAS ONE OF THE GREAT HYPOCRITES OF THE 19th CENTURY, A PIOUS FRAUD
WHOSE LEGACY OF MALIGNANT HATRED FOR HER OWN KIND HAS INFECTED MANY ANOTHER WHITE MAN AND
WOMAN OF THIS DAY. During her triumphal 1853 tour of Britain in the wake of the
publication of Uncle Tom's Cabin, Stowe was the guest of Duchess of Sutherland, a woman of
vast wealth who had an interest in the "betterment of the negro."
The Sutherland wealth was based in part on one of the most criminal land-grabs in British
history. The Sutherlands had seized the ancient holdings of the traditional clans of
Scotland and burned the Highland crofters off their lands, resulting in pauperism and in
many cases, outright starvation of Scottish women and children. At one point the
Sutherlands even hired armed guards to prevent famine-stricken Scottish Highlander
"rabble" from catching fish in the Sutherland's well-stocked salmon and trout
rivers. When Harriet Beecher Stowe returned to America she wrote a glowing account
of the Sutherlands in her travel book Sunny Memories, specifically praising them for their
"enlightened land policies" in Scotland, which she described as
"an almost sublime instance of the benevolent employment of superior wealth and power
in shortening the struggles of advancing civilization."
In response to Stowe's appalling whitewash of the crimes committed against the Scottish
Highlanders, a London newspaper described Uncle Tom's Cabin as a "downright
imposture" and "ranting, canting nonsense." White Slaves were
punished with merciless whippings and beatings. The records of Middlesex County, Virginia
relate how a slavemaster confessed;
"that he hath most uncivilly and inhumanly beaten a (White) female with great knotted
whipcord, so that the poor servant is a lamentable spectacle to behold."
A case in the country from 1655 relates how a White Slave was "fastened by a lock
with a chain to it" by his master and tied to a shop door and "whipped till he
was very bloody." The beating and whipping of White Slaves resulted in so many being
beaten to death that in 1662 the Virginia Assembly passed a law prohibiting the private
burial of White Slaves because such burial helped to conceal their murders and encouraged
further atrocities against other White Slaves. A grievously ill White Slave was forced by
his master to dig his own grave, since there was little likelihood that the master would
obtain any more labor from him. The White Slave's owner,
"made him sick and languishing as he was, dig his own grave, in which he was laid a
few days afterwards, the others being too busy to dig it, having their hands full in
attending to the tobacco."
In New England, Nicholas Weekes and his wife deliberately cut off the toes of their White
Slave who subsequently died. Marmaduke Pierce in Massachusetts severely beat a White Slave
boy with a rod and finally beat him to death. Pierce was not punished for the murder. In
1655 in the Plymouth Colony a master named Mr. Latham, starved his 14 year old White Slave
boy, beat him and left him to die outdoors in sub-zero temperatures. The dead boy's body
showed the markings of repeated beatings and his hands and feet were frozen solid.
COLONIAL RECORDS ARE FULL OF THE DEATHS BY BEATING, STARVATION AND EXPOSURE OF WHITE
SLAVES in addition to tragic accounts such as one of the New Jersey White Slave boy who
drowned himself rather than continue to face the unmerciful beatings of his master.
Henry Smith beat to death an elderly White Slave and raped two of his female White Slaves
in Virginia. John Dandy beat to death his White Slave boy whose black and blue body was
found floating down a creek in Maryland. Pope Alvey beat his White Slave girls Alice
Sanford to death in 1663. She was reported to have been "beaten to a Jelly."
Joseph Fincher beat his White slave Jeffery Haggman to death in 1664. John Grammer ordered
his plantation overseer to beat his White Slave 100 times with a cat-o'-nine-tails. The
White Slave died from his wounds. The overseer, rather than expressing regret at the death
he inflicted stated,
"I could have givne him tenn times more."
There are thousands of cases in the colonial archives of inhuman mistreatment, cruelty,
beatings and the entire litany of Uncle Tom's Cabin horrors administered to hapless White
Slaves.
In Australia, White Slave Joseph Mansbury had been whipped repeatedly to such an extent
that his back appeared,
"quite bare of flesh, and his collar bones were exposed looking very much like two
Ivory Polished horns. It was with difficulty that we could find another place to flog him.
Tony [Chandler, the overseer] suggested to me that we had better do it on the soles of his
feet next time."
Hughes describes the fate of White slaves as one of "prolonged and hideous
torture." One overseer in Australia whose specialty was shipping White Slaves would
say while applying his whip on their backs.
"Another half pound mate, off the beggar's ribs."
The overseer's face and clothes were described as having the appearance of,
"a mincemeat chopper, being covered in flesh from the victim's body."
In colonial America, in one case, the sole punishment for the murder of a White Slave
(explained as an accident) consisted of the master and his wife being forbidden from
owning any White Slaves for a period of three years. A White girl enslaved by a woman
called "Mistress Ward," was whipped so badly that she died from it. On the
finding of a jury that such action was "unreasonable and unchristian like"
Mistress Ward was fined 300 pounds of tobacco.
"...it was no easy task to secure the conviction of a master for the murder of his
(White) servant...Convictions of masters for the murder or manslaughter of their servants
were definitely the exception. In a preponderance of such trials they were acquitted or
let off lightly, often in the face of incontrovertible evidence of guilt."
In 1678 Charles Grimlin, a wealthy American colonial planter, was found guilty of
murdering a female White Slave he owned. He was pardoned and set free. In the same year a
White woman "of low origins," killed her husband, a man of some wealth. The same
judge who pardoned Grimlin sentenced the White woman (who was probably a descendant of
White Slaves) to be "burned alive according to the law." Nor should it be
concluded that because some trials were held for those masters who murdered their White
Slaves that this reflected a higher justice than that given to Black slaves.
In thousands of cases of homicide against poor Whites there were not rials whatsoever,
murdered White Slaves were hurriedly buried by their masters so that the resulting
decomposition would prohibit any enquiry into the cause of their deaths. Others just
"disappeared" or died from "accidents" or committed
"suicide." Many of the high number of so-called "suicides" of White
Slaves took place under suspicious circumstances, but in every single case the slavemaster
was found innocent of any crime. At the same time, White Slaves, White Servants and
poor White working men were forbidden to serve on a jury. Only Whites who owned property
could do so. Judges were recruited solely from the propertied class. When the few cases
regarding the torture and murder of white Slaves reached a court it was not difficult to
predict the outcome.
A White orphan boy was kidnapped in Virginia and enslaved under the guise of
"teaching him a trade." The boy was able to get the Rappahannock County Court to
take notice of his slaver:
"...an orphan complained on July 2, 1685 that he was held in a severe and hard
servitude illegally and that he was taken by one Major Hawkins 'under pretense of giving
him learning.' The case came before the court on August 2, but the justices decided that
he must continue in the service of his present master." ; "They possessed one
right, to complain to the planter-magistrates concerning excessively violent abuse. But
this right, which by custom was also available to black slaves in some societies, had
little or no mitigating effect on the overall nature of their treatment on the
estates."
Constables and local magistrates in Virginia to whom mistreated White slaves might appeal
were often the same men who enslaved and assaulted them. It should be recalled that the
killing and maiming of White Slaves was visited upon them by kinsmen of the same race and
religion as their slaves, making the callous disregard for their human rights doubly
heinous. White Slaves were whipped, broken on the wheel, shot, hung or even burned alive.
The whole apparatus of the institution of human slavery in English-speaking America, which
has been sparingly memorialized in the voluminous literature on negro slavery, was first
put into place in the enslavement of Whites who were kidnapped in their native land, died
on board ship, suffered child slavery and separation of parents from children forever;
endured fugitive slave-laws, the banning of White Slave meetings and severe and extreme
corporal punishment, sometimes unto death.
THE MOTIVATION FOR THE COVER-UP OF THE EXTENT OF WHITE SLAVERY BY ESTABLISHMENT- FUNDED
AND APPROVED HOUSE SCHOLARS IS OBVIOUS. TO ADMIT THE TRUE HISTORY OF WHITE SLAVERY AND
RECORD IT FAITHFULLY IN MODERN HISTORY IS TO FURNISH EMPIRICAL EVIDENCE THAT WHITE SKIN
DOES NOT NECESSARILY EMBODY POWER OF STATUS; that the "poor White,"
"redneck" of the 1990s who is asked to subsidize with his taxes and make
sacrifices in his living wage and job prospects so that Blacks may be "compensated
for slavery." IN REALITY OWES NOBODY FOR ANYTHING!
A 1679 colonial census of Whites who fled slavery to scratch out an existence as
subsistence and tenant farmers shows that they had to flee to the worst land where they
existed in extreme poverty, forming yeoman peasant communities in the hills. It is
instructive to note that this White yeomanry was mocked and scorned by both the wealthy
White planter elite as well as the negroes.
Rich, White plantation owners joined with the negroes in insulting White Slaves and poor
White people, referring to them as "poor-white earthscratching scum,"
"redshanks," "redlegs" [forerunner of the "redneck" racial
insult current nowadays], "Hill Billys" and "Scotland Johnnies."
"The servants were regarded by the planters as 'white trash.'" White
Slaves were taunted in the West Indies by Blacks who would chant the ditty, "Yella
hair, speckly face and dey feet brick red" at them. [The epithet
"redshanks" developed into the name redlegs which has since become a term for
all survivors and descendants of White Slaves in the Caribbean region.
Various merchants and aristocrats of the 18th and 19th centuries despised the independence
of these survivors of White Slavery when they encountered them in the British West Indies.
The chief hallmark of the redlegs has been their absolute refusal to interbreed with the
negroes and their independent subsistence lifestyle of fishing and gardening. Her is a
typical 19th century description of them by an aristocrat:
"...that lowest of all beings, the 'redshanks.' The latter were miserable and
degraded White Men who, priding themselves on their Caucasian origin, looked with contempt
upon the African race."
In 1654 Henry Whistler called the White slaves of Barbados "rubbish, rogues and
whores." In England they had been referred to by Edmund Burke as a
"swinish multitude," by Samuel Johnson as "rabble" and by Sir Josiah
Child as "loose, vagrant... vicious...people."
While the public articulation of such negative epithets against Black people as
"nigger" is regarded as a sacrilegious incitement to "hate crimes,"
hateful terms of abuse of White people such as "redneck" are gleefully used in
newspapers and television today to express the contempt with which the corporate elite
openly hold White working and poor people.
It is a travesty of historiography that out of deference to the vast political
house-of-cards that has been built upon the myth that only Blacks were merchandised in the
Atlantic lave trade, historians have failed to consistently describe White Chattel by the
scientifically accurate term for their condition, THAT OF SLAVE. By avoiding this
description, many academics have perpetuated the propaganda of the plutocracy which
inflicted these horrors upon White humanity. Powerful colonial land companies motivated by
gigantic profits were loath to admit truths subversive of the fictions which permitted the
smooth functioning of "business as usual." The label given the White laborer in
bondage was crucial to a correct understanding of his condition.
In the founding era of colonial America, both White and black slaves were referred to as
"servants." Once the term slavery came into universal usage (a word derived from
the enslavement of Slavic peoples), objective observers of the time who were without
mercenary ties to the traffic in White "servants" called them slaves:
"Contemporary observers described it as 'White Slavery' and referred to indentured
servants as 'White Slaves.'"
Some who in England lived fine and brave,
Was there like horses forc'd to trudge and slave.
Some view'd our Limbs turned us around,
Examining like Horses we were sound.
Some felt our hands others our legs and Feet,
And made us walk to see we were compleat,
Some view'd our Teeth to see if they was good,
And fit to Chaw our hard and homely food.
No shoes nor stocking had I for to wear
Nor hat, nor cap, my hands and feet went bare.
Thus dressed unto the fields I did go,
Among Tobacco plants all day to hoe.
Till twelve or one o'clock a grinding corn,
And must be up at day break in the morn.
For I was forc'd to work while I could stand,
Or hold the hoe within my feeble hands.
Forc'd from Friends and Country go go...
Void of all Relief...Sold for a Slave.
From the writing of White Slave John Lawson, 1754.
"Honored Father: '...O Dear Father...I am sure you'll pity your distressed daughter.
What we unfortunate English people suffer here is beyond the probability of you in England
to conceive. Let it suffice that I am one of the unhappy number toiling day and night, and
very often in the horse's druggery, with only the comfort of hearing me called, 'You,
bitch, you did not do half enough.' Then I am tied up and whipped to that degree that
you's not serve an animal. I have scarce anything but Indian corn and salt to eat and that
even begrudged. Nay, MANY NEGROES ARE BETTER USED...after slaving after Master's pleasure,
what rest we can get is to wrap ourselves up in a blanket and lay upon the ground. This is
the deplorable condition your poor Betty endures..."
Chapter Seven
NORTH AMERICA
WAS INHABITED BY ISRAELITES
1000 YEARS OR MORE BEFORE 1492
When embarking upon a study such as this, one will find that there are archeological
discoveries that have been made which show a strong correlation to the Bible. For when
people think of Israel in the Bible they assume that all the events which happened to
Israel did so in the little country known as Palestine; today it is called Israel. And
therefore the Israelites could not have been very important in the ancient world. However,
Daniel told us that knowledge would increase in the latter days:
"But thou, O Daniel, shut up the words, and seal the book, even to the time of the
end: many shall run to and fro, and knowledge shall be increased."
Also, Daniel tells us that many things will be kept secret until the latter days:
"And he said, Go thy way, Daniel: for the words are closed up and sealed till the
time of the end."
Many of these recent archeological discoveries combined with secular and Biblical history
give us a shockingly different perspective of the ancient world in general and ancient
Israel in particular. In this chapter we will attempt to show you evidence which will
prove ancient Israel was an empire. It had a homeland in Palestine, and a far-flung empire
much the same as Britain did until just a few decades ago. Britain once ruled over a
far-flung empire from a small homeland, located in the British Isles.
In the years from about 1050-850 B.C. Israel was the dominant power of the world with an
empire that rivaled and perhaps exceeded that of the Caesars. The empire included areas of
the world now inhabited by the Israelite people and that included portions of North
America. We full well understand this is a bold statement, but the evidence will follow.
In this study we will examine the real extent of Israel's power and empire in the ancient
world; the Israelite presence in North America with considerable specifics.
The time of Israel's greatness really began with King David and its rise to empire status.
This happened in about the year 1050 B.C. 2 Samuel 8 discusses David's defeat of the
Philistines, Moab, Amalek, Edom, and the Syrians for example lost more than 80,000 men in
just three battles . That is more men than the United States lost in the 14 years of the
Vietnam War. To give you a perspective of the ferocity of the battles.
1 Chronicles 21 shows that David could mobilize over 1½
million men. With an army of that size you are not insignificant, not even in this age,
this day and time. In 1 Chronicles 18:3 it states the border of his dominion went to the
Euphrates River which bordered the area of Assyria and Babylon; or Mesopotamia who viewed
David as an upstart rival.
The Phoenicians were the city states of Tyre and Sidon, and had a far flung empire on land
and sea. They were the best sailors in the ancient world at that time, and they saw the
rise of David and Israel and made an alliance with them. They were a common race of
Semitic people; they also had a common language. There were only dialectic differences
between Hebrew and the Phoenician tongue. 1 Kings 17:9-16 relates where Elijah met with a
Phoenician or Zidonan widow, and they had immediate discourse, with no difficulty at all
in communication.
King Hiram the king of Tyre made David a palace and they became very close allies as 1
King 5:1 shows. The Israelite Phoenician alliance was an ancient super power, with all
twelve tribes of Israel united they sat astride the area where three continents met; they
had the world's greatest navy in the Phoenicians combined with David's one and one-half
million man army. And David was not the least bit reluctant to use it. They were
challenged by Assyria and Mesopotamia, which is almost totally unknown by most and yet it
is related in the Bible. There was a revolt in Amon which is a pretext for war between
many nations and the Israelites.
It is discussed in 1 Chronicles 19 and 20 in some detail. There were 32 thousands chariots
from Mesopotamia alone that came to fight David's army in this battle. There was
also an unknown number of men from Mesopotamia and Syria which included a number of
different people which fought with Ammon against Israel. In verse 9 we can see it was a
national effort with a number of different nations to destroy Israel as it states their
kings came to watch the battle.
"And the children of Ammon came out, and put the battle in array before the gate of
the city: and the kings that were come were by themselves in the field."
So, we can clearly see, this was not just a mercenary effort, this was a matter of
national commitment against Israel. Israel won the first round and also the second which
left them with no one in the area to challenge them. If you will look at Psalm 83, which
was likely written by David at this time where he lists many nations that come to help the
children of Lot, which also included Ammon to destroy Israel from off the face of the
earth.
"Keep not thou silence, O God: hold not thy peace, and be not still, O God. For, lo,
thine enemies make a tumult: and they that hate thee have lifted up the head. They have
taken crafty counsel against thy people, and consulted against thy hidden ones. They have
said, Come, and let us cut them off from being a nation; that the name of Israel may be no
more in remembrance. For they have consulted together with one consent: they are
confederate against thee: The tabernacles of Edom, and the Ishmaelites; of Moab, and the
Hagarenes; Gebal, and Ammon, and Amalek; the Philistines with the inhabitants of Tyre;
Assur also is joined with them: they have holpen the children of Lot. Selah. Do unto them
as unto the Midianites; as to Sisera, as to Jabin, at the brook of Kison: Which perished
at Endor: they became as dung for the earth. Make their nobles like Oreb, and like Zeeb:
yea, all their princes as Zebah, and as Zalmunna: Who said, Let us take to ourselves the
houses of God in possession. O my God, make them like a wheel; as the stubble before the
wind. As the fire burneth a wood, and as the flame setteth the mountains on fire; So
persecute them with thy tempest, and make them afraid with thy storm. Fill their faces
with shame; that they may seek thy name, O Lord. Let them be confounded and troubled for
ever; yea, let them be put to shame, and perish: That men may know that thou, whose name
alone is JEHOVAH, art the most high over all the earth."
Secular history has recorded that Assyria's Empire went into eclipse or confusion, some
encyclopedias call it, between 1100-900 B.C. Halley's Bible Handbook comments on it also,
and states that ancient Israel was much stronger than Assyria, Babylon or Egypt. This is
the same period as Israel's golden age under David and Solomon. And is glossed over in
almost all historical texts, if they even cover it at all.
What happened to Assyria? It was defeated badly in a war against Israel's army, as we
learn from 1 Chronicles and Psalm 83. The texts of ancient history will not tell you this
nor will it give great credibility as the Bible is the Word of God. Assyria and other
nations had provoked Ammon to start this war, and this will give you a little indication
of how large an area that David ruled. In Psalm 83 he named the nations that became a part
of this war, which included Assyria and in all likelihood became a vassal state to David.
It included the Ishmaelites, which included the Arabian Peninsula and people we don't know
where they lived in the east, so we really don't know how large an are David actually
ruled. But he did rule from Egypt to somewhere about the middle of the modern nation of
Iran. Ether directly or through vassal states as a result of that war. But Israel was the
dominant super power of the ancient world at this time.
Is there evidence of an Israelite Empire? The answer is Yes! But the secular historians
will rarely call it an Israelite Empire, they will call it a Phoenician Empire. Most
people who do not realize the difference between Judah and Israel balk at this major role
for Israel because they think the Jews were the Israelites and the Jews have always been
few in number, but they don't realize that the men from Judah were only a small part of
David's army at this time. It is true that David was of the tribe of Judah but he, also,
had eleven other tribes to provide manpower.
The Phoenician Empire is credited by historians as being dominant in the Mediterranean
Sea; as being present in substantial numbers in the British Isles, the West Coast of
Europe and Africa in the period of about 1100-800 B.C. and they are not at all bashful in
calling it a Phoenician Empire. This coincides with the exact time that Assyria was put
down and the Bible tells us that David had defeated the Assyrians.
It coincides with Israel's greatness and the allegiance of the Phoenician city Israelites;
show Phoenicia took pains to join with them because they did not wish to be their enemy. 1
Chronicles 22 relates that David accumulated for the Temple of God iron and brass beyond
calculation. Warrner Keller in his book "The Bible is History" states:
"Israel was using the Bessemer system of smelting, which was nor re-discovered until
recently in the modern era...Essian Gebar was the Pittsburgh of ancient Palestine."
That nowhere else in the fertile crescent which includes Mesopotamia could such a large
smelting facility be found. We see by this that Israel was not just an agriculture only
nation but they were also the industrial power house of the ancient world. Dr. Berry Fells
book "Bronze Age America" cites evidence that 1/2 billions of copper ore was
taken from mines near Lake Superior in North America, in roughly 2000-1000 B.C. The dates
include the time of David's reign, at the tail end of it, as the ore apparently ran out
for they have no evidence that it was mined after that.
It could be that the Israelites simply worked the mines to death, or to where they could
not be mined economically at that point. Which Fell states that this New World copper mine
output there is no evidence what became of it. There is no evidence it was used in this
hemisphere at all. And they have no idea where the copper came from which was smelted in
Palestine during this time. Putting this evidence together and one comes up with the
assumption that this copper was shipped from North America to Palestine by boat and was
used by Israel in its huge smelting facilities in Palestine. The Phoenician/Israelite
presence in America has abundantly shown to be real. At this point, we must, in all
fairness, present just one of the many stories which abound which make reference to our
Israel ancestors coming to America thousands of years BEFORE Columbus. The following is
taken from an article in National Geographic, Vol. 152, No. 6, December 1977, pp. 769.
"The New Word: Who, from the Old first touched its shore? Historians held for
centuries that it was Christopher Columbus. By current consensus, it was Norse voyagers of
a thousand years ago. But perhaps it was a group of shadowy, yet very real, Irish
seafaring monks who predated even the Vikings by more than four centuries. In the great
pantheon of New World explorers no name is more intriguing, or more clouded in
controversy, than that of Ireland's St. Brendan. His legend, today more tantalizing than
ever, has persisted through the centuries in the form of a Christians imram, an Irish
saga: Navigatio Sancti Brendani Abbatis, Voyage of Saint Brendan the Abbot. With 17 fellow
monks, it relates, Brendan sailed to Terra Repromissionis Sanctorum, THE LAND PROMISED TO
THE SAINTS, SOMEWHERE BEYOND THE FAR REACHES OF THE WESTERN ATLANTIC. Was the Promised
Land North America? Did St. Brendan actually reach it in the sixth century? Neither
history nor archeology offers proof."
This statement is totally untrue, and I believe the publishers of National Geographic knew
it at the time of the publication. Most of us have read (from reputable history books) of
the adventures of Lief Eriksson and his party in the founding of Vinland circa A.D.
800-1400 in the area of the St. Lawrence River in the North-eastern United States and
Canada. Although they predated the Columbus voyage by many centuries, were the expeditions
of Lief Eriksson the first discovery of what is now known as the United States? There were
Christians living in America over 100 years before Columbus arrived in the Caribbean. The
official historians of this country have known this for many, many years. Yet, none of
this is discussed as a national heritage. Why is this?
Those of us who are interested in finding petroglyphs, or ancient symbols and pictures
engraved on stones, have wondered about the meaning of them. All we could do was wonder
and speculate until the science of deciphering ancient and unknown languages was
developed. The science is called Epigraphics and it has been developed into a rather
sophisticated science. Symbols, for example, mean something, but what?
Epigraphics. Until a few years ago geologists told us that the
numerous short and repetitive lines inscribed on rocks found in the Northeastern United
States and Canada were simply scratches made from the movement of ice and rocks during the
recent ice-age. Because of Epigraphics, we
now know that it was a language and it has been deciphered.
The Celts. This language is that of the Celts from Ireland,
Scotland, England, France and the Rhineland country of Germany. The language dates from
long before Christ and was in use in Ireland and England at the time of Celtic Druids. It
is called Ogam script and has been found all over
America, from the West Indies to Newfoundland and west into Oregon and British Columbia.
We know that Julius Caesar described the vessels that the Celts had built and used. In
Book III of his De Bello Gallico he described these vessels against which his small, puny
(by comparison), ships of the Roman fleet fought. He described them as being capable of
sailing "upon the vast open sea." This is exactly what they did. It appears that
there were many different expeditions and migrations by the Celts during the period of
many centuries before Christ until circa 400-800 A.D. They came, not only just once to
colonize, but they came and returned to Europe on a repetitive basis.
The Vikings. The Vikings were here in America when King
Woden-lithi sailed the Atlantic seventeen centuries before Christ and entered the St.
Lawrence River. He established a trading post at a site near where Toronto now stands. It
became a religious and commercial center that is
now known as Petroglyph Park at Peterborough, Canada. King Woden-lithi's home was in
Norway.
He remained in Canada for five months, from April to September and traded his woven
fabrics for copper ingots obtained from the European settlers. He called these people Wal,
which is a word cognate with Wales and Welsh. He gave these Celts his religious beliefs,
the ability to measure woven cloth and an astronomical observatory for measuring the
Nordic calendar and for determining the dates of the pagan Yale and Ishtar festivals.
Remember, this was seventeen centuries (1700-years) before Christ!
Ogam Script. The Celts were already here when King Woden-lithi
arrived. What was their written language like? We have already shown that they
wrote with the Ogam script which can be described simply as an alphabet, comprising
fifteen consonants and five vowels, together with a few
other signs representing double letters such as diphthongs. The letters are made by
inscribing single parallel strokes placed in sets of one to
five, in position above, across, or below a guide line.
The Languages. But what words were made from this Ogam alphabet?
Here again the science of Epigraphics gives us the answer. We know that there
is no language of any of the American Indians that is made up of the Greek language.
And yet the ancient Celts in the area of the St. Lawrence River spoke a language that was
directly derived from the Greek! As we shall see, the different Celts in America spoke yet
other languages! The type of Greek that was spoken by the Celts of the area is known as
Ptolemaic which means that it is a dialect of Greek that was spoken in Egypt, Palestine
and the other countries in the area that Alexander conquered. Alexander forced upon the
area his idea of one-world government, one-world people, one-world religion and one-world
language. It was this Ptolemaic dialect that Alexander forced upon the citizens of the
area. The dialect was composed of Greek, Egyptian and Aramaic. This is why Jesus spoke
Aramaic and Greek, instead of Hebrew. We will study the effect that Alexander had on
Israel and Christianity in a future lesson.
The obvious question from the previous paragraph is, who were the Celts? Did the Celts
from Iberia (THE SPANISH PENINSULA) and the Rhineland go to Egypt and Palestine and learn
the Greek spoken language at the time of Alexander or did the Israelites (NOT JEWS) learn
the Greek and Aramaic when they were in Palestine and then go to the new world to escape
the dictatorship of Alexander? Remember, Israel lost the knowledge of ancient Hebrew (not
modern Yiddish) before and during the time of Alexander.
The language of the Celts who were already here in the St. Lawrence River Valley when King
Woden-lithe arrived has since been lost. Why has the language disappeared? This is
probably at least partly because through the subsequent years they intermixed with other
peoples and in the process the language was lost. It doesn't take much to lose a language.
Notice the difference between American English and the English language spoken in England.
But that doesn't account for the fact that a grace of people totally vanished from the
continent. Some of the Ogam Script is with the Gaelic influence.
The Gaelic language came from the highlands of Scotland. In the New England area,
artifacts such as grave headstones have been found, all with Ogam script in Gaelic script.
The Celts with the Gaelic dialect came from the highlands of Scotland. According to
the Scottish Declaration of Independence written by Robert Bruce and his noblemen, the
Scotland people came from ancient Israel through the Rhineland area of France and Germany
and then through Iberia or Spain.
The Mariners from Tarshish. Tarshish was thy merchant by reason
of the multitude of all kind of riches; with silver, iron, tin, and lead, they traded in
thy fairs . The Celts were well established in foreign trade.
In 1780, Ezra Stiles, who later became the president of Yale College, found and recorded a
Tartessian inscription on a rock along the seashore near Mount Hope Bay, Rhode Island. The
deeply cut inscription clearly shows the outline of a typical high-sterned ship from
Tarshish. Under the outline of the ship are the words in Tartessian (Tarshish) Punic,
"Mariners of Tarshish this rock proclaims."
Near Union, New Hampshire, another Tartessian inscription was found with a similar
Tarshish ship hull and the words, "VOYAGERS FROM TARSHISH THIS STONE PROCLAIMS."
On Mohegan Island, off the coast of Maine, is, in Ogam script in Gaelic dialect, an
inscription showing that the Celts traded with the traders from Tarshish. It is obvious
that the mariners from Tarshish were not residents of the area as were the Celts. They
were trading with the Celts for their furs and raw materials from the mining done by the
Celts. Thus, there was a lively trade being conducted between the Japhetic sons of
Tarshish and the Celtic sons of Shem. Some of the trading was done with goods in
exchange for the furs and metals of the Celts. But there was also an exchange for coins.
It seems that modern historians won't believe the facts of history such as the Ogam
inscriptions. They only like to see the money! Well, there is that, too!
Coins. From about the fourth century B.C. the ancient mariner
traders brought coins in addition to goods. In the year 1787, Pastor Thaddeus Madson
Harris came upon a group of men working on a road known as the Cambridge-Malden road (now
Route 16) in Massachusetts.
The workers had uncovered a flat stone underneath the surface. Under the stone was a cache
of ancient coins, nearly two quarts of them. The coins were square pieces made of a
copper-silver alloy. Each coin was stamped on both sides with an unknown script. Pastor
Harris recorded the incident in a letter to John Quincy Adams. The inscriptions were taken
to the Harvard Library for translation but with no success. The letter was then buried in
the archives for nearly two hundred years until James Whittall, of the Early Sites
Research Society, re-discovered the letter with the inscriptions and researched them with
the American Numismatic Society and with Epigraphic scientists. The inscriptions proved to
be that of Kufic origin which is a form of Arabic. Undoubtedly, one of the trading
mariners brought the coins to America to purchase the Celtic goods which were for sale.
After the newly designed steel plow was invented by Charles Newbold in 1797, the earth
could be turned over to a much greater depth. The furrow that the plow made opened up the
soil and there, by the thousands, were found Roman coins! In days of early America, the
extensive study of Latin and Roman history was required for a college degree. Thus, the
people of America readily knew that Europeans came to America and lived in America much
earlier than Christopher Columbus. But later, from American history books, our school
children were taught the Columbus mystique and they were taught that the world was
considered flat by all educated people until Columbus discovered America! All of those
Roman coins that were discovered were ignored and it has remained that way until very
recently. As we continue our studies, we will realize why the truth was buried.
In 1961, Frederick J. Pohl raised the nagging question of the Roman coins in his book
Atlantic Crossings Before Columbus. He describes notable finds of Roman coins in the
United States. Other scientists have carried on the task of proving the European travels
to this continent long before Columbus. One of the notable men in this field is Professor
Cyclone covey of Wake Forest University. Much will be discussed about his investigations
later in this lesson. Roman coins are not the only money found in America. Carthaginian,
Celto-Iberian, Greek, Libyan and Norse coins have been found in locations all over the
United States.
Near Castle Gardens, Wyoming a petroglyph was found, written in Celto-Gaelic, describing
the location of what would be the description of a bank. Yes, the petroglyph says that
this was the first money-changing location to reach the area and that the bank operated
with no usury! Undoubtedly, this was a location for exchanging the value of one coin for
another for the purpose of trading and traveling. The petroglyph written in Celto-Gaelic
undoubtedly means that the Celts were located in Wyoming and the fact that they operated
in Wyoming and the fact that they operated with no usury is significant. We will shortly
discuss the type of law the Celts exercised.
From 400 B.C. to 1100 A.D., the Western world realized six maritime powers. They all came
out of the Mediterranean area except for the last one. They are, in order of their
appearance, (1) the Carthaginians of Tunisia; (2) the Greeks and Libyans of North Africa;
(3) the Romans; (4) the Byzantine Greeks who succeeded Rome; (5) the Islamic powers of
North Africa and Asia; and (6) the Norse sea-rovers.
Although the Celts were never realized as a maritime power, since they were a people
scattered over many countries, their ocean-going ships were among the best. These ships
were huge in comparison to the Roman ships. They were two thousand tons in capacity as
compared to about four hundred tons of the average Roman ship.
The ships that the uncle of Jesus, Joseph of Aramathea, used to haul lead and tin from the
Glastonbury area of England for sale to the Romans were Celtic in design and operation.
Again, Julius Caesar spoke very highly of the sea-going prowess of the Celts and their
ships. Throughout this period, each of these maritime powers sent ships all over the high
seas and to America.
But it was the Libyans who transcended all of the others in the span of their voyage. A
Libyan, named Eratosthenes of Cyrene, accurately calculated the earth's circumference. He
reasoned that the earth's oceans had to be continuous and consequently a ship could sail
around the world in either direction and return to the starting point. The date was
approximately 239 B.C.!
Eratosthenes developed the system of the meridian circles of the map of the globe. The
meridian circles are simply the points on the globe where the USN is directly overhead at
noon at the local time. He set these meridian circles in a grid in such a way that a
mariner could accurately locate his position. He drew the primary meridian circle to pass
through Alexandria.
The Libyans then set sail in their ocean-going vessels to prove that Eratosthenes was
right. Their ships were equipped with magnetic compasses. Their compass consisted of a
ceramic bowl with the compass points engraved around the edge. A lodestone (a strongly
magnetic variety of the mineral magnetie) was floated on the water in the bowl.
Sometimes, a magnetized iron strip was suspended in the bowl. They also had a device for
navigation that was the forerunner of the modern sextant. The Libyans traveled eastward,
through the Suez Canal that King Darius had built, then sailed down the Red Sea, and then
around the tip of India, through the Indonesian straits and then into the Pacific Ocean.
They arrived on the West Coast of America, disembarked and traveled inland to Nevada.
These ancient Libyans settled in the arid Nevada country because it was very similar to
their own home country. In various locations in Nevada are petroglyphs, written in
Aramaic-Libyan and Celto-Gaelic which reflect their mariner skills.
There is a map of North America, showing the outline of both coasts from the Hudson Bay
country of Canada to Panama in the South. It was obviously taken from one of their
meridian circle navigation charts that Eratosthenes developed. In addition, examples of
their mathematics is displayed along with oceanography. Their alphabet was written in
stone for us to see. Astronomy as a science is displayed. Remember, before the fall of the
Roman Empire, the Center of Western Civilization rested along the shores of the
Mediterranean Sea.
The modern day epigraphic scientists are puzzled as to what happened to all of these
people, from the Celts, to the Carthaginians, to the Libyans and all the other original
settlers who have come to this land. Certainly educated people in the sciences and
mathematics lived here many years ago, that is now obvious. But when the American
colonists arrived, the natives had no written language nor any knowledge of higher
education.
For example, the Paiute and Shoshone tribesmen of Nevada were asked where all of the
petroglyphs we now know to have been scribed by the Libyans came from, they could tell the
archaeologists and epigraphists nothing except that neither they nor their forebears had
cut them. However, some of the methods and style of living that were taught by these
ancient settlers have come down through the centuries by the indigenous peoples who were
here and then remained after the mysterious disappearance.
For example, in the modern, Libyan North African region there are two Distinct ecological
groups.
1). The first is the modern Berber who is of lighter skin with obvious and
European features with many having blond hair and blue eyes.
He prefers to live in the mountainous regions where there is more water and better soil.
He is an agriculturist and he builds his home pueblo style out of sun-dried mud which he
calls in Arabic attobi which in America is called adobe. Their buildings are multi-level
with the floors and ceilings strengthened with wooden beams which project beyond the outer
walls. His dress code calls for the women not to wear the face veil but to tattoo their
chins. The men have the custom to cover their heads and faces with a scarf-like cloth,
showing only their eyes to strangers. Even today, these modern Berbers still speak the
Berber language which came to them from their Celto-Iberian background.
2). The second ecological group is the Arabs. They are nomadic, moving their
herds from place to place in the lowlands. They live in tents. The women cover their heads
with veils and are not tattooed. The men do not veil the face. Their language is Arabic.
In the Peabody Museum of Harvard University are ancient bowls made by these Libyan
mariners who built their temporary colonies in the Southwestern United States. The bowls
very clearly show a man and woman painted on the sides of each. The women have no veil but
have their chins tattooed. The men have the Berber type of scarf covering their faces with
only the eyes showing! Beyond a doubt, these people were a part of the Libyan expeditions
into the Western United States. They, too, suddenly disappeared in the 10th to 12th
century A.D., after having been here from about 500 B.C. All of these people abandoned
their towns and simply vanished.
The ancient Berbers were of Celto-Iberian origin. They spoke a Gaelic Celto-Iberian
language. When we again return to the Scottish Declaration of Independence and read that
they travelled through Iberia (THE SPANISH PENINSULA) on their way to Scotland and
Ireland, it would account for the Celto-Iberian-Gaelic dialect. It is in this language
that the great majority of the petroglyphs are written. It is obvious that the Libyan
Berbers associated with the Celts of the Eastern and Northern United States during the
apex of their civilization here. It is apparent that they had a flourishing trade with
their home countries of Europe. Not only did they travel to and from Europe on occasion in
their own ships, they conducted commerce with the traders from Tarshish and Cartage.
Just as the Celts in the Glastonbury and Avalon areas of England mined for tin and lead
and shipped the finished metal to Rome in Joseph of Aremathea's ships, the same Celts
conducted mining operations in America and either sold or traded their metal with Europe.
But it all vanished around the end of the first millennium A.D.
Christianity and the American Celts. When the first Celts arrived
in America, they were as pagan as their brothers in Europe. Many of the earlier
inscriptions in America depicted Baal worship and classical Phallic worship.
Then, all of sudden, there came the appearance of Christian inscriptions. In fact,
whenever it was possible, the later Christian inscriptions were inscribed over the top of
the earlier pagan writing. This was obvious to the epigraphic scientists because the later
inscriptions were cut deeper and partially obliterated the earlier work. In Cripple Creek,
Colorado there is a memorial in Greek that states,
"Herein is the last resting place of Palladis (a priest), the servant of God."
At Oak Island, Nova Scotia is found an inscription in Libyan dialect of the North African
Coptic Church, which states,
"To escape contagion of plague and winter hardships, he is to pray for an end or
mitigation, the arif: The people will perish in misery if they forget the Lord, alas.
."
Wherever Christianity has gone, the Laws of God have been adapted into the legal system of
the community. The Christian Celts of Iberia, Ireland, Scotland as well as the Christian
Celts of America had a legal system that reflected the teachings of the Christian Bible.
The system was called the Tanistry which means the administration of law by deputies of
the king. The system as it is preserved from ancient times is rather lengthy so here are
just a few examples to show the influence of the Christian Bible:
1). "In the obscurity of the mists of olden time a desire would arise to
replace armed combat by arbitration.
2). And it would seem a desirable thing that land boundaries should be fixed
without recourse to moats.
3). Henceforth cases involving wrongdoing are to be made over to the wisest
men.
4). Any case is to be brought to judgment without delay.
5). Henceforth in any case involving false utterances let amends be paid in
compensation for the harm.
6). Henceforth if a complainant be merciful, let the judges also be merciful.
7). If a malicious man utter lying words that another declares to be
slanderous, to the measure of his tongue-loose recklessness shall he transport heavy
burdens for the other man .
8). The common people may eat corn, together with game bird but they may not
hunt bears. They may kill stags, goats and red deer."
There is much more to the Tanistry but this gives you information that the early Celts
became Christian and this was imparted to those Celts living in the United States long
before Columbus "discovered" America.
The Norsemen. The Columbus mystique has been so impressed on the
American people that we are blinded to facts. Such again is the case of the
colonists from Norway. When Thormod Torfason wrote his authenticated works titled Historia
Vinlandae Antiquae in 1705, very few
historians and other scholars knew anything of the many trips to America by the Norse
mariners and colonists. For over two more centuries,
nearly everyone continued to disbelieve Torfason's studies.
The American's minds were made up, don't confuse us with facts! We will understand why we
have been misled by the conclusion of the next lesson in history. On May 24, 1934, a
mining prospector named James Edward Dodd was blasting in the Great Lakes region of Canada
and his dynamite uncovered a sword and a shield. These artifacts were taken to the royal
Ontario Museum and they were accurately dated to the first quarter of the eleventh
century, about 1025 A.D. It was at this time that Leif Eriksson began his first ventures
to the land that he called Vinland. The name itself was given to the St. Lawrence River
area because of the abundance of wild grapes that the Norsemen found to make a very good
grade of wine. Because of the find of the sword and shield, along with much other
evidence, we Americans began to believe that the Norsemen did, indeed, predate Columbus'
discovery.
In the 1930's, we began to learn about the tremendous amount of European travel and
commerce predating Eriksson by many centuries. Then in 1940, we were reconvinced that
Eriksson didn't exist and that there was absolutely nobody who proceeded Columbus. Admiral
Samuel Eliot Morison was an author who appeared to be "puffed" by the
establishment. His style of writing was light and airy and he was very capable of mixing
legends in with archaeological and historical facts in such a way that it became easy to
question the technical analysis.
In 1940, from his Harvard position, he was adamant in his position that Columbus was the
first and in 1942 he wrote Admiral of the Ocean Sea: A Life of Christopher Columbus to
prove his point. By 1961 the Royal Ontario Museum was obliged to re-evaluate their
analysis of the sword and shield by stating that it "was not possible to authenticate
the story of the alleged discovery."
In Admiral Morison's book The European Discovery of America, he refutes the Vinland story
by stating that nearly all of the seacoast towns from Newfoundland to the Virginia Capes
boast in their histories that Lief Eriksson was there. But he says that there have been no
artifacts to prove his presence. He states that the Newport stone tower which is cherished
as the first Christian Church in America is a fake and that it was built around 1675 by a
colonial governor of Rhode Island. Yet, in 1946 an authenticated inscription was found on
one of the rocks of the tower. The inscription is in Nordic Runes and simply declares the
lower to be the "cathedral church" and the "Bishop's Seat."
The Newport Tower is a part of the church that the Norsemen built in the early 1300's. To
further authenticate this, the Italian explorer Giovanni de Verrazano in 1524 sailed up
the East coast of the United States from Florida to labrador. He rediscovered Long Island
Sound and the Hudson River. He drew a map, which is officially shown in the Archives, of
the Narragansett coast and in his writings he described the stone' built "Norman
Villa." He went ashore and found friendly Indians who knew nothing of the building of
the villa. Verrazano recognized it to be Norse because of the style of architecture and
other evidence. An English document (of the period of the Pilgrims) proposed a settlement
in Rhode Island. The document gave the location of the Norman Tower as the place where the
settlement should be made.
In Rhode Island today, the local name for the tower is often given as "Governor
Arnold's Mill," because the first governor made use of the tower as a flour mill.
Here is an example of how a historian can take partial facts, along with legend, and make
it fit the "politically correct thing to say." There is evidence now being
discovered that shows the Norsemen to have sailed South, along the Eastern seashore, into
the Gulf of Mexico and then up the Mississippi River.
Not only have Viking Battle Axes been found but more inscriptions to prove their presence.
The Heavener runestone inscription in the Oklahoma State Park on Poteau Mountain has been
definitely judged to be Nordic script of the Viking Age of not later than 1350 A.D. Viking
inscriptions have also been found in Colorado. No longer can we deny the presence of the
Norsemen in America several hundred years before Columbus.
We have left for last what is perhaps the most striking evidence of pre-Columbus Europeans
in America. In the Southwestern part of the United States the climate is generally arid or
semi-arid and the soil is more alkaline. As a result of these conditions artifacts,
including human remains, are left intact for a very long time.
There is mounting evidence that Europeans, in significant numbers, colonized a portion of
the Southwestern United States during the period from approximately 700 A.D. until about
1300 A.D. It is very significant that all of the colonies in North America, including this
one under discussion, appeared to simply vanish within an approximate 100 year time frame.
We may never know the exact reasons and there could have been several. We know that the
Europeans transmitted diseases that were specific to Europe to the indigenous natives who
were vulnerable to them.
Conversely, the natives gave the Europeans specific diseases to which they were
vulnerable, such as some of the social diseases. Or, there could have very easily been a
universal uprising and this is even probable. Whatever the reasons were, we must believe
that the ventures did not please God. There had to be things that were done that were
seriously breaking some of His Laws.
About 700 A.D. there appeared in the area of West Texas, New Mexico, Colorado, Arizona and
Nevada, a literal empire apparently made up of a city-state system. The empire was
Christian and they had succeeding kings. The people came from the British Isles, Gaul
(France), Germany, Rome and apparently North Africa. Undoubtedly, the North Africans were
the Berbers who had already arrived from Libya and had previously taught the natives to
build the pueblo style structures and to irrigate for farming. Some of the ancient ruins
that were very skillfully built of stone masonry that are dotted over the Southwest are
probably associated with the empire. Some of these ancient ruins have been rebuilt with
later construction over the top of the original.
The modern Amerindian knows nothing about the builders of these ancient cities. However,
they have given a name to these earlier inhabitants. They call them the Hohokam, which
means "Those who have gone" or "The old ones." After the Spaniards
occupied Mexico in the early 1500's, they headed north to investigate the persistent
stories of the fabulously wealthy "Seven Cities of Cibola." Of course they never
found them because the empire had simply vanished a couple of hundred years earlier. Even
in 1300 A.D. the empire had already waned in its importance as a kingdom so there wasn't
much left.
In New Mexico, south of Albuquerque and west of Los Lunas about 14 miles, is a huge Basalt
(volcanic) boulder. The rock is nestled in a small draw on the side of a group of hills
which overlooks the stream called Rio Puerco. The front side, protruding from the soil, is
very flat and provides a perfect place for an inscription. On this boulder, inscribed in
old Hebrew with a Greek influence, is the Decalog or The Ten Commandments!
As early as 1850, when New Mexico became a territory, people knew of the inscription but
it was not until a century later when Professor Robert Pfeiffer of Harvard University, an
authority on the Old Testament, determined it to be The Ten Commandments. The inscription
was then re-authenticated as being The Ten Commandments by Dr. Barry Fell, the country's
foremost epigraphic scientist.
The most revealing discoveries of this ancient kingdom came from the Tucson, Arizona area.
Along the Santa Cruz River, in the vicinity of Tucson, beneath six or more feet of
undisturbed cliché soil, were found many artifacts that unquestionably prove that
European people lived in the area. Cliché soil is made up of crusted calcium carbonate
mixed with ordinary dirt. Through many years, water mixes with the combination and turns
it into a very hard, concrete like, soil. After it is once formed, if it is then removed,
the soil never returns to the original configuration. Thus, when the artifacts were found,
it is certain that they are of ancient origin and not a recent fraud.
The artifacts included lead swords, spears, a patriarchal monstrance or shrine used in the
religious ceremonies, and eight heavy crosses. All of the artifacts were made of molded
lead which was mined in the area. This is known because some of the molds were also found.
Each of the crosses was actually two thin lead crosses which were riveted together with
lead rivets. When the two halves were separated, it was found that the inner sides were
protected with wax in order to preserve the inscriptions which were on the inside parts.
It became obvious that the crosses were made for the purpose of a permanent recording of
events that were taking place at the time. The swords were not to be used for combat. They
were made of lead and also contained inscriptions. They were for ceremonies of some sort.
The inscriptions contained words in Hebrew, Latin and Greek. Following are some of the
translations: On one of the crosses, at the top are the words "In Memoriam." On
the cross arm at the left is a profile of a head with the words "Britain, Albion,
Jacob." In the center is another head profile with the words "Romans, Actim,
Theodore." On the right is another head profile with the words "Gaul, Seine,
Israel." On the vertical beam of the lead cross is this inscription. "Counsels
of great cities together with seven hundred soldiers A.D. 800, Jan. 1."
"We are borne over the sea to Calalus, an unknown land where Toltezus Silvanus ruled
far and wide over a people. Theodore transferred his troops to the foot of the city Rhoda
and more than seven hundred were captured. No gold is taken away. Theodore, a man of great
courage, rules for fourteen years. Jacob rules for six. With the help of God, nothing has
to be feared. In the name of Israel, OL."
The inscriptions on these artifacts is a sort of history of one of the city-states of the
European migration to this country. The first inscription reveals that Theodore was the
ruling king over the city-state of Rhoda. The Toltecs (which history shows existed in
Mexico in this time frame) were under Chief Toltezus Silvanus who ruled over a very large
area and people. Theodore was a Roman and he moved his troops to the foot or outskirts of
the city Rhoda for defense against the Toltecs. Apparently the troops could not hold
against the Toltecs and 700 troops were captured but the Toltecs did not take any gold.
Theodore must have been killed in that battle. The second cross has the following
inscription which, of course, has been translated from the Latin and Greek.
"Jacob renews the city. With God's help Jacob rules with mighty hand in the manner of
his ancestors. Sing to the Lord. May his fame live forever. OL."
Jacob a native of Britain and he succeeded Theodore for six years while counterattacking
the enemy. He personally fought at the font lines and it appears that he died in battle.
The third cross yielded this inscription.
"From the egg (the beginning) A.D. 700 to A.D. 900. Nothing but the cross. While the
war was raging, Israel died. Pray for the soul of Israel. May the earth lie light on thee.
He adds glory to ancestral glory. Israel, defender of the faith. Israel reigns sixty-seven
years."
Israel I was born on the Seine River in France and must have been just a boy when he
assumed the throne in 785. These dates are known because of other inscriptions but there
are too many of them to include here. The year 790 under Israel I's reign was important
because of his decisive victory over the Toltecs. He subjugated them to be under his rule.
On January 1, 800 he presided over a council of allied city-states. Because of the present
peace, he turned his attention tot he priesthood.
The next inscription.
"Israel II rules for six. Israel III was twenty-six years old when he began to rule.
Internecine war. To conquer or die. He flourishes in ancestral honor day by day."
The next inscription.
"A.D. 880. Israel III, for liberating the Toltezus, was banished. He was first to
break the custom. The earth shook. Fear overwhelmed the hearts of men in the third year
after he had fled. They betook themselves into the city and kept themselves within their
walls. A dead man thou shall neither bury nor burn in the city. Before the city a plain
was extending. Hills rung the city. It is a hundred years since Jacob was king. Jacob
stationed himself in the front line. He anticipated everything. He fought much himself.
Often smote the enemy. Israel turned his attention to the appointment of priests. We have
life, a people widely ruling. OL."
The next inscription.
"A.D. 895. An unknown land. Would that I might accomplish my task to serve the king.
It is uncertain how long life will continue. There are many things which can be said while
the war rages. Three thousand were killed. The leader with his principal men are captured.
Nothing but peace was sought. God ordains all things. OL."
The author of the book Calalus is a history professor at Wake Forest University. He
mistakenly describes the people of Rhoda as Roman Jews. This is undoubtedly because of the
names of the individuals. But again, Dr. Berry Fell, the nation's foremost expert
epigraphist SHOWS THEM TO BE CHRISTIANS FROM ENGLAND, FRANCE, ROME AND NORTH AFRICA. The
crosses would have been unacceptable if they were Jews. The use of the chronological term
A.D., which was started by Dionesius in 532 A.D., would certainly have been unacceptable
to the Jews. To this day they term the present chronological time the "Christian
Era" instead of A.D. The Toltecs went on to totally destroy these people. Why didn't
these European Christians survive? Why did all of the other Europeans mysteriously vanish
with the last of them having been gone since the 1300's?
It was for several reasons, all of which are distasteful to God for His Celto-Saxon
people. The Apostle Paul summed it all up when he said:
"Wherefore come out from among them, and be ye separate, saith the Lord, and touch
not the unclean thing; and I will receive you."
For one thing, they had to interbreed themselves out of existence, at least in part. They
also apparently came for the riches of gold and silver. In nearly all cases, there appears
to be mining as a principle purpose for being here. They also apparently tried to subdue
the native population. In other words, use them as slave or cheap labor. If we will look
back into history, all of the great civilizations of the Celto-Saxons fell when they
brought in cheap labor or slaves and then mixed with them. The process destroys both
cultures. If we will but look at our own history we will see a lesson. That part of our
culture that came from the Pilgrims and then moved westward as the needs required used
their own labor. They had large families and the children worked in their enterprises, be
it farming or a shop in town. They remained separated from other peoples and they were
told in their churches that gold would be used for street paving in the future! As long as
our forefathers stayed separate, feared God, loved their neighbor as themselves and did
not love mammon more than their gifts form God, they were a peculiar people to Him. Look
around us in modern America and what we see speaks for itself. But it is not too late. It
is not too late. Not yet.
Now back to where we left off in our story, as related in National Geographics.
"Early mapmakers and explorers gave credence to the legend.
Place-names from the Navigatio appear on later charts, and early navigators sought vainly
for 'St. Brendan's Isle.' Fact or fantasy, the Navigatio had incalculable impact on the
great European voyages of discovery, INCLUDING THAT OF COLUMBUS.
According to the legend, St. Brendan and his fellow monks set
sail from Ireland in a leather-hulled curragh; this same type of boat, now covered with
tarred canvas, is still used by Irish fishermen. The voyage lasted seven years and
introduced the monks to such wonders as demons who hurled fire at them, a floating crystal
column, and a sea creature as great as an island. Scholars wonder today: Mighty they have
been volcanic eruptions...an iceberg...a whale? Finally, Brendan and his shipmates reached
the Promised Land, a huge, lush island divided by a mighty river.
Soon afterward they sailed home to Ireland, where Brendan died.
There the legend of St. Brendan ends, to be given new vitality in the 1970's by a
real-life sequel. In the following article, British author and explorer Timothy Severin
recounts his epic Atlantic crossing aboard a leather boat. In proving that such a long-ago
voyage could have been made, Tim Severin and his crew have brought one of history's most
intriguing takes a giant step closer to the realm of possibility. THE EDITOR."
When David died as the world emperor, he was ruling over the Mediterranean Sea in
conjunction with the Phoenicians; he ruled over conquered territory from Egypt somewhere
in the interior of Asia. And Israelites were present in Britain and America.
During the reign of King Solomon he inherited a huge domain, great power and he devoted
himself to wisdom and good rule during the first part of his reign. 1 Kings 4:20-25
related that Israel dwelt safely all the days of Solomon, indeed, how could they not,
there was no one left in that area to challenge them.
1 Kings 5:12 show King Hiram and the Phoenicians were allied to Israel.
"And the Lord gave Solomon wisdom, as he promised him: and there was peace between
Hiram and Solomon; and they two made a league together."
1 Kings 4:31-34 makes some statements which the world's historians hate. It states that
Solomons' wisdom was known to all the nations of the earth.
"For he was wiser than all men; than Ethan the Ezrahite, and Heman, and Chalcol, and
Darda, the sons of Mahol: and his fame was in all nations round about. And he spake three
thousand proverbs: and his songs were a thousand and five. And he spake of trees, from the
cedar tree that is in Lebanon even unto the hyssop that springeth out of the wall: he
spake also of beasts, and of fowl, and of creeping things, and of fishes. And there came
of all people to hear the wisdom of Solomon, from all kings of the earth, which had heard
of his wisdom."
2 Chronicles states all the kings of the earth sought the presence of Solomon and brought
their tributes year by year and presents to hear his wisdom.
"And all the drinking vessels of king Solomon were of gold, and all the vessels of
the house of the forest of Lebanon were of pure gold: none were of silver; it was not any
thing accounted of in the days of Solomon. For the king's ships went to Tarshish with the
servants of Huram: every three years once came the ships of Tarshish bringing gold, and
silver, ivory, and apes, and peacocks. And king Solomon passed all the kings of the earth
in riches and wisdom. And all the kings of the earth sought the presence of Solomon, to
hear his wisdom, that God had put in his heart."
Is this just some imagination exaggeration of some Hebrew writer? He couldn't actually
mean it could he? Well 2 Chronicles 8, 18:9-10 and 1 Kings 9 also show that Israel and
Phoenicia joined their navies into one navy, and it mentions they mingled the crews on the
same ship.
Berry Falls book "America B.C." has some remarkable revelations of the real
extent of just how much the Israelites and the Phoenician alliance was in the area which
consists of the United States today. He states in his book "America B.C." that
the Phoenicians had a regular port of call of the coast of Maine. Where an old inscription
was found which he translates: "Ships of Phoenicia cargo platform."
Fell states:
"It is obvious that the flat topped island would not have been set aside for the
loading and unloading of Phoenician ships were they not regular visitors to America, with
a predictable time table of ports of arrival and departure and expected dates."
He adds:
"These inscriptions suggest that international maritime commerce was well established
in what he calls the late bronze age. That North American ports were listed on a sailing
timetable of the overseas vessels of the principle Phoenician shipping companies. And that
the same information was circulated to customers in America."
This, along with the above information, gives us an entirely different perspective on just
how wide spread was international commerce in the ancient world, and just how intelligent
these people were. These people were not cavemen or neanderthals or some people
evolutionary revolving from some primitive background, they were intelligent. How
permanent were these settlements in the new world? The book "America B.C." also
shows the evidence that the Phoenicians had a twenty acre temple site to Baal and pagan
deities in New Hampshire. This is not the evidence of people who were just coming for just
a few years to trade with the Indians and go. They had very substantial settlements here.
Israel, as we know, quickly joined itself to the Baal worship of the Phoenicians, so it is
not surprising that the Baal worship was dominating the old world colonies of the
Israelites and the Phoenicians. There were, also, worshippers of the True God of Israel
were present in the new world. In "Saga America" another book by Berry Fell in
two issues of the occasional publications of the Uppergrafic Society of which he was
president, showed that the Ten Commandments were written in the ancient Hebrew and they
were carved into the rock in New Mexico, as we have shown above. A tablet which contained
the Ten Commandments was also found in Ohio; this was found in 1860 at the opening of the
Civil War or it very likely would have gotten much more attention. So, obviously, there
were Israelites who were serving the True God in America. How many is very difficult to
guess, since the worshippers of the True God did not build pagan temples or leave
monuments to the pagan gods, as the Phoenicians did. Soon after Solomon became king, Egypt
joined the Israelites Phoenician alliance, which is discussed in 1 Kings 3:1.
"And Solomon made affinity with Pharaoh king of Egypt, and took Pharaoh's daughter,
and brought her into the city of David, until he had made an end of building his own
house, and the house of the Lord, and the wall of Jerusalem round about."
The Pharaoh of Egypt conquered a city it states:
"For Pharaoh king of Egypt had gone up, and taken Gezer, and burnt it with fire, and
slain the Canaanites that dwelt in the city, and given it for a present unto his daughter,
Solomon's wife."
Which was dowry for his daughter who was Solomon and was apparently his first wife. So, we
can see that both King Hiram and Egypt's Pharaoh took the classic action of lesser powers
toward a greater power, initiating the efforts to try to bind themselves to a superior
power.
Egypt's sailors were a fair skinned group of maritime people who settled in the area of
ancient Lybia. This is covered in "America B.C." and "Bronze Age
America" where he goes into the classical writers, and it is not his own idea. There
is evidence of ancient Egyptians found in Maine, they were known as the Knickknack Indians
which Dr. McDonald states was the Algonquian or Iroquois Race. There have also been
Egyptian hieroglyphics found on Long Island. While the ancient Libyan language of their
sailors has been found in Quebec, Canada, New Hampshire, Pennsylvania, Oklahoma,
California, Texas and New York. This may sound like a roll call for a lot of people in
these areas but we highly recommend these books so that you can see for yourself.
There are other states where a person by the name of Gloria Sally has found evidence of
inscriptions left by the Celts, the Libyans and the Phoenicians who ascended the
Mississippi, Cimmeron and Arkansas Rivers.
The Bible does tell us that the Israelites, Phoenicians and the Egyptians were allied in
the first millennium B.C. so we should not be shocked to find that these groups were the
ones found in the North American Continent. Is it any coincidence that the Archeological
discoveries of America's past have shown these three groups were working together and
exploring what has become the territory called the United States? There is a smoking gun
to show that these groups were working together, the new world equivalent of the Rosette
Stone has been sitting, largely unappreciated in a Davenport, Iowa museum. Its a
trilingual parallel ancient inscription recording a pagan ceremony which looked very much
like a May Pole or May Day celebration.
It had joint inscriptions of Egyptian hieroglyphics, the ancient Libyan, which was the
language of their sailors and what is now called an Iberian Tunic. This is a language
which was descended from the Hebrew Phoenicians. It was found in 1874; so it was not found
just yesterday, it has been here and ignored for a long time. But it proves these groups
were working together in the new world and it was in inscriptions that could be understood
by anyone in those three groups of people.
Another artifact found in Oklahoma refers to the Phoenician god Baal and the Egyptian god
Ra, and is dated by Fells to be about 800 B.C. Comment has to be made on the closeness of
the Israelite Hebrew and the Phoenician language of Tyre and Sidon to show that the
Phoenician inscriptions are also Hebrew or Israelite.
George Wellington a famous British historian of the late 1800s comments in his book
"Phoenicia:"
"The words most commonly in use, particles, the pronoun, the forms of the verb, the
principle inflections and we may add the numerals in Phoenician are identical or near
identical to the pure Hebrew. Many other sources comment on the similarity as well; and
many sources reflect that the English language came from the Hebrew."
In the book "Short History of the Near East" by Philip Piffy, he states:
"The Phoenician trade on an international scale on textiles, metals, glass, pottery
and etc., gave the country three centuries, beginning around 1000 B.C. a prosperity
unmatched in its history."
Now the world recognizes the Phoenicians had an empire at that time, but they do not wish
to acknowledge that in 1000 B.C. which was the time that David and Solomon rose to power
and three centuries later when the Phoenician power seem to disappear was when the
Israelites left the area of Palestine. The Phoenicians did not have them around to be
allied to. Ecclesiastes Two mentions that Solomon collected the best that the world had to
offer in architecture, music, art, etc., and there was no bounds to his wisdom.
The Bible says that God had given him a heart as big as a sea-shore. It also states that
the kings when they brought their gifts to Solomon year by year, included animals, gold,
silver, many types products and artwork. Which very likely occurred during the feast of
tabernacles, which Israel was keeping at that time. There were several types of the
millennium that parallel the prophecies at that time. For the world was at peace during
the time that Solomon was a righteous king living by God's Laws. He was a peaceful king of
kings, living in Jerusalem, and the rest of the world was flowing to Israel; he was
preceded by an era of great wars, just like the millennium will be, when he and David his
father put down many enemies.
So we can see that Solomon ruled an area greater than the Caesars of Rome. The
Mediter-ranean was an Israelites lake; it was ruled by Israel and its allies the
Phoenicians and Egyptians; he was in charge of the Mid-East and the Mesopotamians were
ruled by Israel; but we don't know how far that went into Asia; Egypt was his ally and he
had extensive presence in the new world; America was extensively explored and colonized.
Historians also record that Cadez, a city in Spain that is called Cadez now, was founded
by the Phoenicians about 1000 B.C., which, again, was during the reign of David and
Solomon.
When one looks at the historic records of the Phoenicians the period of 1000 B.C. is very
common when they mark their ascension to greatness, which the Bible also identifies as the
time when David and Solomon began their golden age. Early British historians record that
the Phoenicians were heavily involved in colonizing and mining in the British Isles. In
Raymond Capt's book "The Traditions of Glastenbury" mentions some of the early
historical accounts of the Tribe of Asher of Israel overseeing the mining operations in
Britain. Now when Israel split into Israel and Judah this alliance weakened. Wars were
fought between the Israelites and the Judeans, and yes at times they were allied.
But Israel went very deep into the Baal worship of Phoenicia and around 870-850 B.C.
Israel was ruled by King Ahab, who was married to a Phoenician princess by the name of
Jezebel from the city state of Sidon. Which shows that the Phoenician/Israelites alliance
was still followed. When God sent a prophet name Elijah in the middle of the ninth century
B.C. Israel's King Ahab had gotten to a point where he was so evil that Elijah had prayed
for a drought on the land of Israel. James 5 shows that it lasted 3½ years.
"Elias (Elijah) was a man subject to like passions as we are, and he prayed earnestly
that it might not rain: and it rained not on the earth by the space of three years and six
months."
1 Kings 17 and 18 show that the drought was so severe that the creeks dried up, and there
was no vegetation was left for the animals. Starvation was prevalent in both Israel and
the Phoenician city states as we can see from the example of Elijah when he was sent to
the home of the Sidonian widow.
1 Kings 18 states that King Ahab had searched for Elijah in all the nations.
"As the Lord thy God liveth, there is no nation or kingdom, whither my lord hath not
sent to seek thee: and when they said, He is not there; he took an oath of the kingdom and
nation, that they found thee not."
Now that we know those international maritime routes included the area now known as the
United States in the new world, that takes on new meaning as it was not just in the
mid-east where the search took place. For Israel was still among the great nations of the
earth with a large population. During this drought, they had one choice, they could either
stay and starve or they could migrate elsewhere and live.
Now Israel had a colonial empire that was quite large, and they had many places to go.
However, when one has women and children you do not want to put them on a boat and cross
the ocean to America, or Great Britain or even to Spain, you wanted to take them somewhere
as close to home as possible, to avoid the rigors of distant travel, yet was away from the
drought.
History records that Cartage was founded by the Phoenicians in the middle of the 9th
century B.C. Which coincides, roughly with the same time that Israel was experiencing its
drought. Alfred Church's book called "Cartage" written in 1890 shows that the
name Cartage was the Roman name for the city but that is not the name the Carthagenians
called themselves.
They called the city, according to Alfred Church's book, the Carthegians called themselves
Cherjaf-habashaf, which Hebrew meaning "new town." A very appropriate name for a
new colony, which was being started. Now several historians of Cartage records the
magistrates were called the Saphetes by the Romans, but again, that is not the name they
called their own magistrates.
In the Carthagenian language when looking at their artifacts, they called them the
Shepheta, which is also Hebrew for the word judges. The name of one of the Books of the
Bible - Judges. One of their early kings was named Marcus, a Hebrew name, still present
during the time of Christ, when the High Priests servant was named Marcus. Remember, he's
the one who had his ear cut off, when Peter tried to cut off his head but got his ear
instead. Also they had a reference to the Hebrew El, which is depicted in Carthagian
artifacts as sitting between the Cherubims.
In the book "Daily Life in Cartage" it states the priestly laws of Cartage was:
"A very significant resemblance to the Book of Leviticus, and many of the sacrifices
corresponded exactly to those of the Hebrews."
Many historians have noticed the similarity of the Carthagenians or as the Romans called
it the Tunic tongue, to Hebrew. As late as the fourth century A.D., which was many
centuries after Cartage fell, remnants of the Tunic culture were recognized by early
church writers such as St. Augustine and St. Jerome as having their roots in the Hebrew
language.
The Encyclopedia Judicia, when it talks about the fall of Samaria, to the Assyrians it
mentions that the Africans, which was their word for the Carthagenans contested with the
Jews over the rights of Arab/Israel, or the land of Israel. Now this would make no sense
at all if Cartage did not consist of the descendent of the Tribes of Israel. Who had gone
into captivity, or had left that area. But they clearly recognized that the land of
Palestine was a cultural heritage to the people of Cartage, since they claimed that land
as their own at that time.
Cartage became very powerful in the middle of the first millennium B.C. In their early
days they were much stronger than Rome and imposed a treaty on Rome, which basically
forbade them from sailing in the Western Mediterranean and telling them where they could
sail their ships. They were the enemies of Greece and Rome, they kept them out of the
Atlantic Ocean with the Carthagenian Navy. But the Greeks did record some information
about what Cartage had found in their Atlantic voyages. And a lot of this will probably be
quite new to you. The Greeks record:
"In the sea outside the pillars of Hercules, that's Gibraltar, an island was found by
the Carthagians, a wilderness having wood of all kinds, and navigatable rivers; remarkable
for various kinds of fruit, many sailing distance day away. When the Carthagenians, who
were the masters of the western ocean, observed that many traitors and other men were
attracted by the fertility of the soil and the pleasant climate, they frequented it. And
some resided there. They feared that knowledge of the land would reach other
nations."
You can check the historical accounts and see that Cartage at that point became very
protective of what was going on west of the Atlantic Ocean, and did not allow the sailors
of other nations past Gibraltar. A Greek, in the first century by the name of Diatrous,
wrote:
"Over against Africa, on the other side of Africa lies a very great island in the
vast ocean. Many days sail westward of Libya or from Libya westward, the soil is very
fruitful, a great part is mountainous and much likewise is a plane. It has several
navagatable rivers, it has very large woods, fresh water and all sorts of wild beasts to
hunt."
If one will take a globe of the earth and go westward from Libya to that part of the
globe, you will come right into the heartland of what is now called the United States.
This land was obviously America; and it stayed in the hands of the Israelite Carthageians
for many many years after Cartage fell. It was the secret of Cartage's wealth, and Cartage
is acknowledged as a very wealthy city at that time. In giving America's land to the
Carthagians God was passing on to them the promises to Abraham's seed. Also they inherited
the promise of possessing the gates of their enemies. And they held a lock-hold on
Gibraltar during much of this time.
Heroticus a Greek historian records that,
"the Carthagenians sent an expedition westward from Gibraltar, which included 30,000
men and women, sixty ships, in a time frame of 500-480 B.C. that was when Cartage was much
stronger. Westward through the pillars of Hercules to a destination he did not know."
Think for a moment, 30,000 men and women; that's a colonizing expedition, in 60 ships: by
doing a little math that is 500 people per ship. Which will give you an idea of the size
of the vessel, which even the Greeks acknowledge the Carthagenians were sailing. This also
gives us an idea of the size of the ships the Phoenicians and Israelites had during the
reign of David and Solomon's time.
Carthagian coins and artifacts have been found in North America, which is a story that is
basically not told anywhere. It is in Berry Fells book, but the typical academic writers
do not want to really deal with what he has discovered. These coins have been found in
Colorado, New York, Alabama, Connecticut and Nevada. You can even take some of the
Carthagenan inscriptions which Fell discusses in his book; you can get a Hebrew Lexicon
out of your Concordance and you can come to the exact same translation that Fell does by
using those Hebrew Lexicons.
Most people do not realize this because history has been taught from the Greco-Roman
perspective but America was long known about, in ancient history. And that Cartage was
Israelite in it inception. However, in later years they became a pyelograph people, they
became very degenerate. How long they had worshippers of the True God we do not know. But
they became extremely evil; indulging in child sacrifice, mass sacrifices of human beings
- they became extremely violent.
When Rome in the second Tunic war, finally won that war it was actually God's judgment
against Cartage and its Israelite people as punishment for their sins. But even in that
second Tunic War Cartage came very close to exterminating Rome from off the face of the
earth. When Hannibal, who was named after Baal, took an army into the Italian area and was
therefore years waging war against the Romans, conquering city after city trying to start
a revolt but they were not blessed with victory.
When Cartage fell in the middle of the 2nd century B.C., where did its people go? Since
some of the historians talk about the population of Cartage being some 600,000, it also
relates that only a few thousand stayed to fight the Romans to the bitter end. Some of
them probably sought a new life in Cartage's secret territories in America. For America
has been a land of refuge for a long time before the Pilgrims came. These people which
came at that time, were Baal worshippers as the remains in America shows. They had gotten
degenerate also, and likely died out in wars, intermarriage with the Indians and possibly
from VD from their wild sexual practices; which their monuments testify to.
The Carthagenian Israelites in their empire had Southern Spain including the area of
Gibraltar, parts of West Africa, and America in their domain. They traded exclusively in
the British Isles. The book "Judah's Scepter and Joseph's Birthright," goes into
the story of how Dan and Simeon arriving in Wales and Ireland. The Carthagenians traded
extensively with these people, but there is no evidence that those areas were part of
Cartage Empire, they were only mercantile contacts. Let's repeat, America was given to the
Israelites by God in the 1600 and 1700s as the British and European Israelite settlers
came again. Historians ignore this part of history because it proves their ideas of
evolution as a bunch of bologna.
The officials of the several states and the United States are drunk with power and they
like their roles in this altered form of government. Socialism- communism-illuminism is
the governing principle being put in practice by the governments of the several states as
well was the national-federal government. If you doubt that this is true, then study the
number of states which no longer have their state boundaries recorded in their respective
constitutions [30 at the present time]. Once this process is complete there won't be any
states left; only ten socialist-communist-illuminati regions governed directly from D.C.
You must ask yourself why your state officials have not raised a loud hue and cry warning
our people of what was going on and protesting these usurpations? Why is it that they have
not told us that our government was being restructured? Obviously, it is because they are
benefitting from it. They are, along with the minions in D.C., gaining power and absolute
authority over us. The Socialist-communist-illuminati system is enriching them in untold
ways. They are betraying us for their love of mammon. They are part and parcel of the
socialist-communist-illuminati plan. Why do you think they want to make D.C. a state?
Because when they do, D.C. will own [control] all the land in the United States. Remember,
Moscow owns all the land in Russia! Not just 10 miles square.
WAY BACK
Put a stop to socialism-communism-illuminati! The citizens of Texas, as well as the
citizens of the other states of the Union, still have the authority to alter or abolish
their amended constitutions and put the originals back in force. Our forefathers provided
for it:
"FREEDOM AND SOVEREIGNTY OF STATE. Texas is a free and independent State, subject
only to the Constitution of the United States, and the maintneance of our free
institutions and the perpetuity of the Union depend upon the preservation of the right of
local self-government, unimpaired to all the States."
Then the proviso to change the government is provided in the very next Section:
"INHERENT POLITICAL POWER; REPUBLICAN FORM OF GOVERNMENT. All political power is
inherent in the people, and all free governments are founded on their authority, and
instituted for their benefit. The faith of the people of Texas stands pledged to the
preservation of a republican form of government, and, subject to this limitation only,
they have at all times THE INALIENABLE RIGHT TO ALTER, REFORM, OR ABOLISH THEIR GOVERNMENT
IN SUCH MANNER AS THEY MAY THINK EXPEDIENT."
These words, or similar, are found in most of the original, and even many of the current,
state constitutions. The citizens have the right by convention to RE-ESTABLISH THE
REPUBLICS THAT HAVE BEEN TAKEN FROM US BY STEALTH AND DECEPTION. The citizens have the
absolute right to put the original state constitutions and the republics their fathers
formed back into full force and effect. The citizens have the right to put the Christian
Common Law principles of our Father's Laws back at the Head of Government. Everybody has
their own opinions about what is wrong with government, but nobody, especially the
politicians, seem to know what to do about it. This will be the last chance we will have
to avoid a total breakdown of the Christian form of government that the founders of the
several states established! The conspirators who seek a socialist-communist republic
have even gone so far as to remove the set boundary lines from the state constitutions.
Very few of the current state constitutions still retain the descriptions of the state
boundaries contained in the originals.
In some states the legislature has the authority to completely abolish the state
boundaries by statute, by interstate compact, or with the consent of Congress. This is
exactly what the socialists-communists would eventually like to do since state boundaries
only have meaning in the Christian Common Law Republic and have no real meaning in an
international socialist- communist form of republic. Or, maybe they already have done it
through the Social Security Act.
"The Soviet of Nationalities is elected by the citizens of the USSR voting by Union
Republics, Autonomous Republics, Autonomous Regions, and National Areas on the basis of
twenty five deputies from each Union Republic, eleven deputies from each Autonomous
Republic, five deputies from each Autonomous Region, and one deputy from each National
Area."
No longer can the Christian citizens, in the states, trust their elected officials. They
must act in their own interest and restore their Christian Constitutions. The White People
of the respective states have the vested right to alter or abolish the present
constitutions and to replace them with the necessary safeguards to further our Christian
Republics. By calling for a state convention of the "People," which does not
require consent from the legislature, or any other branch of government for that matter,
this can be accomplished.
RESTORE AMERICA TO ITS FORMER CHRISTIAN STATUS
The most striking of the Mosaic Laws [God's Laws], which Christ endorsed, when He came
"to fulfill."
"But the stranger that dwelleth with you shall be unto you as one born among you, and
thou shalt love him as thyself..."
This Scripture is given an affirmation in the Constitution; in the cases of Meyer vs.
Nebraska and Bartels vs. Iowa, the Supreme Court said:
"The protection of the Constitution extends to all, -- to those who speak other
languages as well as to those born with English on the tongue."
In Leviticus 19:35, we find:
"Ye shall do no unrighteousness in judgment, in meteyard, in weight, or in
measure."
And in the case of Truax vs. Reich, the Supreme Court held:
"Aliens cannot be denied the equal protection of the laws."
Therefore, the Constitution, like the Mosaic Law, provides that the stranger within our
gates, who offends against our people, may be returned to his native land; but while he is
here he must be treated justly; he must be accorded "the equal protection of the
laws;" that the inalienable rights bestowed by his Creator must be respected. Many
state constitutions have a preamble which reads much the same as that of Texas:
"Humbly invoking the blessings of Almighty God, the people of the State of Texas, do
ordain and establish this Constitution."
The "Original" Constitution not only followed the Bible in requiring that
justice be done to the stranger within our gates, but it also followed the Divine Law in
protecting our own people against foreign domination. The provision that the President
must be a "natural born citizen" is a statement of the Mosaic Law, which stated:
"No foreigner shall rule over you."
The contribution of Christianity to the formation of our "Original" Republican
Government can be seen in the formation of that government; in the DOCUMENTS of the
FORMATION OF THE UNION OF THE AMERICAN STATES.
DECLARATION OF THE CAUSES AND NECESSITY OF TAKING UP ARMS, JULY 6, 1775 --
"A declaration by the Representatives of the United Colonies
of North-America, now met in Congress at Philadelphia, setting forth the causes and
necessity of their taking up arms. If it was possible for men, who exercise their reason
to believe, an unbounded power over others, MARKED OUT BY HIS INFINITE GOODNESS AND
WISDOM, as the objects of a legal domination never rightfully resistible, however severe
and oppressive, the inhabitants of these colonies might at least require from the
parliament of Great Britain some evidence, that this dreadful authority over them, has
been granted to that body.
BUT A REVERENCE FOR OUR GREAT CREATOR, principles of humanity,
and the dictates of common sense, must convince all those who reflect upon the subject,
that government was instituted to promote the welfare of mankind, and ought to be
administered for the attainment of that end...
Our forefathers, inhabitants of the island of Great Britain, left
their native land, to seek on these shores a residence for civil and RELIGIOUS FREEDOM
...Our cause is just. Our union is perfect. Our internal resources are great, and, if
necessary foreign assistance is undoubtedly attainable, WE GRATEFULLY ACKNOWLEDGE, AS
SIGNAL INSTANCES OF THE DIVINE FAVOR TOWARDS US, THAT HIS PROVIDENCE would not permit us
to be exercised in warlike operation, and possessed of the means of defending ourselves.
With hearts fortified with these animating reflections, we most solemnly, BEFORE GOD and
the world declare, that, exerting the utmost energy of those powers, WHICH OUR BENEFICENT
CREATOR hath graciously bestowed upon us, the arms we have been compelled by our enemies
to assume, we will, in defiance of every hazard, with unabating firmness and perseverance,
employ for the preservation of our liberties; being with on mind resolved to die freemen
rather than to live slaves...WITH AN HUMBLE CONFIDENCE IN THE MERCIES OF THE SUPREME AND
IMPARTIAL JUDGE AND RULER OF THE UNIVERSE, WE MOST DEVOUTLY IMPLORE HIS DIVINE GOODNESS TO
PROTECT US HAPPILY THROUGH THIS GREAT CONFLICT, TO DISPOSE OUR ADVERSARIES TO
RECONCILIATION ON REASONABLE TERMS, AND THEREBY TO RELIEVE THE EMPIRE FROM THE CALAMITIES
OF CIVIL WAR."
PREAMBLE AND RESOLUTION OF THE VIRGINIA CONVENTION, MAY 15, 1776, INSTRUCTING THE VIRGINIA
DELEGATES IN THE CONTINENTAL CONGRESS TO "PROPOSE TO THAT RESPECTABLE BODY TO DECLARE
THE UNITED COLONIES FREE AND INDEPENDENT STATES."
"WHEREFORE, APPEALING TO THE SEARCHER OF HEARTS for the sincerity of former
declarations expressing our desire to preserve the connection with that nation, and that
we are driven from that inclination by their wicked councils, and the eternal law of self-
preservation..."
THE DECLARATION OF INDEPENDENCE -- 1776 in Congress, July 4, 1776, The Unanimous
Declaration of the Thirteen United States of America --
"When in the Course of human events, it becomes necessary
for one people to dissolve the political bands which have connected them with another, and
to assume among the powers of the earth, the separate and equal station to which THE LAWS
OF NATURE AND OF NATURE'S GOD ENTITLE THEM, a decent respect to the opinion of them to the
separation. -- We hold these truths to be self evident, that all men are created equal,
that they are endowed by THEIR CREATOR with certain unalienable Rights, that among these
are Life, Liberty and the Pursuit of Happiness...
WE, THEREFORE, the REPRESENTATIVES of the UNITED STATES of
AMERICA, in General Congress, Assembled, APPEALING TO THE SUPREME JUDGE OF THE WORLD for
the rectitude of our intentions...-- And for the support of this Declaration, WITH A FIRM
RELIANCE ON THE PROTECTION OF DIVINE PROVIDENCE, we mutually pledge to each other our
Lives, or Fortunes and our Sacred Honor."
ARTICLES OF CONFEDERATION, March 1, 1781 --
"...on the 15th day of November, IN THE YEAR OF OUR LORD One thousand Seven Hundred
and Seventy-seven...
Article XIII
"...AND WHEREAS IT HATH PLEASED THE GREAT GOVERNOR OF THE WORLD TO INCLINE THE HEARTS
OF THE LEGISLATURES WE RESPECTIVELY REPRESENT IN CONGRESS, TO APPROVE OF, AND TO AUTHORIZE
US TO RATIFY THE SAID ARTICLES OF CONFEDERATION AND PERPETUAL UNION...Done at Philadelphia
in the State of Pennsylvania the ninth day of July, IN THE YEAR OF OUR LORD one Thousand
Seven Hundred and Seventy-eight, and in the third year of the Independence of
America."
ORDINANCE OF 1787, JULY 13, 1787 --
"...Sec. 13. AND FOR EXTENDING THE FUNDAMENTAL PRINCIPLES OF CIVIL AND RELIGIOUS
LIBERTY, WHICH FORM THE BASIS WHEREON THESE REPUBLICS, THEIR LAWS AND CONSTITUTIONS, ARE
ERECTED...
Article I --
No person, demeaning himself in a peaceable and orderly manner, shall ever be molested on
account of his mode of worship, or religious sentiments, in the said territory...
Article III --
Religion, morality, and knowledge being necessary to good government and the happiness of
mankind, schools and the means of education shall forever be encouraged ...Done by the
United States, in Congress assembled, in the 13th day of July, IN THE YEAR OF OUR LORD
1787, and of their sovereignty and independence the twelfth."
CREDENTIALS OF THE MEMBERS OF THE FEDERAL CONVENTION --
"...IN THE YEAR OF OUR LORD..."
In the Debates of the members of the Federal Convention --
"...In the beginning of the Contest with Great Britain, when
we were sensible of danger WE HAD DAILY PRAYER IN THIS ROOM FOR THE DIVINE PROTECTION. --
OUR PRAYERS, Sir, WERE HEARD, AND THEY WERE GRACIOUSLY ANSWERED. All of us who were
engaged in the struggle must have observed frequent instances of a superintending
providence in our favor. TO THAT KIND PROVIDENCE we owe this happy opportunity of
consulting in peace on the means of establishing our future national felicity. HAVE WE NOT
FORGOTTEN THAT POWERFUL FRIEND? OR DO WE IMAGINE THAT WE NO LONGER NEED HIS ASSISTANCE? I
have lived, Sir, a long time, and the longer I live, the more convincing proofs I see of
this truth -- THAT GOD GOVERNS IN THE AFFAIRS OF MEN. AND IF A SPARROW CANNOT FALL TO THE
GROUND WITHOUT HIS NOTICE, IS IT PROBABLE THAT AN EMPIRE CAN RISE WITHOUT HIS AID?
WE HAVE BEEN ASSURED, Sir, IN THE SACRED WRITINGS, THAT 'EXCEPT THE LORD BUILD THE HOUSE
THEY LABOUR IN VAIN THAT BUILD IT.' I FIRMLY BELIEVE THIS; AND I ALSO BELIEVE THAT WITHOUT
HIS CONCURRING AID WE SHALL SUCCEED IN THIS POLITICAL BUILDING NO BETTER, THAN THE
BUILDERS OF BABEL: We shall be divided by our little partial local interests; our projects
will be confounded, and we ourselves shall become a reproach and bye word down to future
ages. And what is worse, mankind may hereafter from this unfortunate instance, despair of
establishing Governments by Human wisdom and leave it to chance, war and conquest. I
therefore beg leave to move -- THAT HENCEFORTH PRAYERS IMPLORING THE ASSISTANCE OF HEAVEN,
AND ITS BLESSINGS ON OUR DELIBERATIONS, BE HELD IN THIS ASSEMBLY EVERY MORNING BEFORE WE
PROCEED TO BUSINESS, AND THAT ONE OR MORE OF THE CLERGY OF THIS CITY BE REQUESTED TO
OFFICIATE THAT SERVICE ...
Mr. Randolph proposed in order to give a favorable aspect to ye
measure, THAT A SERMON BE PREACHED at the request of the convention on the 4th of July,
the anniversary of Independence; and THENCE FORWARD PRAYERS BE USED in Ye Convention every
morning..." "...IN RELIGION THE CREATURE IS APT TO FORGET ITS
CREATOR..." "...MOST MEN INDEED AS WELL AS MOST SECTS IN RELIGION, think
themselves in possession of all truth, and that wherever others differ from them it is so
far error. Steele a Protestant in a Dedication tells the Pope, that the only difference
between our Churches in their opinions of the certainty of their doctrines, is, the Church
of Rome is infallible and the Church of England is never in the wrong..."
"...That the People have an equal, natural and unalienable
right freely and peaceably to Exercise their Religion according to the dictates of
Conscience, and that no Religious Sect or Society ought to be favoured or established by
Law in preference of others..."
"...That religion, OR THE DUTY WHICH WE OWE TO OUR CREATOR,
and the manner of discharging it, can be directed only by reason, and conviction, not by
force or violence, and therefore all men have an equal, natural and unalienable right to
the free exercise of religion according to the dictates of conscience, and that no
particular religious sect or society ought to be favoured or established by law in
preference to others..."
So, how did the anti-Christs propose to change the original Republican Government into a
Democracy so it would no longer be a protector of Christianity? They made our American
People forget that our Founding Fathers organized our American form of Government for the
purpose of protecting Christians and Christianity from all of its enemies. They have all
but accomplished this purpose through their ownership of the publishing houses, where they
have removed from our schools history books the writings of our colonial founders. In that
way they keep our children from reading documents such as the MARYLAND CHARTER which ended
with a proviso that no interpretation of the charter should be allowed whereby
"God's Holy and True Christian Religion might in any wise suffer."
They deny to our people the knowledge that our forefathers wrote into the RHODE ISLAND
CHARTER, that the very reason for the Rhode Island Government was that the people might,
"BE IN A BETTER CAPACITY TO DEFEND THEMSELVES IN THEIR RIGHTS AND LIBERTIES AGAINST
ALL THE ENEMIES OF THE CHRISTIAN FAITH."
In short, they deny to us and our children the truth that our American Republican
Government was established to protect our Christian people in the practice of their
Christian faith. Through the television programs, movies, schools and the pulpits of the
Clergy of Organized Religion, who are traitors to Christ and are mostly Prophets of Baal,
and have sold their pulpits to the enemies of Christ and America, and have denied us the
knowledge of the true origins of our government and that its laws were derived from the
Christian Bible!
Consider how helpless this has made those who oppose the wicked. Think of the various
kinds of evil and corruption THE SINS -- that are destroying this once Great Christian
Nation; SINS such as drugs, alcohol, pornographic material in magazines, movies,
television and the establishment of the abortion [Murder] mills of the unborn.
So-called "Free love" rather than marriage, and if married, an easy divorce. And
when we Christians oppose these evil things [just as did our ancestors in Ancient Israel
when they fought against the Edomite and Canaanite {Jewish} Nations who practiced these
evils, and it is their descendents who have brought these damnable things into our beloved
country] -- they call us "Bigots," "Right-wing fanatics,"
"kooks," "Neo-Nazi's," "anti-Semitic,"
"Jesus-freaks," or "Fascists."
They claim we must not insist upon the enforcement of God's Laws against these sins,
because, after all, "We are a pluralistic society," or "We are not a
Christian Nation." One even hears well known television, evangelists using those same
phrases [By their fruits ye shall know them. It is by such teachings we know they have
become nothing but prostitutes and that they have joined the ranks of Christs' and
Americas' enemies]. We hear from such so-called Christian Ministers, such as Jerry Falwell
exclaim:
"It's a shame America was founded as a Christian Nation."
Therefore, you cannot counter their statements, and brand them as the lies they are if you
do not know that we WERE a Christian Nation. That as a result of such teachings the men in
government do not know America is/was a Christian Nation, so they can not or will not
enforce God's Laws as the Laws of the Land. The enemies of Christ and America, say all too
many times, "You can't enforce morality," and yet that is exactly what our early
American Government did when it executed or imprisoned abortionists, murderers and
traitors. WHILE IT WAS ENFORCING GOD'S LAWS AMERICA GREW INTO THE RICHEST, STRONGEST,
GREATEST AND MOST POWERFUL NATION IN THE HISTORY OF MANKIND!N.S. McFetridge has thrown
more light upon another development of the Revolutionary period.
So, for the sake of accuracy and completeness we shall take the privilege of quoting him
rather extensively.
"Another important factor in the independent movement was
what is known as the 'Mecklenburg Declaration,' proclaimed by the Scotch-Irish
Presbyterians of North Carolina, May 20, 1775, more than a year before the Declaration [of
Independence] of Congress.
It was a fresh, hearty greeting of the Scotch-Irish to their
struggling brethren in the North, and their bold challenge to the power of England. They
had been keenly watching the progress of the contest between the colonies and the Crown,
and when they heard of the address presented by the Congress to the King, declaring the
colonies in actual rebellion, they deemed it time for patriots to speak. According, they
called a representative body together in Charlotte, N.C., which by unanimous resolution
declared the people free and independent, and that all laws and commissions from the king
were henceforth null and void. In their Declaration were such resolutions as these; 'We do
hereby dissolve the political bands which have connected us with the mother-country, and
hereby absolve ourselves from all allegiance to the British Crown...We hereby declare
ourselves a free and independent people; are, and of right ought to be, a sovereign and
self-governing association, under control of no power other than that of our God and the
general government of Congress; to the maintenance of which we solemnly pledge to each
other our mutual co-operation and our lives, our fortunes and our most sacred honor.'...
That assembly was composed of twenty-seven staunch Christians,
just one-third of whom were ruling elders in the Presbyterian Church including the
president and secretary; and one was a Presbyterian clergyman. The man who drew up that
famous and important document was the secretary, Ephraim Brevard, a ruling elder of the
Presbyterian Church and a graduate of Princeton College. Bancroft says of it that it was,
'in effect, a declaration as well as a complete system of government.'"
In the Reformed Doctrine of Predestination, by Loraine Boettner, p. 394 we find:
"The...ideas concerning governments and rulers have been
ably expressed by J.C. Monsuma in the following lucid paragraph: 'Governments are
instituted by God through the instrumentality of the people. No Kaiser or president has
any power inherent in himself; whatever power he possesses, whatever sovereignty he
exercises, is power and sovereignty derived from the great Source above.
No might, but right, and might springing from the eternal
Fountain of Justice...If the government were nothing but a group of men, bound to carry
out the wishes of a popular majority, his freedom-loving soul would rebel.
But now, to his mind, and according to his fixed belief, back of
the government stands God and before Him he kneels in deepest reverence. Here also lies
the fundamental reason for that profound and almost fanatical love of freedom, also the
political freedom...The government is God's servant. That means that AS MEN all government
officials stand on an equal footing with their subordinates; have no claim to superiority
in any sense whatever...For exactly the same reason the [Christian] gives preference to a
republican form of government over any other type. In no other form of government does the
sovereignty of God, the derivative character of government powers and the equality of men
as men, find a clearer and more eloquent expression.'"
However, since it has become a Democracy at the dictates of the GREATEST TRAITOR IN THE
HISTORY OF THE UNITED STATES, PRESIDENT FRANKLIN D. ROOSEVELT, it has been rapidly
declining until it is now a mere shell of its former greatness.
You may not have thought of it just that way, and perhaps your Minister has joined the
chorus saying "we can't enforce Bible Laws." But the writers of the New
Testament knew it was the job of government to enforce morality. Romans 13 relates twice
that civil rulers are called Ministers of God to punish evildoers. In other words, to
punish those who violate Bible Laws. So, you see, the New Testament says that government
is to punish those who break God's Laws. Our Christian forefathers knew that and to our
Founding Fathers that was the essence of Christian Government. There is more in the New
Testament to show that God's Laws are to be enforced by government to punish evildoers.
"Knowing this, that the law is not made for a righteous man, but for the lawless and
disobedient, for the ungodly and for sinners, for unholy and profane, for murderers of
fathers and murderers of mother, for manslayers. For whoremongers, for them that defile
themselves with mankind, for menstealers, for liars, for perjured persons, and if there be
any other thing that is contrary to sound doctrine."
One other aspect needs to be addressed. That being:
WHITE RACE -- NOT CAUCASIAN
Many in the freedom and Christian Identity movement are beginning to refer to themselves
as "Caucasians" with the understanding that this term means only those of the
White Race. Well it is true every "Caucasian" belongs to the family of Adam.
But, not every "Caucasian" is an Israelite. The first naturalization Act passed
by Congress entitled, "...an Act to establish an uniform Rule of
Naturalization." (a) March 26, 1790, Ch. III, Sec. 1, 1 Stat. 103; and, An Act to
establish a uniform rule of Naturalization; and to repeal the acts heretofore passed on
that subject. (a) January 29, 1795, Ch. XX., Sec. 1, 1 Stat. 103, do not use this word
"Caucasian," they use the word "White."
"SECTION 1. Be it enacted by the Senate and House of Representatives of the United
States of America in Congress assembled. That any alien, BEING A FREE WHITE PERSON, who
shall have resided within the limits and under the jurisdiction of the United States for
the term of two years, may be admitted to become a citizen thereof..."
The Preamble to the Constitution for the United States of America states: "We the
People..." This was known and understood as only those of the White Race . The
Supreme Court ruled that the Preamble meant those of the White Race. The word
"WHITE" leaves no doubt as to its meaning. It does not mean black, brown, red,
yellow, or any mixture thereof; it means WHITE.
To true Christians, White means those of the Race of Adam, which is the creation of the
White Race by our Father, as He created SEPARATELY the brown, yellow and black races.
Reference to the Holy Bible is obviously missing from the court cases which we will be
dealing with, but we first seek our Father's Word to establish what the word means, then
read the court's interpretation so we can better understand if they're right. The forces
that wish to invade our Nation found it difficult to get around the word "White"
in the Naturalization Act.
As long as the county courts of Christian Common Law Jurisdiction within the boundaries of
the several state republics had control of naturalization, the Congress, under organic
Article I, Section 8, Clause 4, could only pass uniform laws of naturalization. Should
these acts of Congress become unconstitutional, the courts of Christian Common Law
Jurisdiction would not honor them and refuse to naturalize anyone NOT of the White Race,
as it violates the state constitutions and the Preamble to the Constitution for the United
States of America.
"SECTION 1. Be it enacted by the Senate and House of Representatives of the United
States of America in Congress assembled. That any alien, BEING A FREE WHITE PERSON, may be
admitted to become a citizen of the United States, or any of them, on the following
conditions, AND NOT OTHERWISE:-"
Note the change of the words in the 1802 Naturalization Act: "...AND NOT
OTHERWISE." Those who schemed to destroy this provision of our Nation's law knew that
they would have to alter or change the word "White" to another word and this
word would have to be acceptable to the White Citizens; it would have to have the
understanding of white, while it would open the door to non-whites to demand citizenship
in our nation. The principal was used in the Social Security Act. Before a White human
joined, the courts viewed him as human; after he joined, the courts viewed him as
artificial.
This kind of scheme is common among those who, by deception, wish to alter our law or
destroy our standing under the Organic Law. In all probability, the scheme used in the
Social Security Act was probably learned in the use of the word "Caucasian." The
first case is [Takao] Ozawa vs. United States, 43 S.Ct. 65; 260 U.S. 178; 67 L.ed. 199
(1922). Mr. Justice Sutherland delivered the opinion of the court:
"The appellant is a person of the Japanese race, born in Japan. He applied, on
October 16, 1914, to the United States district court for the territory of Hawaii to be
admitted as a citizen of the United States."
As stated, appellant is of the Japanese race, born in Japan, not in the United States. The
statutory 14th Amendment did not apply.
"The district court of Hawaii, however, held that, having been born in Japan, and
being of the Japanese race, he was not eligible to naturalization..."
The district court of Hawaii denied the petition and the appellant went to the circuit
court of appeals, which certified three (3) questions to the United States Supreme Court,
which were as follows:
1). Is the Act of June 29, 1906 , providing 'for a uniform rule for the
naturalization of aliens' complete in itself, or is it limited by @ 2169 of the
Revised Statutes of the United States?
2). Is one who is of the Japanese race and born in Japan eligible to
citizenship under the Naturalization Laws?
3). If said Act of June 29, 1906, is limited by @ 2169, and naturalzation is
limited to aliens being free white persons, and to aliens of African nativity,
and to persons of
African descent, is one of the Japanese race, born in Japan, under any circumstances
eligible to naturalization?
The statutory 14th article in the United States Constitution, of course, preceded this
statute; which is why the persons of African descent are brought into the case. The
schemers never fail to bring this into a case, as it really is important for them to show
that the Christian Common Law rule of one race to govern has really been broken; but it
also works against them, as each race, other than white, must be authorized by Congress to
be a statutory citizen -- race by race. The vehicle Congress used for this was the
statutory 14th Amendment which, today they have expanded to include all races, mixture of
races, and even corporations; all unconstitutionally in violation of our Father's Word and
the Basic law of our Nation. All of this was aided through the misconception of
interpreting the word "Caucasian" by saying it is synonymous with the word
"white," which in reality only describes a geographical area. There is no proof
that only whites lives in this area; just as you know, because a person says he's
European, doesn't mean he's of the White Race.
"Thus, in Ex parte Shahid, 205 Fed. 812, the court said that the meaning of the term
was such as would naturally have been given to it when used in the first naturalization
Act of 1790, at which date all Europeans were commonly classed as the White Race; and
that, under such an interpretation, it would mean all persons belonging to the European
races, then commonly counted as white, and their descendants, AND WOULD NOT REFER TO THE
CAUCASIAN RACE, a term generally employed only after the date of the statute, and in a
most loose and indefinite way; and that such geographical interpretation that white
persons meant person of European ancestry and descent was, at least, capable of uniform
application, and gave to the statute a construction that avoided the uncertainties of
shades of color and individious discriminations as to the race of individuals."
These court rulings were necessarily held because these people that were in the
geographical zone were claiming they were of the Caucasian zone. Do you see what is going
on? The court soon realized that to interpret by geographical areas was a big mistake.
Everything from purple to green claim to be eligible for citizenship in the United States
of America. When our forefathers and Founding Fathers wrote the Preamble, they knew who
"We the People" were; the first Congress knew when they passed the first
naturalization Act; and Mr. Chief Justice Marshall, in Dartmouth College vs. Woodward, 4
Wheat 518, 644; 4 L. ed. 629, 661, knew what it meant.
"...in deciding a question of constitutional construction:
'It is not enough to say that this particular case was not in the mind of the Convention
when the article was framed, nor of the American people when it was adopted. It is
necessary to go farther, and to say that, had this particular case been suggested, the
language would have been so varied as to exclude it, or it would have been made a special
exception. The case, being within the words of the rule, must be within its operation
likewise, unless there be something in the literal construction so obviously absurd or
mischievous, or repugnant to the general spirit of the instrument, as to justify those who
expound the Constitution in making it an exception.'
If it be assumed that the opinion of the framers was that the
only persons who would fall outside the designation 'white' were negroes and Indians, this
would go no farther than to demonstrate their lack of sufficient information to enable
them to foresee precisely who would be excluded by that term in the subsequent
administration of the statute. It is not important, in construing their words, to consider
the extent of their ethnological knowledge, or whether they through that, under the
statute, the only persons who would be denied naturalization would be Negroes and Indians.
It is sufficient to ascertain whom they intended to include; and, having ascertained that,
it follows, as a necessary corollary, that all others are to be excluded."
"But from the latest interpretation of this term by the
United States Supreme Court in United States vs. Bhagat Singh Think, post, 616, it appears
that the words 'white persons' and 'Caucasians' are not identical in meaning, and the test
of membership in the Caucasian race is only useful in excluding an alien who is not a
member of such race, and does not mean that mere membership in such race entitles an alien
to be naturalized, as explained by such court in excluding a Hindu, though of such race.
In a valuable discussion of this point, the court called attention to the fact that the
word 'Caucasian' did not appear in the statute; and was employed by the court simply as an
aid to the ascertainment of the legislative intent in using, in describing the class of
aliens who may be naturalized..."
This scheme to "waterdown" the word "white" was aided by another
scheme, the old saying: "out of sight, out of mind."
"As stated in Ozawa vs. United States, the expression 'white persons,' to describe
aliens capable of naturalization, is found in all our Naturalization Acts since the first
one, in 1790, except for a brief period from 1873 to 1875, WHEN IT WAS OMITTED BY
MISTAKE."
Another aid was the Revised Statutes themselves:
"These provisions were restated in the Revised Statutes, so that @ 2165 included only
the procedural portion, while the substantive parts were carried into a separate section
(2169) and the words 'An alien' substituted for the words 'Any alien.'"; "In all
of the Naturalization Acts, from 1790 to 1906, the privilege of naturalization was
confined to White Persons..."
Here, the schemers are trying to say the Revised Statutes changed the word "any"
to "an," and there by altered the intent of the Act of Congress as recorded in
the true law known as the United States Statutes at Large. The Revised Statutes are
codifications of the United States Statutes at Large, the U.S. Statutes at large are the
law, not the Revised Statutes, as shown.
"The division of the Revised Statutes into titles and
chapters is chiefly a matter of convenience, and reference to a given title or chapter is
simply a ready method of identifying the particular provisions which are meant.
It is inconceivable that a rule in force from the beginning of
the government, a part of our history as well as our law, welded into the structure of our
national policy by a century of legislative and administrative acts and judicial decisions
-- would have been deprived of its force in such dubious and casual fashion."
Those are the schemes the spoilers used to alter the word "white." I personally
believe that America is Israel. I believe that America is the regathering of the thirteen
tribes of Israel into a nation as our Father God has said he would do. I believe that the
White Race compose of the thirteen tribes, which is why the first Naturalization Act said
any White Person, regardless of his place or origin, could be a citizen in this Nation.
"And in Dow vs. United States, 140 C.C.A. 549, 226 Fed. 145, the court below said
that the real question was as to who was referred to in the term 'white persons' in the
Act of 1790, in the understanding of the makers of the law, and it held that such term
referred to aliens of European nativity, or descent only; but the appellate court was not
of this opinion, and said, in reference thereto, that while, in 1790, when the first
Naturalization Act was passed, immigration to this provide for naturalization of aliens
from Europe, and to deny naturalization to negroes, yet, in not mentioning the people of
Europe, and in extending the privilege of naturalization to any 'Free White Person,' it
seems reasonable to think that Congress must have believed that there were White Persons
who were natives of countries outside Europe. Especially as the writers on the subject at
that time were not agreed in the view that Europeans were the only White People; but that,
if it be assumed that the preponderance of the argument was strongly in favor of the
conclusion that, in 1790, the popular understanding was that people of European nativity
or descent were white, and that all others were colored and that legislators had not in
definite view any persons as white, except those of present statute, as from that time
down to the present the popular construction of race divisions has become more distinct,
and Congress has amended and repealed and re-enacted the statute; and it cannot be said,
in view of this, that the present statute must be construed in the light of knowledge and
conception of the legislators who passed the original statute in 1790, without respect to
the more definite and general knowledge and conception which must be attributed to the
legislators who, upon reconsideration of the whole subject, enacted subsequent statutes,
including that now in force."
IT IS TIME FOR THE WHITE RACE TO WAKE UP! FOLLOW THE WORD OF OUR FATHER - ALMIGHTY GOD AND
THE LORD JESUS CHRIST AND RESTORE THE REPUBLIC FORMED UNDER THE TRIUNE GOD-HEAD.All this
has happened to "We the People," which are only White Christian People from the
beginning of our nation because we have turned our face away from Almighty God and His
only Son Jesus Christ. In times of trouble we turn to men and earthly things, instead of
God, the potter, can cure all defects in the clay while the clay can do nothing by itself?
The Christians [God's Children, the Chosen] of our nation, including myself, have allowed
every kind of perversion and violation of God's Law to go unchallenged in our presence for
fear of persecution. We have violated God's Law ourselves either by acts or omissions. Had
we and our ancestors followed God's Law and leaned on Him and His Son Jesus Christ, the
Holy Spirit thus coming upon us, what we do and don't do might not come to evil. Just as
an honest man cannot be swindled because of his honesty and lack of greed, a man that
walks in the path of God cannot fall in the ditch of evil. So I submit to you, the hearts
of God's people must return to him with a conviction unto mortal death. Then God might
have mercy upon our nation and remove the tyranny of this rebel de facto central
government from
us.
"If my people which are called by my name, shall humble themselves and pray, and seek
my face, and turn from their wicked ways: then will I hear from heaven, and will forgive
their sin, and will heal their land."
Now compare the oath or affirmation our forefathers took when America was young, and the
one we take today:
"I _________________________ being by God's providence an inhabitant and freeman
within the jurisdiction of this commonwealth. Do freely acknowledge myself to be subject
to the government thereof, and therefore do here swear by the great and dreadful name of
the Everliving God that I will be true and faithful to the same and will accordingly yield
assistance and support thereunto with my person and estate as in equity I am bound, and
will also truly endeavor to maintain and preserve all the liberties and privileges
thereof. Submitting myself to the wholesome laws and orders made and established by the
same. And further that I will not plot or practice any evil against it or consent to any
that shall so do, but will timely discover and reveal the same to lawful authority. Now
here establish for the speedy prevention thereof. Moreover I do solemnly bind myself in
the sight of God that when I shall be called to give my voice touching any such matter of
this state, in which freeman are to deal I will give my vote and suffrage as I shall judge
in mine own conscience that may best conduce and tend to the public weal of the body.
Without respect of person or favor of any man so help me God, in the Lord Jesus
Christ."
That was an oath taken by our Christian forefathers in the colonies. Here is the oath
taken by Americans today who believe that upon taking it they do a great thing.
"I pledge allegiance to the Flag of the United States of America, and to the Republic
for which it stands, one Nation under God, indivisible, with liberty and justice for
all."
The Pledge of Allegiance, like the prayer, recognizes the existence of a Supreme Being.
Since 1954 it has contained the word "one nation UNDER GOD, indivisible, with liberty
and justice for all."
The House report, recommending the addition of the words "under God" stated that
those words in no way run contrary to the First Amendment but recognize "only the
guidance of God in our national affairs" H.R. Rep. No. 1693, 83d Cong. 2d Sess. p. 3,
Ami sec 5. Rep. No. 1257, 83d Cong. 2d Sess. Senator Ferguson, who sponsored the measure
in the Senate, pointed out that the words "In God We Trust" are over the
entrance to the Senate Chamber. ,
He added:
"I have felt that the Pledge of Allegiance to the Flag which stands for the United
States of America should recognize the Creator who we really believe is in control of the
destinies of this great Republic. It is true that under the Constitution no power is
lodged anywhere to establish a religion. This is not an attempt to establish a religion,
it has nothing to do with anything of that kind. It relates to belief in God, in whom we
sincerely repose our trust. We know that America cannot be defended by guns, planes, and
ships alone. Appropriations and expenditures for defense will be of value only if the God
under whom we live believes we are in the right. We should at all times recognized God's
province over the lives of our people and over this great Nation."
The Act of March 3, 1865, 13 Stat. 517, 518, authorized the phrase "In God We
Trust" to be placed on coins. And sec. 17 Stat. 427. The first mandatory requirements
for the use of that motto on coins was made by the Act of May 18, 1903, The use of
the motto on all currency and coins was directed by the Act of July 11, 1955, 69 Stat.
290. See H.R. Rep. No. 662, 84th Cong. 1st Sess., S. Rep. No. 637, 84th Cong., 1st sess.,
S. Rep. No 637, 84th Cong., 1st Sess. Moreover, by the Joint Resolution of July 30, 1956,
our national motto was declared to be "In God We Trust." In reporting the
Joint Resolution, the Senate Judiciary Committee stated:
"Further official recognition of this motto was given by the adoption of the
Star-Spangled Banner as our national anthem."
One stanza of our national anthem is as follows:
"O, thus be it ever when freemen shall stand
Between their lov'd home and the war's desolation:
Blest with vict'ry and peace may the heav'n rescued land
Praise the power that hath made and preserved us a nation
Then conquer we must when our cause it is just,
And this be our motto -- 'In God is our trust,'
And the Star-Spangled Banner in triumph shall wave
O'er the land of the free and the home of the brave."
In view of these words in our national anthem, it is clear that
"In God we trust' has a strong claim as our national motto."
We are not condemning the pledge we take today. But do you see the difference? In those
days, they pledged their obedience to the Lord Jesus Christ. Today we pledge to a symbol
of the nation, and we have left out the Lord Jesus Christ. We have deserted the Rock upon
which this nation was founded! Now in spite of the fact that we believe that we should
pledge allegiance to the flag of the United States of America, and we believe it is,
indeed, quite a symbol to show how far we have retreated from the first principles which
were established in the early days of America. Today, some people, even to this short
pledge of allegiance they say it as a ritual, having little if any understanding even of
what the flag for America stands for. It is simply a case of America forgetting the rock
of its salvation.
Chapter Eight
THE UNITED STATES IS RESTORED ISRAEL
To all men of good will of all racial origins and of all religious faiths.
Knowledge is a collection of facts.
Wisdom wins wars before they start.
Wisdom is the use of knowledge.
Knowledge aborts national hostilities.
Without facts there is no knowledge.
Wisdom obviates racial antipathies.
Without knowledge there is no wisdom.
Knowledge effaces religious animosities.
Facts prevent what nothing can cure.
Emancipation from bigotry prefaces peace.
Facts are Man's best defense mechanism.
Intolerance takes all and gives nothing.
Without them men fumble, falter and fail.
Peace rewards reciprocal respect and regard.
Without them nations decline and fall.
To all Men of Good-Will, "Pax Vobiscum!"
Having shown, beyond any doubt, America was founded as a Christian Nation, we will now
finish Chapter One and finish showing you that The United States of America is Restored
Israel. We have previously shown that a Republican Nation or Nationality was unequivocally
promised to Israel, in the Christian era, or "latter day," as some like to say;
and having demonstrated, we believe, that the application of this promise to Israel, and
its reference to Christians is an inevitable conclusion. The United States being a late
and extraordinary Christian Israel people, we inquire, may it not be the veritable
nationality of the prophets? If it is an Israel at all, if it coincides with all the great
characteristics predicted of a Christian nationality, then all doubt must end, and our
country rise into an importance and sublimity absolutely overwhelming. It will further
cause you to understand why the anti-Christs are trying so desperately to destroy her. If
Satan can destroy the United States of America then he will be able to destroy Christ's
New Jerusalem and New Zion thereby delaying if not totally preventing Christ's return. At
least that is what Satan and his children are desperately hoping to accomplish.
We submit the following positions for your review (For a more complete rendition send for
our book "America is New Jer- USA -lem and New Zion."
1). The United States is a Christian Israel:
The name Israel, literally signifies, "a prince with God, or wrestling or prevailing
with God." It was a personal appellative of Jacob, and, by Metonomy; of his
descendants; in the Old Testament, when used declaratively, it refers either to the
Israelite nation, or to the thirteen tribes; in the New Testament, it is applied to
Christians, as, for example, "the Israel of God." With the literal sense,
the United States coincides, for it wrestled with God in universal prayer and tears, in
its great struggle for civil and religious liberty, and it prevailed. It is also, in form,
a dual nationality, as was ancient Israel, the specific difference being just that
existing between the Mosaic and Christian dispensations. It is composed of a vast body of
Christians, and its nationality, the offspring of their principles and of themselves, is
as legitimately entitled to their name of Christian Israel, as is the legitimate child to
the name of its sire; at the transformation of the Hebrew church into a nationality at the
exodus, the name Israel was properly transferred to the nation; so the name of Christ's
Israel may, with equal propriety, be applied to a nationality into which this Israel is
transformed, the cases being exactly similar. Therefore, the United States, from these
several consideration, may, with strict propriety, be called an Israel.
2). All the great features predicted of Israel restored, are possessed by the
United States:
The most complete and specific descriptions of the restoration, are given by Ezekiel and
Isaiah; to these we shall devote most attention. To appreciate, to any degree, the
arguments of our entire work (America is New Jer-USA-lem and New Zion, America Was Founded
As A Christian Nation, Exposing the Judeo- Christian Lie and Exposing The Chosen People
Lie all books by this author), it must be kept constantly in view, that prophecy is of two
kinds -- the clear and the obscure.
The former needs no explanation; to know the true import of the latter, demands the
greatest skill, and its exact meaning can be known only by fulfillment, coinciding with
some one of the plurality of legitimate expositions, of which the specific prediction is,
a priori, susceptible. By far the greater portion of prophecy is intentionally obscure.
The obscurity proceeds from the ambiguity of terms used, or from symbols; the language of
symbols is always determinate and simple, but realization is essential to their
application to their subject; ambiguous terms, from the nature of the case, admit of a
plurality of senses, a priori. To determine which of these meanings was the divine
intention, and at the same time to show an unequivocal fulfillment in the end,
necessitates the following rule: any legitimate, exposition of an obscure prophecy, with
which future events clearly coincide, is thereby determined to be the intention of the
prophecy, and such coincidence is fulfillment. The great point of importance, then, is to
be certain that our interpretations and expositions are legitimate, and a rule to test
such legitimacy is demanded. The rule is this: any exposition not opposed to the context,
nor to the nature of things existing, before fulfillment, must be considered legitimate.
With these positions stated to guide the inquirer, we proceed to present the following.
"Surely the isles shall wait for me, and the ships of Tarshish first, to bring thy
sons from far..."
1). The term "isles," was applied anciently to Europe, and all
countries west of Asia Minor. Those vast countries supposed to exist in the Atlantic, west
of Gibraltar, are also
termed isles, by both Plato and Diodorus Siculus.
2). The waiting of the isles for God, implies either their delay in receiving
the emigrating people of God, spoken of in the text, or of the gospel; the
former is more likely, the meaning, since the ships bringing emigrants are those the isles
were waiting for; indeed, the consecutive coupling of isles
waiting for God,
and for the ships with emigrants, almost necessitates this meaning.
3). "The ships of Tarshish." Tarshish was the most ancient name of
Spain; it is supposed to apply, also, to Tarsus in Cilcia.
4). "Tarshish first;" the word "first," was intended
pointedly to specify the first people who would approach "the waiting isles." As
prophecy notes only the
greatest events of time, the term "first," must apply to some very stupendous
and famous circumstance. Now we do not claim that our exposition the
only one of which the text is
susceptible, but simply that it is legitimate; this claim must be admitted, because it is
in accordance with the rule stated
above, and therefore can not
be denied. America answers to the term "isles," and "the ships of Tarshish
first," to the discovery of America by the ships
of Spain, opening the way to the
emigration of God's people, to form a nationality in "the isles."
The events coinciding with the legitimate exposition given, the
prophecy is seen to be realized, as we supposed, and our supposition is thus confirmed, as
the real intention of the prophecy.
"In the latter years thou shalt come into the land that is brought back from the
sword, and is gathered out of many nations against the mountains of Israel, which have
been always waste."
As the Israel restored was to be of Christians, this text must predict the nationality of
Christians, gathered from various countries. The country "always waste," prior
to their coming, was manifestly a wilderness, "from of old." America coincides
with the country described, and the United States with the "gathered"
nationality of Christian immigrants.
"Thine eyes shall see Jerusalem a quiet habitation, a tabernacle that shall not be
taken down. But there the glorious Lord shall be unto us a place of broad rivers and
streams; wherein shall go no galley with oars, neither shall gallant ship pass
thereby."
The peace and permanency of Israel are elsewhere spoken of by the prophets, who affirm,
that once restored, it shall never fall again. "There, the Lord being a place of
broad rivers and streams," teaches that prosperity and peace in the land of Israel
will spring from the gift of a place of broad rivers and streams, where the tabernacle of
Israel's nationality shall be erected. It is common, in scripture, to embody a promise, or
threat, in terms figurative, to embody a promise, or threat, in terms figurative, which,
when taken literally, designate the very agencies by which the threat or promise in
realized. Sword and fire may symbolize war; or rain may represent plenty, yet each is an
essential agent in the realization. So broad river and streams may symbolize vast inland
prosperity, and yet are essential means of effecting it, and may, therefore, be taken in a
literal, as well as figurative sense. Galley and gallant ship, represent the greater and
smaller classes of war vessels; their presence would indicate the vassalage of Jerusalem
to foreigners, their absence, therefore, declares Israel's independence. Vast inland
prosperity afforded by broad rivers and streams; a glorious independence of all nations,
are mighty features of our great American people. Our exposition is, legitimate, and is
endorsed by the acts, as the intention of the prophet.
"They shall bring thy sons in their arms, and thy daughters shall be carried upon
their shoulders." ; "But they shall fly upon the shoulders of the Philistines
toward the west."
Bearing upon the shoulders plainly teaches the transportation of Israel by the Gentiles;
and Moses teaches that flying upon another, means transportation; hence it mean it here.
The United States has the most aircraft of any country on the face of the earth, at the
present time. The course of transportation would be westward. Now, the great emigration of
Christians to America, was westward, from the maritime Philistia of modern Europe.
"Ye shall inherit the land according to the twelve tribes of Israel; Joseph shall
have two portions."
Joseph had two portions of old Israel, and thus there were thirteen tribes, and the same
number was to exist at the rise of Christian Israel. In the forty-eighth chapter, it is
said, these divisions shall lie side by side, on a great sea, with the limits extending
"from the east side unto the west side. A map of these is published in Clarke's
Commentary. All prophecies of the modern restoration, relate to a Christian Nation and
since the United States arose in thirteen colonies, whose limits, in the language of the
old charters, "extended westward, from sea to sea," we have over-powering
evidence, that our country was intended by the prophet."; "Kings shall be thy
nursing fathers, and queens thy nursing mothers."
Nursing applies to attentions in the infancy of the restoration. A word is sufficient. The
memorial of nursing kings, and queens, and princes, will remain upon our rivers and
waters, our counties and towns, our cities and states while time shall last. Louisiana,
Georgia, the Carolina, Virginia, Maryland, Delaware, New York, New Jersey, and New
Hampshire, will ever suggest the early interest of royalty in our colonial history.
"I will restore thy judges as at the first, and thy counsellors as at the
beginning."
Judges and counsellors were an essential part of the ancient Israelite Republic, or of the
first government, and their restoration also implies republicanism.
"Their nobles shall be of themselves, and their governor from the midst of
them."
The selection of rulers from the masses of the people, is incidental to a Republic only.
"Thy destroyers, and they that made thee waste, shall go forth of thee."
Spiritual and civil monarchists were ever the destroyers of Christians, and the removal of
their power, leaves only the alternative of freedom.
"Thou [Gog] shalt say, I will go up to the land of unwalled villages; I will go to
them that are at rest, that dwell safely, all of them dwelling without walls, and having
neither bars nor gates, to turn thy hand upon the desolate places that are now inhabited,
upon the people that are gathered out of the nations."
Our country of America; our Israel was "gathered out of the nations;" "we
dwell in the midst of the land;" we "are at rest in the desolate places now
inhabited;" we "dwell safely in unwalled villages, with neither bars nor
gates" to our cities.
"Thy waste and thy desolate places, and the land of thy destruction, shall even be
too narrow, by reason of inhabitants. The children thou shalt have after thou hast lost
the other, shall say again in thine ears, the place is too straight for me, give to me
that I may dwell."
Thirty seven states, added to the "Old Thirteen," have not mitigated the
unceasing cry for "place, that I may dwell."
America's White Race is now reaching for the stars, even though they are being held back
by those who would destroy her. And know that if she ever does reach space and develops
settlements on other worlds they will never be able to control them again and therefore
the White Christians would forever more be a threat to their existence. Here is a
coincidence that comes home personally to all of us.
"Thou shalt not see a fierce people, a people of deeper speech than thou canst
perceive: of a stammering tongue that thou canst not understand."
The universality of one language is legitimately inferred from this passage, and the unity
of the language of the American people, is one of the most extraordinary occurrences in
the history of great nations. Now you know why the anti-Christs are trying so desperately
to bring in aliens, so as to change the language of America.
"All thy children shall be taught of the Lord."
This could mean either a conversion to God or universal Christian education. In the
beginning our educational system was unparalleled in history; the Bible was the basis, and
every child in our country was taught about God, the Lord Jesus Christ, the gospel and the
Bible.
"The abundance of the sea shall be converted unto thee."
That is, the commerce of the world.
"The forces of the Gentiles shall come unto thee; the multitude of camels shall cover
thee."
This is, vast multitudes of immigrants shall pour into the country.
"Who are these that fly as a cloud, and as doves to their windows?"
Clouds indicate multitudes, and doves returning show that wanderers are flying hither for
rest, from the flood of sorrow on the earth. More graphic accounts of the foreign
immigration to our shores than Isaiah gives, could not be written. And the United States
of America has more airplanes flying in its vast air fleets and air force than any other
nation on earth.
"In the last days the mountain [civil government] of the Lord's house [church or
Christians], shall be established in the top of the mountains, and all nations shall flow
unto it. And many people shall go and say, come ye, and let up GO UP to the mountain of
the Lord [to the nation] in the house of the God of Jacob."
The locality of the nation is represented higher than other places. Maury, in the last
century, shows that the whole earth, to reach us, is literally obliged to COME UP TO
US, because we are on the physical head of the world, and doubtless in the ancient Eden,
with its four-headed river.
"These shall come from far; and lo, these from the north and west; and these from the
land of Sinim."
Drs. Morison and Hagar affirm that Sinim is China, and the latter "undertakes the
proof in two very learned tracts." How true this text of our country; how unlikely of
Palestine, for even to this day there is no way Chinese people could go to Palestine from
the Northwest; for the Chinese are immigrating from China to the United States from the
northwest.
"The sons of them that afflicted thee, shall come bending unto thee."
Romanists were the great prosecutors of Bible Christians, at the instigation of the Jews,
and their heavy laden sons and daughters crowd by tens of thousands, to serve as menials,
that people whom their fathers afflicted. At least they did in the last century. But the
anti-Christs have changed that around also.
"The sons of strangers shall build thy walls."
Our great systems of internal improvements; our railroads and many of our highways, and
all their drudgery was performed by strangers to our religion and liberty. China, and the
Negro from Africa, show this prophecy to be true.
"Ye shall divide it by lot for an inheritance to you, and to the strangers that
sojourn among you, that shall beget children among you. They shall have inheritance with
you."
The constitution tolerates all religions. The inheritance or citizenship is first to
sojourners; then to those who raise families of native born children; and then to the
children themselves. Ezekiel's suggestion is profoundly politic. To limit citizens'
prerogatives to strangers, who are heads of native born families, is consonant with good
sense, as such persons have strong motives to uphold good government.
"Unto two thousand and three hundred days, then shall the sanctuary be
cleansed." ; "...it shall be for a time, times and a half; and when he shall
have accomplished, to scatter the power of the holy people, all these things shall be
finished." ; "From the time the daily sacrifice shall be taken away, there shall
be 1290 days."
These texts give, each, the length of Israel's desolation. Their starting point appears to
be at the cessation of the daily sacrifice, on the 189th day of 68, A.D., and each period
is exactly equal to 1708 years. The ending point is therefore on July 4th, 1776. On that
day "a nation was born at once." Before closing the argument, we will consider a
few objections to it.
1). Modernists, those in the so-called Judeo-Christian churches of today
object that we attribute a figurative sense to such towns as Israel, Judah,
Canaan, etc. We deny the charge; we wrestle with all our strength to maintain that very
ground.
For instance, the word Israel, literally, IS NOT THE JEWISH NATION, as our so-called
Judeo-Christian ministers would have us think; it signifies anyone person who prevails
with God. Applied to a body of people, it is then used figuratively, and, as a figure, it
may designate the Israelite nation; the thirteen tribes; the scattered Israelites of our
time, or any single body of Christians, such as the Waldenses, who were once known as the
"Israel of the Alps."
The term is used by Paul to designate the True Seed of Abraham, the Anglo-Saxon, Germanic,
Scandinavian, Celtic and kindred people, as, "they are not all Israel, who are of
Israel [in other words the other nations of the world are not of Israel;" "the
Israel of God," etc. But even on the supposition that the term means carnal Israel
literally, our position is still tenable. Terms are always either literal or figurative;
if their literal sense stands opposed to plain testimony, and the figurative does not,
then are they to be understood as figurative, and vice versa. There is no evading this
position. Scriptural examples also sustain the use of literal terms as figures: thus
Ezekiel uses the name of David in such a way as necessitates it to stand for Christ; so,
also, does David himself .
Further, the gospel unequivocally affirm that "if a man be circumcised Christ shall
profit him nothing," and positively limiting the fulfillment of the promises to
Christians only, the figurative sense of the term Israel, as used in the promises, is
required by inevitable necessity. The objection, though very grave with some, is really
very trivial.
2). It is objected that the promise is so very specific, as to affirm that
Israel restored is to "dwell in the land where their fathers dwelt."
This, however, is only a seeming objection. The "promise being sure to all the
seed," and the absurdity of supposing that "all the seed" can possibly be
those who dwell in Palestine, compels this restoration to be understood as a figure. But
the prophecy is really detailing the history of Israel after the final resurrection, and
positively coincides with the New Heavens and New Earth, described by Isaiah, Peter, and
John. All, therefore, that can be inferred from it, its that the dwelling-place of Israel,
after the resurrection, will be on the regenerated globe. In the United States of America,
the New Jerusalem and New Zion where Christ will reign.
3). It is objected that God has preserved the Jews an isolated people, for
the express purpose of restoration to Palestine.
First: We answer, had they heard [believed] Christ, as God commanded,
the customs which isolate them abolished, they would have lost their carnal
identity, and would have merged into the True Israel.
Second: Because the Jews crucified the Lord Jesus Christ; and because they
refused to acknowledge Him as their king, they are the condemned race.
They are to be destroyed before Christ when He returns.
"But they [the Jews] cried out, Away with him [Christ], away with him, crucify him.
Pilate saith unto them, Shall I crucify your King? The chief priests [Jewish priests -
rabbis] answered, We [Jews] have no king but Caesar." ; "But those mine
[Christ's] enemies [the Jews], which would not that I [Christ] should reign over them
[Jews], BRING HITHER [to old Jerusalem] and SLAY THEM BEFORE ME [Christ]."
That they are to be totally destroyed is related to us by the prophet Obadiah:
"And the house of Jacob shall be a fire, and the house of Joseph a flame, and the
house of Esau [the Jews] for stubble, and they [Israel] shall kindle in them [Jews], and
devour them; and THERE SHALL NOT BE ANY REMAINING OF THE HOUSE OF ESAU [Jews]."
The sole and simple secret of their existence, as a distinct people, is their infidelity,
their unbelief. Surely the Judeo-Christian ministers will not begin to teach that God is
the author of sin. The Rabbis of Judaism understand this just as do the leaders in the
Christian movement. Rabbi Moshe Maggal of the National Jewish Information Service said in
1961 when the term Judeo-Christian was relatively new,
"There is no such thing as a Judeo-Christian religion. We consider the two religions
so different that one excludes the other."
But further, the great works of Providence are all designed to promote the single end of
regenerating the world; Christianity is the chosen agent of accomplishing this end, and
the providences of God are all intended to spread Christianity. Now can any man see any
other cause for the restoration of an evil people, other than for their eventual
extermination by the Lord Jesus Christ upon His return to this earth? After the purpose
for their existence has ended; after the desired purpose has been accomplished? The
Israelite nation was a type of a regenerated world, a representation of happiness, not to
be enjoyed by itself alone, in the realizing age, but of the blessedness of all nations in
Abraham, through Christ.
Are not, then, the Jews holding out motives of a carnal nature, assuming untenable ground,
and indirectly as well as directly caralizing Christianity, and fostering the very spirit
which Paul denounced, when he proclaimed the Gentiles "fellow-heirs" of the
promises to the seed of Abraham? Let the Jewish sinners hear the gospel, and embrace it
from the same motives presented in common to all mankind, let them be willing to all to
all Christians an equal right to all the blessings of the gospel.
Let them acknowledge that God looks only at moral character and "is no respecter of
persons" on account of mere parentage; let them admit the fact, that God will not
raise and sustain any nation of persons on account of mere fleshly extraction, and that
such extraction confers no virtue, no heredity pre-emption to royal supremacy. Let them
remember that the "joint-heir of Jesus Christ" is not necessarily by birth but
anyone that is born of God, no matter who. It is time for Christians to realize: NOT ONE
TIME DID CHRIST TRY TO CONVERT A JEW TO CHRISTIANITY!
We now condense our arguments and close.
1). We showed the carnal theory to be irrational and anti-scriptural.
2). That nationality in the latter day, was promised to Christians only.
3). That the United States is a Christian Israel.
4). That America coincides with the waiting isles.
5). That the ships of Spain, opening up America to Christian emigration,
coincide with "the ships of Tarshish first to bring thy sons from far."
6). That America, a wilderness "from of old," coincides with the
lands "which have been always waste."
7). That the United States, answers to the people gathered out of many
nations in the country "always waste."
8). The great waterways of America, and our vast inland prosperity, answers
to "there, a place of broad rivers and streams."
9). American independence, answers to "no galley with oars, neither
gallant ship."
10). Western emigration, by royal encouragement, answers to flying to the
west on the shoulders of modern Philistia or maritime Europe. And the
ownership and operation of the greatest air fleets on the earth.
11). "The Old Thirteen," answer to the thirteen divisions of the
Christian Nation, predicted by Ezekiel.
12). The royal proprietary and charter colonies, answer to "kings shall
be thy nursing fathers, and queens thy nursing mothers."
13). Our republic, answers to "restoring thy judges as at first, and thy
counsellors as at the beginning."
14). Our unwalled towns and villages, answer to Ezekiel's description of
Israel's villages and cities.
15). Our unparalleled expansion, answers to the cry "the place is too
straight; give place that I may dwell."
16). The universality of Christian education as it was early in our countries
history answered to "all thy children shall be taught of the Lord."
17). The vast foreign immigration, answers to the 49th and 60th chapters of
Isaiah.
18). America's location as head of the world, answers to the country to which
all were to "go up."
19). The immigration from China, answers to "lo, these from the west,
and from the land of Sinim ."
20). The menial service of foreign Romanists, answers to the "bending of
the sons of them that afflicted thee."
21). The drudgery of building canals, turnpikes, railroads and etc by foreign
Chinese and Negros, answers to "the sons of strangers shall build thy walls."
22). Constitutional rights to foreigners, answer to an inheritance among us
promised to strangers.
23). Universality and unity of language answer to "thou shalt not see a
people of a deeper speech than thou canst perceive, (Yiddish - there are few non-
Jews who
can speak this language)" etc.
24). The birth day of our nation, July 4th, 1776, answers exactly to the day
when Israel was to "be born at once."
So we can clearly see that the restoration of Israel and its fulfillment in the rise of
the United States, has its parallels in the Israelites escape from Egypt across a sea, and
its erection of a republic in the wilderness; and in the stone cut out of the mountain, or
fifth great empire of Nebuchadnezzar's vision; in the ancient days, or fifth empire of
Daniel's vision of empires; and in Michael, in his last vision; in the two witnesses; the
woman and her twelve stars; in the woman and her man child; in the Old and New Testaments;
the man with many diadems on a white horse; and in the sealing of the twelve tribes of
Revelation.
An Israel restored was promised by the prophets on a mighty and vast scale, and it was to
be a Christian Israel. If we look at our own glorious country, we see clearly a Christian
Israel, enjoying the greatest and most glorious of all nationalities. In spite of the
actions of the anti-Christs and the traitors of our White Race who have sold out for 40
pieces of silver; so to speak. Here is a coincidence with the prophets; and here then is
their fulfillment. Christ assured His disciples, that the restoration was to be a mystery,
and Daniel told that its history, in prophecy, would be concealed, until just before the
battle of the Kings; and the blindness on the subject hitherto has resulted from the order
of God. This concealment of our country as the Israel restored of the promises, every wise
man can see was a prudent measure with reference both to our past and future history. NOW,
THEN, AS THE LEGITIMACY OF OUR EXPOSITIONS, CANNOT BE DENIED, AND AS THEY ARE ALL REALIZED
IN AMERICA, IT FOLLOWS THAT THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA IS THE PROMISED NATIONALITY TO
CHRISTIAN ISRAEL. REGATHERED ISRAEL!
IN CONCLUSION
The "Ancient Principles" of Common Law and the TEN COMMANDMENTS have one
unmistakable principle: The protection of PRIVACY. The unanimous Declaration, WE THE
PEOPLE, The Constitution, and the Bill of Rights all have the same theme.
When Thomas Jefferson penned The Unanimous Declaration he listed approximately thirty
reasons why we should separate from England. Each reason involved the direct violation of
PRIVACY! PRIVACY is the essential ingredient of FREEDOM! Without PRIVACY, there is no
FREEDOM! And without God there is no Liberty.
"Now the Lord is that Spirit: and where the Spirit of the Lord is, there is
liberty."
The British Legal system was the main threat to the PRIVACY of the colonists. Twenty of
the approximate thirty reasons listed in The Unanimous Declaration, were objections to
oppressive laws and court enforcement procedures. Taxes were not the main issue of the
Revolution. They were listed only once. Nor was the British military the main issue, as
Washington himself almost joined the English armed forces. The issue was the invasion of
PRIVACY! "Leave us alone, let us be FREE," was the cry! PRIVACY and FREEDOM can
only be maintained under a JUST court system. This condemnation of the legal system was
not the first attempt for simple JUSTICE. Two thousand years ago, we recall the straight
talk of JESUS, "WOE UNTO YOU LAWYERS..."
Our forefathers did not want the court to be a feeding trough for lawyers and judges, but
rather a place for simple JUSTICE! Neither was it their desire that a judge be a
super-lawyer in a lady's black dress, but rather he was to be an unbiased referee bound by
the shackles of the CONSTITUTION! Thus we are forced to face the fact. Our American
people, because of false propaganda, no longer know the real purpose of government. Just
as the Ten Commandments must be followed by individuals, so Christian Nations to remain
Christian, must follow the statutes, laws and judgments of Almighty God; for the keeping
of then will result in righteousness, Truth, Honesty, Loyalty and Justice, of its leaders;
the True purpose Almighty God set for the outline of government.
After this study of the Christian Foundations of America (Heavenly Kingdom in the Gothic
language), one finds Gods purpose in allowing men to set up governments. That with the
establishment of the Kingdom of God, upon earth, at Mount Sinai, the people of Israel were
organized into a Republican Form of Government. God then set forth perfect laws of
justice, which the people were commanded to follow and to see that they were properly
administered by their leaders. This form of government, with the Laws handed down to
Moses, by God, clearly show that keeping them would bring justice to individuals in their
everyday lives; to the nation, as a whole; in the handling of domestic affairs. That
without Gods Laws there can be no justice nor tranquility. Only confusion and discord.
Today, our leaders, sitting in Moses Seat, and just as the Pharisees of Christ's day, are
administering the laws of Babylon which have been instituted by antichrists, in place of
the original Christian Laws which or forefathers wanted for us. Therefore, after
consideration, one can clearly see the only real purpose of government is to establish
among men a means to bring about such justice and tranquility as God intended for them,
from the very beginning. That America is the Israel to come, can even be seen in the
beautiful song "America The Beautiful." Which is in actuality a prayer to
Almighty God and the Lord Jesus Christ, to bless her! If the forgoing is not enough to
convince you that America was founded by Christians, upon Christian Principles and Bible
Laws; and with Christ as the foundation stone upon which it rests. Then the reproduction
of thousands of other documents, both civil and religious would not do more; we leave you
with the words of French historian Alexis de Tocqueville, who in 1831 visited the, then,
forty year old United States and made the following observation:
"On my arrival in the United States the religious aspect of the country was the first
thing that struck my attention; and the longer I stayed there, the more I perceived the
great political consequences resulting from this new state of things...Religion in America
takes no direct part in government or society, but it must be regarded as the first of
their political institutions...The sects [different denominations] that exist in the
United States are innumerable. They all differ in respect to the worship which is due the
Creator; but they all agree in respect to the duties which are due man to man. Each sect
adores the Deity in its own peculiar manner, but all sects preach the same moral law in
the name of God...All the sects of the United States are comprised within the GREAT UNITY
OF CHRISTIANITY...I sought for the greatness and genius of America in her commodious
harbors and her ample rivers, and it was not there; in her rich mines and vast world
commerce, and it was not there. Not until I went to the churches of America and heard her
pulpits aflame with righteousness did I understand the secret of her genius and power.
America is great because she is good, and if America ever ceases to be good, America will
cease to be great."
Finally I offer this supplication on behalf of our White Israel People: Dear God, the
Creator of all things, He who brought Israel out of Egypt with a mighty hand,
"I pray that You will again turn your face unto thy children, your people, and leave
thy wrath that we have caused to be kindled against us and be merciful unto thy nation and
again show us our heritage, that we again might walk in Thy Holy Spirit and love Thee
above all things, and follow Thy Law, for the sake of Thy beloved Son Jesus Christ and Thy
Holy Name. Spare Thy people, O Lord, and give not thine heritage to reproach, that the
heathen should rule over them: wherefore should they say among the people, Where is their
God? Please forgive us and accept my supplication. In the name of our Lord and Saviour
Jesus Christ Thine Only Son. Amen!"
AMERICA THE BEAUTIFUL
O, Beautiful for spacious skies, (Deut. 33:13)
For amber waves of grain, (Deut. 33:16)
For purple mountain majesties, (Deut. 33:15)
Above the fruitful plain! (Gen. 49:26)
America! America! (Gen. 48:21)
God shed His Grace on thee, (Gen. 48:16)
And crown thy good with brotherhood. (Gen. 48:20)
From sea to shining sea! (Ezekiel 47:18-20)
O, Beautiful for pilgrim feet, (Deut. 33:13)
Whose stern, impassioned stress, (Gen. 49:23)
A thoroughfare for freedom beat, (Psalm 72:8)
Across the wilderness! (Deut. 32:8-11)
America! America! (Gen. 48:21)
God mend thine every flaw, (Gen. 49:22-26)
Confirm thy soul in self-control, (Isaiah 45:13)
Thy liberty in Law! (2 Cor. 3:17)
O, Beautiful for heroes proved, (2 Chr. 25:6)
In liberating strife, (James 1:25)
Who more than self their country loved, (Rev. 12:11)
And mercy more than life! (Psalm 37:21-31)
America! America! (2 Samuel 7:10)
May God thy gold refine, (Isaiah 2:7)
'Til all success be nobleness, (Gen. 48:15-16)
And every gain divine. (Deut. 33:13-17)
O, Beautiful for patriot dream, (Hebrews 11:9)
That sees beyond the years, (Isaiah 60:21)
Thine Alabester cities gleam, (Rev. 21:18-20)
Undimned by human tears! (Rev. 7:17)
America! America! (1 Chr. 17:9)
God shed His Grace on thee, (Acts 4:33)
And crown thy good with brotherhood, (Deut. 32:13)
From sea to shining sea! (Micah 7:12)
There are three kinds of people in America:
1). Those that know what is going on;
2). Those that think they know what is going on; and
3). Those that don't have a clue as to what is going on.
"5% of the people think. 10% of the people think they think.
The rest would rather die than think."
"How long would it take a blind giant, hammering upon an
anvil, to produce a watch?" That's how long it would take the
evolutionists to explain their stupid theory.
| |
|